This is a digital copy of a book that was preserved for generations on library shelves before it was carefully scanned by Google as part of a project
to make the world's books discoverable online.
It has survived long enough for the copyright to expire and the book to enter the public domain. A public domain book is one that was never subject
to copyright or whose legal copyright term has expired. Whether a book is in the public domain may vary country to country. Public domain books
are our gateways to the past, representing a wealth of history, culture and knowledge that's often difficult to discover.
Marks, notations and other marginalia present in the original volume will appear in this file - a reminder of this book's long journey from the
publisher to a library and finally to you.
Usage guidelines
Google is proud to partner with libraries to digitize public domain materials and make them widely accessible. Public domain books belong to the
public and we are merely their custodians. Nevertheless, this work is expensive, so in order to keep providing this resource, we have taken steps to
prevent abuse by commercial parties, including placing technical restrictions on automated querying.
We also ask that you:
+ Make non-commercial use of the files We designed Google Book Search for use by individuals, and we request that you use these files for
personal, non-commercial purposes.
+ Refrain from automated querying Do not send automated queries of any sort to Google's system: If you are conducting research on machine
translation, optical character recognition or other areas where access to a large amount of text is helpful, please contact us. We encourage the
use of public domain materials for these purposes and may be able to help.
+ Maintain attribution The Google "watermark" you see on each file is essential for informing people about this project and helping them find
additional materials through Google Book Search. Please do not remove it.
+ Keep it legal Whatever your use, remember that you are responsible for ensuring that what you are doing is legal. Do not assume that just
because we believe a book is in the public domain for users in the United States, that the work is also in the public domain for users in other
countries. Whether a book is still in copyright varies from country to country, and we can't offer guidance on whether any specific use of
any specific book is allowed. Please do not assume that a book's appearance in Google Book Search means it can be used in any manner
anywhere in the world. Copyright infringement liability can be quite severe.
About Google Book Search
Google's mission is to organize the world's information and to make it universally accessible and useful. Google Book Search helps readers
discover the world's books while helping authors and publishers reach new audiences. You can search through the full text of this book on the web
at |http : //books . google . com/
_tu
THE
SOUL OF THINGS;
OR,
PSYCHOMETRIC
RESEARCHES AND DISCOVERIES.
BY
WILLIAM AND ELIZABETH M. F. DENTON.
" Enter into the soul of things.''
Wordtworth,
BOSTON:
WALKER, WISE AND COMPANY,
245 WA8HINOTON STREET.
1863.
TS-tW. ')os^. n
JV^tii. <\ ^.J.uddL.CA< '2J)^
4' r- .■
./
Eutcrpd accordiDg^ to Act of Cou^rcus, in tlio year 1803* by
WILLIAM DENTON,
In the Clerk'B Offioe of the District Court for the District of Massachusetts. -
OKO. C. RAND It AT«RT,
BTKSKOTTPKS8 AVD PKIITTKBS.
PREFACE.
There is a wide realm lying between the known physical and
the comparatively unknown spiritual, — a realm as yet almost en-
tirely unexplored. Mesmeric experimenters have been pioneers in
exploring one portion of it, Reichenbach and Buchanan in other
portions, while in this volume, we record our experience in travel-
ling over a part of this little known, but exceedingly interesting
and important region.
Facts are constantly presenting themselves, that no philosophy
explains ; and as the most obvious phenomena are the first to be
brought within the domain of science, because their explanation lies
nearer the surface, so what remain necessarily lie deeper, are the
results of the operation of subtler forces, and their existence is more
likely in consequence to be denied by those whose belief is bounded
by what their senses supply, or can be inferred therefrom. But he
who knows most of Nature, he who is most reverently her lover, will
be least likely to set up his knowledge as a boundary beyond which
fact and philosophy may never ctdvance. The higher we rise, the
wider the circle of the unknown stretches around us ; while Destiny
with uplifted finger beckons us on.
IV PREFACE.
It has been suggested by some persons who have read portions of
the manuscript of this volume, that many of the statements made
are too strange to be believed, and that, by their publication, we
subject ourselves to very severe criticism. So far as the conclu-
sions drawn from the facts presented are concerned, I am willing
they should receive all that criticism can bestow ; for the facts, I am
not responsible, nor am I concerned about their reception ; and if
any one chooses to do battle with them, he is welcome to the fruits of
his victory. When a fact comes, I am prepared to welcome it ; and
1 envy not those who discard a truth because Fashion has not set
her seal upon it.
This work is, I feel, the merest introduction to one of the
widest and most important fields in which the soul of man ever
labored ; and I trust that it will have the effect of inducing men of
intellect and means to investigate and teach, though they should puU
down all the theoretical scaffolding that we have erected.
W. D.
Boston, June, 18G3.
CONTEXTS.
PART I.
PSTCHOJILTSIC B£S£ASrS£S AXD DISCOTUSILSL
CHAPTER I.
PJCTCBES OX THE BETISA AXD BBAIX.
PICTUBES FOK3t£D OS THE EXT1XA WHI3 B£BOL£>DCO OBJECTS ~ THESB
PICTXTRES EXDTRCCG — PlCrrEXS SEES WITH CL06£D ETES— \1S1QKS CMP
THE BLCTD— nSIOXS OF OBJECTS SEEX LOXG BEFOKE BT THE SICK AND
HEAL.THT— ALL OBJECTS OXCE SEEX ABE PEBJCA3CEXT1.T BETACCED IX
THE BBAIX ll^eS
CHAPTER II.
PICTUBES OX SUBBOCXDIXG OBJECTS,
DAGUEBBBA2r PICTUBES— PICTURES TAKEN IS THE DARK— PICTURES TAKK2Y
OS AIX BODIES COSmXUALLT, AND ENDUBINQ AS THOSE BODIES — ALL
PAST HISTOBT THUS BECORDED, SO— 31
!• V
VI CONTENTS.
CHAPTER III.
PSYCnOMETRY.
DR. BUCHANAN'S EXPERIMENTS — EFFECTS OF MEDICINES UPON PERSONS
WHEN HELD IN THE HAND — CHARACTER DESCRIBED FROM UNSEEN
LETTERS, 32—30
CHAPTER IV.
EXPERIMENTS,
EXPERIMENTS WITH GEOLOGICAL, METEORIC, MISCELLAl^OUS, GEOGRAPH-
ICAL, ARCHEOLOGICAL, AND METALLIC SPECIMENS, 37—254
CHAPTER V.
REMARKABLE PHENOMENA EXPLAINED.
SPECTRAL ILLUSIONS — APPARITIONS — VISIONS, 255— 2GG
CHAPTER VI.
UTILITY OF PSYCHOMETRY,
UTILITT OF PSYCHOMETRY TO THE GEOLOGIST, THE PALEONTOLOGIST, THE
MINER, THE ASTRONOMER, THE PHYSIOLOGIST, AND THE ANATOMIST— ITS
EMPLOYMENT IN THE CURE OF DISEASES — ITS BENEFIT TO THE ARTIST
AND THE HISTORIAN — RADLANT FORCES PASSING FROM HUMAN BEINGS
CONTENTS. Vn
AND INFLUENCING OTHEKS— INFLUENCE OF PEOPLE ON THE COUNTRY IN
WHICH THEY LIVE — INFLUENCE OF A COUNTRY ON THE PEOPLE — W03IAN
MORE SUSCEPTIBLE TO PSYCHOMETRIC INFLUENCE THAN MAN — PSYCHOM-
ETRY AS A DISCOVERER OF CRIME, ............ 207-287
CHAPTER VII.
MYSTERIES REVEALED,
FORTX'NE-TELLING — DREAMS — RELICS AND AMULETS — HALLUCINATIONS,
281>-305
CHAPTER VIII.
CONCLUSION.
PSYCHOMETRY REVEALS THE POWERS OF THE SOUL — AS THE BODY BE-
COMES WEAKER IT BECOMES STRONGER — EVIDENCE OF OUR FUTURE
EXISTENCE, 300—308
PART II.
QUESTIONS, CONSIDERATIONS, AND SUGGESTIONS.
tnow OBJECTS ARE SEEN PSYCHOMETRICALLY, 312—320
SEEN BEST IN DARKNESS, AND WITH CLOSED BYES, 321—328
^VHY CALLED SIGHT, 328—332
MESMERIC INFLUENCE NOT NEEDED TO INDUCE THE NECESSARY
SENSmVENESfl, 333—335
Till CONTENTS.
WHERE THE GAZE IS DIRECTED, 335—330
WHY THE PSYCnOMETER IS UNABLE TO SEE SOME OBJECTS, . . . 33C— 339
THE NATURE OF THE LIGHT BY WHICH OBJECTS ARE SEEN, . . . 339—347
HOW THE P8YCHOMETER TRAVELS, OR APPEARS TO TRAVEL, . . 348—353
HOW ACCOUNT FOR THE HEARING OF SOUNDS 354—355
GOING BACKWARD IN TUiE, 356
CONTINUED EFFECTS OF INFLUENCES, 350—3^0
DEPARTED SPIRITS, 301
PREDOMINANT INFLUENCES, 3^.2— 30i
CONCLUSION, 304—306
PART I.
PSYCHOMETRIC RESEARCHES AND
DISCOVERIES.
BY WILLIAM DENTON.
"On the hardest adamant some footprint of us is stamped in; the last
rear of the host will read traces of the earliest van." — CarlyU,
" The air is one vast library, on whose pages are forever written all that
man has ever said, or woman whispered." — Prof. Babbage,
THE SOUL OF THINGS.
CHAPTER I.
PICTURES ON THE RETINA AND BRAIN.
By looking into the eye of an individual beholding
a landscape, we can see therein a picture 'of the fields,
houses, trees, and objects generally that come within
the range of his vision. This is because rays of light
proceeding from these objects pass to the retina of
the eye, and there form images or pictures of them.
Nothing is apparent to ordinary vision until it is
painted upon this window of the soul.
The pictures so made and seen are not as evanescent
as they are generally supposed to be. They seem to
pass from the retina of the eye into the brain, and are
there indelibly impressed upon its substance; and
under certain conditions they can be brought before
the gaze years afterward, with as great distinctness
as the beholder was conscious of at the time the ob-
jects themselves were presented to the sight.
Thus Sir Isaac Newton, in a letter to Locke, says ;
" I looked a very little while upon the sun in the look-
ing-glass with my right eye, and then turned my eyes
into a dark corner of my chamber and winked, to ob-
11
12 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
serve the impression made, and the circle of colors
which encompassed it, and how they decayed by de-
grees, and at last vanished. Intending my fancy upon
them to see their last appearance, I found, to my
amazement, that they began to return, and by little
and little to become as lively and vivid as when I had
newly looked upon the sun. But when I ceased to
intend my fancy upon them they vanished again. After
this, I found that as often as I went into the dark and
intended my mind upon them, as when a man looks
earnestly to see anything which is difficult to be seen,
I could make the phantasm return without looking any
more upon the sun ; and the oftener I made it return,
the more easily I could make it return again. And at
length by repeating this, without looking any more
upon the sun, I made such an impression on my eye
that, if I looked upon the clouds, or a book, or any
bright object, I saw upon it a round, bright spot of
light like the sun. . . . And now in a few hours' time
I had brought my eyes to such a pass, that I could
look upon no bright object with either eye but I saw
the sun before me, so that I durst neither write nor
read ; but to recover the use of my eyes I shut my-
self up in my chamber, made dark, for three days
together, and used all means to divert my imagination
from the sun. For if I thought upon him I presently
saw his picture, though I was in the dark. . . . For
some months after, the spectrum of the sun began to
return as often as I began to meditate upon the phe-
nomena, even though I lay in bed at midnight with
my curtains drawn." *
♦ Brewster's Life of Newton, p. 237
PICTURES ON THE RETINA AND BRAIN. 13
There are probably but few persons that perceive
such impressions as readily and vividly as Newton did
this of the sun ; but I think there are facts suflScient
to show that all persons retain these impressions in a
latent form, though the conditions favorable for their
manifestation may not be present. Were experiments
instituted for the purpose of testing the duration of
visual impressions, as in the following, the result would
be surprising to most persons. " Dr. Darwin says, ' I
covered a paper about four inches square with yellow,
and, with a pen filled with a blue color, wrote upon
the middle of it the word banks in capitals, and, sit-
ting with my back to the sun, fixed my eyes for a min-
ute on the centre of the letter N in the word. After
shutting my eyes, and shading them somewhat with
my hand, the word was distinctly seen in the spectrum,
in yellow colors on a blue ground ; and then, on open-
ing my eyes on a yellowish wall, at twenty feet dis-
tance, the magnified name of banks appeared on the
wall written in golden characters.' "* In this case the
word was seen with closed eyes, though in a dificrent
color from that in which it was written. The reason
that blue was seen in place of yellow, and yellow
instead of blue, probably arose from the fact that
when we look for a long while upon one color, the eye
becomes unable for some time to perceive that color,
and we see, in the place of it, its complementary color.
Blue and yellow being complementary colors, the one
was seen in place of the other.
"Dr. Ferriar mentions of himself that when about
the age of fourteen, if he had been viewing any inter-
* Abercrombie's Intellectual Philosophy.
14 THE SOUL OF T111N(;S.
esting object in the course of the day, as a romantic
ruin, a fine seat, or a review of troops, so soon as even-
ing came, if he had occasion to go inlo a dark room,
the whole scene was brought before him with a bril-
liancy equal to what it possessed in daylight, and re-
mained visible for some minutes." In these cases, the
impressions do not seem to have been retained long
after the objects were presented to the eye ; and it
might be supposed that the impression made upon the
retina was so strong, that tlie pictures were retained
there for a time and gradually faded away ; but in the
cases that I shall now bring forward, it will be seen
that this explanation is altogether insufficient to ac-
count for the facts presented.
Persons who have become blind are very naturally
more observing of such visions, as well as more liable
to their presentation ; and we have, therefore, many
well-authenticated instances of persons who had be-
come blind, that could at times see the objects on
which their eyes had previously rested, with all the
vividness of reality.
"Dr. Samuel Willard, of Deerfield, Mass., has for
the last twenty-five years been completely blind, and
for twelve years previous had only been able to dis-
tinguish large objects indistinctly ; but even now,
when closeted in his room, visions of the green fields
and sunny slopes of the Connecticut valley appear to
him as really as when he gazed upon them with his eyes
which for so long a period have admitted no light.
He denies that this is imagination, but regards it as
an exhibition of one of the mysterious modes by which
the mind may hold communication with the outer world
PICTURES ON THE RETINA AND BRAIN. 15
without the aid of the senses." * The imagination pos-
sesses no such power as some persons attribute to it,
and Dr. Willard very properly refused to recognize
this phenomenon as its offspring. But if he can only
see what his eyes had previously gazed upon, it is not,
I think, as he supposes, an exhibition of a mode by
which the mind may hold communication with the
outer world without the aid of the senses, for the
sense of vision had first to be employed to obtain
these pictures ; but it is an exhibition of a power by
which the scenes taken into the mind by the sense of
vision become again visible, — scenes no one of which,
apparently, is ever lost or obliterated.
The case of Niebuhr, the celebrated Danish trav-
eller, much resembles this. "When old, blind, and
so infirm that he was able only to be carried from his
bed to his chair, he used to describe to his friends the
scenes which he had visited in his early days with
wonderful minuteness and vivacity. When they ex-
pressed their astonishment, he told them that as he lay
in his bed, all visible objects shut out, the pictures of
what he had seen in the East continually floated before
his mind's eye, so that it was no wonder he could speak
of them as if he had seen them yesterday. With like
vividness the deep, intense sky of Asia, with its bril-
liant and twinkling host of stars, which he had so often
gazed at by night, or its lofty vault of blue by day,
was reflected in the hours of stillness and darkness on
his inmost soul." f
That these images are really imprinted upon the
brain, in many cases at least, and not merely upon the
* American Encyclopedia, Vol. ni. p. 367. t Intellectual Philosophy, p. 100.
16 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
retina of the eye, there is the best of evidence. Miil-
ler, the German physiologist, informs us that a remark-
able case was observed by Lincke, in which the extir-
pation of the eye was followed by the appearance of
luminous figures before the orbit as long as the inflam-
mation consequent on the operation endured.
"A Jewess who had been for a long time blind
became insane. Her illusions were of the sight, and
she was constantly haunted by strange visions. After
her death it was ascertained that the two optic nerves,
from the part at which they are united within the head
(which anatomists call their commissure) to their ter-
mination in the retina, were shrunk and wasted, so
that they must have been wholly incapable of perform-
ing their functions." * In these cases it must be evi-
dent that the pictures seen were not impressed on the
retina, and in the latter case we can hardly conceive
the power to behold them to reside in the optic nerve ;
the pictures must have been impressed upon the brain,
and the excitement of inflammation in the one case,
and of insanity in the other, rendered them visible.
Many persons, when attacked by fever, or diseases
accompanied with fever, have had presented to them
scenes that they had beheld years before, and which
in some cases they had entirely forgotten. Mr. Mac-
nish gives the following interesting account of a vision
thus seen by himself: "In March, 1829, during an
attack of fever, accompanied with violent action in the
brain, I experienced illusions of a very peculiar kind.
They did not appear except when the eyes were shut
or the room perfectly dark ; and this was one of the
* Brodie's Psychologic Inquiries, p. 86.
PICTURES ON THE RETINA AND BRAIN. 17
most distressing things connectdd with my ilhiess ; for
it obliged me either to keep my eyes open, or to admit
more light into the chamber than they could well tol-
erate.
" One night, when the fever was at its height, I had
a splendid vision of a theatre, in the arena of which
Ducrow, the celebrated equestrian, was performing.
On this occasion everything was gay, bright and beau-
tiful. I was broad awake, my eyes were closed, and
yet I saw with perfect distinctness the whole scene
going on in the theatre — Ducrow performing his won-
ders of horsemanship, and the* assembled multitude,
among whom I recognized several intimate friends —
in short, the whole process of the entertainment, as
clearly as if I were present at it.* When I opened my
eyes the whole scene vanished like the enchanted pal-
ace of the necromancer ; when I closed them, it as
instantly returned. . . . This theatrical vision contin-
ued for about five hours." * It is evident, from his
account, that Mr. Macnish had seen just such a per-
formance as this; the inimitable painter. Light, had
drawn it in the eye, complete in every feature, and
thence it had been transferred to the brain. During
the paroxysm of the fever, the curtain was drawn that
ordinarily conceals such pictures from our gaze, and
there it hung, as bright and beautiful as on the day of
its execution. The wonder is, not that such pictures
are seen, but that they are so seldom seen, or, being
seen, are so Uttle noticed.
Hugh Miller, when young, attended theatre in Edin-
burgh. "The scenery," he says, "made no favorable
* Combe'8 Phrenology, p. 352.
2*
18 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
impression upon me; •but fourteen years after, when.
* the whole seemed to have passed out of my memory,
1 was lying ill of small-pox, which, though a good deal
modified, apparently, by the vaccination of a long an-
terior period, was accompanied by such a degree of
fever that for two days together one dehrious image
continued to succeed another in the troubled senso-
rium, as scene succeeds scene in the box of an itin-
erant showman. As is not uncommon, however, in
such cases, though ill enough to be haunted by the
images, I was yet well enough to know that they were
idle unrealities, the n^ere eflfect of indisposition, and
even sufficiently collected to take an interest in watch-
ing them as they arose, and in striving to determine
whether they were Jinked together by the ordinary
associative ties. I found, however, that they were
wholly independent of each other. Curious to know
whether the will exerted any pov^er over them, I set
myself to try whether I could not conjure up a death's
head as one of the series ; but what rose instead was
a cheerful parlor fire, bearing atop a tea-kettle ; and as
the picture faded and then vanished, it was succeeded
by a gorgeous cataract, in which the white foam, at
first strongly relieved against the dark rock over which
it fell, soon exhibited a deep tinge of sulphurous blue,
and then came dashing down in one frightful sheet of
blood. The great singularity of the vision served to
freshen recollection, and I detected in the strange cat-
aract every line and tint of the waterfall in the incan-
tation scene in ^Der Preischutz,' which I had witnessed
in the Theatre Royal of Edinburgh, with certainly no
very particular interest, so long before.
PICTURES ON THE RETINA AND BRAIN. 19
" There are, I suspect, proviiices in the philosophy
of mind into which the metaphysicians have not yet
entered. Of that accessible storehouse, in which the
memories of past events lie arranged and taped up,
they appear to know a good deal ; but of a mysterious
cabinet of daguerreotype pictures, of which, though
fast locked up on ordinary occasions, disease sometimes
flings the door ajar, they seem to know nothing." *
As reasonably might the Ptolemaic astronomer have
supposed that he had discovered the boundaries of the
material universe, as for the metaphysician to suppose
that he has traversed and bounded the mental universe,
which seems to be as infinite as space itself.
" At the Leeds meeting of the British Association,
Prof. Stevelly narrated the following anecdote : At the
close of the last college session he had been in weak
health, and had gone to his brother-in-law's seat in the
country for a few weeks. While there, he had become
greatly interested in the economy and habits of the
bees. ' One morning, soon after breakfast, the servant
came in to say that one of the hives was just beginning
to swarm. The morning was a beautifully clear sunny
one, and I stood gazing at the insects, as they appeared
projected against the bright sky, rapidly and uneasily
coursing hither and thither in most curious yet regular
confusion, the drones making a humming noise much
louder and sharper than the workers, from whom also
they were easily distinguished by their size, but all
appearing much larger in their rapid flights than their
true size. In the evening, as it grew dark, I again
went out to see the bee-hive, into which the swarm
♦ My Schools and Schoolmasters, p. 332.
20 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
had been collected, removed to its stand. Soon after I
was much surprised to see, as I thought, multitudes of
large flies coursing about the air. I mentioned it to
my sister-in-law, who said I must be mistaken, as she
had never seen an evening in which so few flies were
abroad. Soon after, when I retired to my chamber,
and knelt to my prayers before going to my rest, I
was surprised to see coursing backward and forward,
between me and the wall, what I now recognized as
the swarm of bees, the drones quite easily distinguish-
able from the workers, and all in rapid whirling motion,
as in the morning. This scene continued to be present
to me as long as I remained awake, and occasionally
when I awoke in the night ; nor had it entirely faded
away by the next night, although much less vivid. This
was the first instance I had ever seen of moving
impressions having become permanently impressed
upon the retina, nor can I give the slightest guess at
the modus operandi of the nerve.' " *
These visions, or re-visions as they may be termed,
are not unknown to persons who are in sound mind
and good health ; and I find with some they are so
common, they never regard them as at all wonderful,
supposing that all persons are conscious of them. In
companies of five or six persons, I have sometimes
found two, and at other times three, who often see
ordinary objects with the eyes closed, especially such
as have frequently come before them during the day.
I have just received a letter from a lady, in which
she says : " Since strawberries began to ripen, or
rather since I began to pick them, I can see nothing
♦ Physiology of Common Life, by G. H. Lewes, Vol. n. p. 283.
PICTURES ON THE RETINA AND BRAIN. 21
else : they are before me whenever I close my eyes."
MuUer, to whom I have referred, says: "Any one
who can watch the changes which take place in him-
self, at the time when sleep is coming on, will some-
times be able to perceive the images distinctly in the
eyes. On waking, too, in a dark room, it sometimes
happens that images of landscapes and similar objects
still float before the eyes. Aristotle, Spinoza, and still
more recently Gruithuisen, have made this observation.
I have myself also very frequently seen these phan-
tasms, but am now less liable to them than formerly."
Generally these visions are seen with the eyes
closed, and the observer has no power to produce or
destroy them ; at other times they are seen with the
eyes open, and can be produced at will. " A painter
who inherited much of the patronage of Sir Joshua
Keynolds, and believed himself to possess a talent
superior to his, was so fully engaged that he told me,
that he had painted three hundred large and small
portraits in one year. The fact appeared physically
impossible, but the secret of his rapidity and astonish-
ing success was this : he required but one sitting of
his model. I watched him paint a portrait in miniature
in eight hours, of a gentleman whom I well knew ; it
was carefully done, and the resemblance was perfect.
T begged him to detail to me his method of procedure,
and he related what follows: 'When a sitter came I
looked attentively on him for half an hour, sketching
from time to time on the canvas. I did not require a
longer sitting. I removed the canvas and passed to
another person. When 1 wished to continue the first
portrait, I recalled the man to my mind. I placed him
22 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
on the chair, where I perceived him as distinctly as if
he were really there, and, I may add, in form and
color more decided and brilliant. I looked from time
to time at the imaginary figure, and went on painting,
occasionally stopping to examine the picture, exactly as
though the original were before me ; whenever I looked
toward the chair I saw the man.
"'This method made me very popular, and as I always
caught the resemblance, the sitters were delighted
that I spared them the annoying sittings of other
painters. In this way I laid by much money for
myself and my children.' " *
Combe, in the same valuable work on Phrenology,
gives another instance of an individual in sound health,
who was liable to the presentation of visions of objects
that he had previously beheld. He says : " Several
years ago I saw a person in the West of Scotland who
was liable to spectral illusions. He was then thirty-
eight years of age, in sound health, remarkably intelli-
gent, and by no means liable to extravagance either in
his statements or ideas. He mentioned that there was
almost constantly present to his mind the appearance
of a carpet in motion, and spotted with figures. On
visiting Glasgow, he saw a large log of wood, mounted
on two axles and four wheels, passing along the street ;
and on returning home, the apparition of the timber
and its vehicle, with the horses and driver, stood before
him in the dimensions and hues of actual existence.
" On another occasion he saw a funeral pass by the
end of Queen Street, in Glasgow, and for some time
afterward, whenever he shut his eyes or was in dark-
* Combe's Phrenology, p. 238.
PICTURES ON THE RETINA AND BRAIN. 23
ness, the procession moved before his mind as distinctly
as it had previously done before his eyes. These are
merely a few instances, out of many, of beings and
objects which he had seen reappearing, to his fancy.
He was not conscious of the appearance of any object
which he had not previously seen ; and he was rarely*
or almost never, troubled with these visions when
actual existences were before his eyes in broad day-
light; but at all times they appeared to a greater or
less extent when his eyes were shut or darkness
prevailed. He mentioned that this peculiarity had
descended to his son."
I know a family in which mother, daughter, and
granddaughter all possess this peculiarity. " Spectral
illusion " is, however, an improper name to designate
that by, which is simply re-vision, or the retention of
what has been seen, and its presentation to some inte-
rior organ of vision, that human beings evidently pos-
sess.
Dr. Kitto says, "I retain a clear impression or
image of everything at which I ever looked, although
the coloring of that impression is necessarily vivid in
proportion to the degree of interest with which the
object was regarded. I find this faculty of much use
and solace to me. By its aid I can live again at will
in the midst of any scene or circumstances by which I
have been once surrounded. By a voluntary act of
mind I can in a moment conjure up the whole of any
one out of the innumerable scenes in which the .slight-
est interest has at any time been felt by me." ^
Prom these facts it is evident, that the pictures
* Body and Mind, Dr. George Moore, p. 206.
2-t THE SOUL OF THINGS.
taken in by the eye on ordinary occasions, are, in some
individuals at least, wonderfully enduring; after many
years retaining all tlie perfection of detail and beauty
of coloring with which they were originally invested.
And there is good reason to believe that this is the
case with all persons; the pictures are retained, though
conditions may not be favorable for their manifestation.
If Hugh Miller and Dr. Macnish had never been at-
tacked by disease, could they have credited the exist-
ence in the mind of the pictures which they saw ? So
the mass of mankind dream not of the existence in
their own minds of all they ever saw ; there notwith-
standing, and only waiting till the veil shall be re-
moved. There is the little cradle in which we were
rocked, and the faces that bent over it; the oak under
whose branches we played and whoso acorns were our
treasures. The old school-house is there, and the por-
trait of every boy and girl that sat in it with us.
There hang all the landscapes we ever saw, with their
numberless hills, streams, fields, trees, beasts and birds;
in all hghts and shades, from early morn to dewy eve;
in all seasons, when Winter spreads his snowy mantle
to hide his nakedness, and when Summer sits smiling
at the beautiful prospect. In that gallery are all the
men and women we ever saw; the hurrying crowd that
swept past us in New York, Boston, or London — none
went so swiftly but he left his portrait. No beggar
but carries about with him pictures, that outnumber
and outvie all that art has made since the day of its
birth, — pictures better colored than Titian's, more
original than Raphael's, more beautiful than Guide's,
and more natural than Hogarth's. In sleep we some-
PICTURES ON THE RETINA AND BRAIN. 25
times wander through this souPs picture-gallery, and
catch glimpses of its beauty ; but of its grandeur and
perfection we have not even dreamed.
Wild as the statement may seem, I have no doubt that
our minds receive and retain impressions of what is
transpiring around us, even when we are unconscious
at the time of what is taking place. " A boy, whose
case is given by Dr. Abercrombie, was obliged at the
age of five years to have his skull trepanned, it having
been fractured by a fall from a window. He was of
course quite insensible at the time, and after his recov-
ery had no recollection either of the accident or the
operation. But when a grown man, fourteen years
after, he was attacked with fever ; and during the con-
sequent delirium he astonished his mother with an
account of the operation, describing minute particu-
lars, even to the dress worn by the surgeon, all which
his mother knew to be correct. He never alluded to
it in his after life."* The probability of this will
become more apparent as we proceed.
* Lecture by W. J. Fox.
CHAPTER II.
PICTURES ON SURROUXDIXG OBJECTS,
The rays of light, proceeding from objects in the
light, have the power of forming pictures on other bod-
ies, as well as on the retina of the eye. If the body
be sufEciently opaque and polished, we can readily see
them, as in an ordinary mirror, or a polished plate of
metal, or water; as wo observe in the river the trees
that grow by -its margin ; and although when the
object is removed no picture is visible, there is g&od
reason to believe that the picture thus formed is nearly,
if not entirely, as enduring as the substance on which
it is formed.
We visit a daguerrean room and sit before the
camera ; while thus sitting our picture is formed on a
prepared silver plate, and while wo sit it is distinctly
visible upon it ; it is taken out of the camera, and now,
nothing whatever can be seen; a searching microscopic
investigation discovers no line ; but, on a suitable appli-
cation, the image appears as if by magic. It is no
more there, now that it is visible, than it was before ;
all that has been done is to make that visible which as
really existed on the plate before, or no application
could have revealed it. If the process of making
these images visible had never been discovered, who
could have believed that an image was formed upon a
26
PICTURES ON SURROUNDING OBJECTS. 27
plate under such cif cumstances, and lay sleeping there
till art should awaken it ?
If the silvered plate had not been previously made
sensitive, some will say, the image of the sitter would
never have been retained ; but fiicts prove that this is
incorrect. G. H. Lewes says, " If a wafer be laid on
a surface of polished metal, which is then breathed
upon, and if, when the moisture of the breath has
evaporated, the wafer be shaken off, we shall find that
the whole polished surface is not as it was before,
although our senses can detect no difference; for if
we breathe again upon it, the surface will be moist
everjrwhere, except on the spot previously sheltered
by the wafer, which will now appear as a spectral
image upon the surface. Again and again we breathe,
and the moisture evaporates, but still the spectral
wafer reappears. This experiment succeeds after the
lapse of many TnontJis, if the metal be carefully put
aside where its surface cannot be disturbed." On try-
ing a similar experiment, I have repeatedly brushed
the surface of the polished plate with a camePs hair
brush, and yet, on breathing upon it, the image of a
coin previously laid upon it was distinctly visible.
" If a sheet of paper on which a key has been laid,
be exposed for some minutes to the sunshine, and then
instantaneously viewed in the dark, the key being
removed, a fading spectre of the key will be visible.
Let this paper be put aside for many months where
nothing can disturb it, and then in darkness be laid
upon a plate of hot metal, the spectre of the key will
again appear.
" In the case of bodies more highly phosphorescent
28 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
than paper, the spectre of many different objects which
may have been laid on in fiuccession will, on warming,
emerge in their proper order."
" If a screen cut in a pattern be held over a polished
metallic surface at a small distance, and the whole
breathed on, after the vapor has evaporated so that no
trace is left upon the surface, the pattern comes out
when it is breathed on again."
These are facts whose truth can be readily test-
ed. Here there is no previous preparation beyond
that of producing the polished surface, and yet images
are formed, even without contact. And where the
surface of a body is unpolished, there is no doubt that
pictures are still formed upon it, though the diflSculty
of making them visible is greatly increased. Thus
Sir David Brewster, whose authority on this subject
cannot be questioned, says, "All bodies throw off
emanations in greater or less size and with greater or
less velocities ; these particles enter more or less into
the pores of solid and fluid bodies, sometimes resting
upon their surface, and sometimes permeating them alto-
getJier. These emanations, when feeble, show them-
selves in images; when stronger, in chemical changes ;
when stronger stiU, in their action on the olfactory
nerves ; and when thrown off most copiously and rap-
idly, in heat affecting the nerves of touch ; in photo-
graphic action, dissevering and recombining the ele-
ments of nature ; and in phosphorescent and luminous
emanations, exciting the retina and producing vision."
These emanations of wljich he speaks are passing
from all bodies by night as well as day, and have
the power of transferring the appearances of objects
PICTURES ON SURROUNDING OBJECTS. 29
to others in their vicinity, not merely upon their sur-
faces, but even into their interiors, so that the rough-
ness of a body can be no hindrance to its reception of
these pictures.
Niepce de St. Victor, " having exposed to the sun
for a quarter of an hour an engraving which had been
kept several days in the dark, applied it to a sheet
of sensitive paper, and after four hours' contact in tJie
dark he obtained a negative picture of the engraving.
If the distance between the engraving and the paper
is one-eighth of an inch, or if a film of collodion or
gelatine is interposed, the picture will still be ob-
tained." *
More recent experiments show that the previous
exposure to the sunshine is unnecessary. "The im-
pression of an engraving was made by laying it face
downward on a silver plate iodized, and placing an
amalgamated copper plate upon it ; it was left in dark-
ness fifteen hours, when an impression of the engrav-
ing had been made on the amalgamated plate through
the paper." f The same may be done, it is said, on
plates of iron, zinc, or copper. "An iodized silver
plate was placed in darkness with a coil of string on
it, and with a polished silver plate suspended one-
eighth of an inch above it ; after four hours they were
exposed to the vapors of mercury, which became uni-
formly deposited on the iodized plate ; but on the sil-
ver one there was a sharp image of the string ; so that
the image was formed in the dark, and oven without
contact." t
*See Annuals of Sdentifio Discovery from 1858.
f Mrs. Somerville'd Connection of tlie Physical Sciences, p. 237.
8*
30 THE SOUL OF TlflXGS.
That photographic impressions are not confined to
the mere surfaces on which they are visible, is evident.
Every daguerreotypist knows the diflSculty there is in
effacing impressions from a plate ; for after polishing a
plate once used, and using it again, the image of the
former sitter, to the chagrin of the artist, will fre-
quently reappear. After a photographic impression
upon a plate has been to all appearance wholly re-
moved by polishing, so that another image could be
taken upon it without the reappearance of the former,
repeated discharges of electricity will reproduce the
impression, showing that it had sunk into the sub-
stance of the plate to a considerable depth. And
since this is the case, it must bo evident that the
roughness of a body is no hindrance to the formation
of pictures upon or within it ; for the condition of the
surface can make no difference in the capability of the
interior to receive impressions.
The rapidity with which photographic impressions
may be made is shown by the following experiment :
" A wheel was made by Mr. Talbot to revolve as rap-
idly as a combination of multiplying wheels could
make it fly ; and when lit by an electric flash its pho-
tograph was taken, and in it every spoke was distinctly
visible as if the wheel had been at perfect rest, though
the duration of the illuminating spark, according to
the experiments of Prof. Wheatstone, is only one-mil-
lionth of a second." ^
Apply these indisputable facts, and in the world
around us radiant forces are passing from all objects
to all objects in their vicinity, and during every mo-
* Annual of Scientific Discovery for 1860, p. 102.
PICTURES ON SURROUNDING OBJECTS. 31
ment of the day and night are daguerreotyping the
appearances of each upon the other ; the images thus
made, not merely resting upon the surface, but sinking
into the interior of them ; there held with astonishing
tenacity, and only waiting for a suitable application to
reveal themselves to the inquiring gaze. You cannot,
then, enter a room by night or day, but you leave on
going out your portrait behind you. You cannot lift
your hand, or wink your eye, or the wind stir a hair*of
your head, but each movement is infallibly registered
for coming ages. The pane of glass in the window,
the brick in the wall, and the paving-stone in the
street, catch the pictures of all passers-by, and faith-
fully preserve them. Not a leaf waves, not an insect
crawls, not a ripple moves, but each motion is recorded
by a thousand faithful scribes in infallible and indeli-
ble scripture.
This is just as true of all past time. Prom the
first dawn of light upon this infant globe, when
round its cradle the steamy curtains hung, to this
moment. Nature has been busy photographing every
moment. What a picture-gallery is hers ! There are
the heaving crust, as the fiery tides pass under it ; the
belching volcanoes, the glaring lava torrents, the con-
densing waters, the rushing floods, and the terrible
struggles of the early stormy times ; the watery ex-
panse unshored ; the new-bom naked islands peeping
above the waves; the first infusorial points, too small to
leave a fossil trace behind them ; and the earliest fucoids
that clung to the wave-washed rock. Every radiate
and mollusc of the Silurian era, every ganoid of the
Devonian, has sat for its portrait, and here it is. Not a
32 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
leaf that grew in the Carboniferous forests, not a beetle
that crawled, nor frog that hopped ; not a monster of
the Oolite, nor beast of the Tertiary, wanting. There
are grand panoramas of the past, containing all that
man ever did, — the first rude savages of the world,
their hunts, their wars, their progress ; the history of
all nations and peoples from the cradle to the grave.
" They may be there," says the cool reader, " but how
shSU we be able to see them ? None but a madman
would dream of such a thing.''
It would be strange if Nature admitted no mortal
to her matchless galleries ; if, after employing myriads
of artists in drawing the waking and sleeping world,
she should permit no human eye to behold her instruc-
tive pictures. To catch a shadow, was once the acme
of the impossible ; now, country lads, with a camera
for a trap, do it in almost every little village. And
this is in appearance no greater impossibility than that
was once regarded. There is nothing more diflScult
than to tell what can not be done; and many wise
men have made themselves foolish prophets in attempt-
ing it.
I know of no chemical application that can make
visible to ordinary observers these pictures with which
all objects abound ; but in some individuals the brain
is sufficiently sensitive to perceive them when it is
brought into proximity to the objects on which they
are impressed.
CHAPTER III.
P8TCH0METBT.
This discovery was made in consequence of reading
of Dr. Buchanan's researches and discoveries in another
department of this great field ; and some account of
his discoveries is necessary in order to the understand-
ing of this. In 1849 he writes : "About nine years
since, in conversation with Bishop , of the Episco-
pal Church, he informed me that his own sensibility
was so acute, that if he should by accident touch a
piece of brass, even in the night, when he could> not
see what he touched, he immediately felt the influence
through his system, and could recognize the offensive
metallic taste."* This remark would have led to
nothing farther, had it been related to many, but in
this case the right thing was told to the right man ;
and he commenced a series of experiments, placing
metals of various kinds into the hands of persons of
great sensibihty, and in this way found that there
was a number who possessed the power of naming
metals, without any knowledge but that which was
conmiunicated in this way by touch. As the experi-
ments were continued, it was found that other sub-
stances could thus affect sensitive individuals. " Su-
gar, salt, pepper, acids, and other substances of a de-
* Buchanan's Journal of Man, Vol. i. p. 61.
83
34 THE SOCL OF THINGS.
cided taste, made so distinct an impression that each
could be recognized and named, by many of those
upon whom tlio experiment was performed. These
experiments were carefully pcrfonned ; the substance
either concealed from sight, or enveloped in paper, and
sometimes no person present knew what substance
was being tested until the close of the experiment.
Out of a class of one hundred and thirty students at
the Eclectic Medical College, Cincinnati, forty-three of
them signed a declaration that when various medicines
were enveloped in paper, so as to be unknown to
them, by holding them in their hands from five to
twenty minutes, the distinct effects were produced
upon them similar to those which would have been
produced by the action of the same medicines admin-
istered in the ordinary way. Dr. Buchanan adds that
" when fin emetic was the subject of the experiment,
the individual was able to avoid vomiting only by sus-
pending the experiment." *
After proceeding thus far, he thought that sensitive
persons might be affected by contact with living beings
in a similar manner; and this conjecture he found
abundantly verified by experiment. Persons of highly
impressible constitution could, by placing the hand on
different portions of the head and body, " experience
at each point a distinct effect, corresponding to the
peculiar vital functions of the part. Nor was contact
absolutely necessary. Highly sensitive persons com
ing into the presence of diseased individuals, recog-
nized the disease, and were able at once to locate it."
Without giving all the steps taken by Dr. Buchanan
• * Journal of 3Ian, Vol. i., page 54.
PSYCHOMETRY. 35
in his researches, it may be suflScient to say that about
two years after making his first discoveries, he found
individuals so sensitive that the influence communi-
cated by the writer to a letter could be recognized by
them, when the letter was placed in contact with the
forehead, and in some cases the character and habits
of the individual writing the letter could be thus given
with wonderful accuracy.
This will doubtless seem to some too marvellous for
belief; but the evidence on this subject is now over-
whelming. I know numbers of persons who by tak-
ing a letter in the hand, or placing it on the forehead,
without seeing the writing, or having the slightest
idea of the writer, can describe his character with as
great, or greater accuracy than his most intimate
friends. Any person desirous of testing this can read-
ily do so.
On reading the statements of Dr. Buchanan, I re-
solved to see what portion of them I could verify by
experiment. My sister, Anne Denton Cridge, being
highly impressible, was able, in a short time, to read
character from letters readily ; and what was still more
wonderful to us, and at the same time inexplicable,
was, that at times she saw and described the writers of
letters she was examining, and their surroundings,
telling, at times, even the color of hair and eyes cor-
rectly.
After testing this thoroughly by numerous exper-
iments, being intensely interested in geology and pale-
ontology, it occurred to me that perhaps something
might be done by psychometry — the term given by
Dr. Buchanan to the power by which character was de-
36 THE SOUL OP'tHIXGS.
scribed by contact with persons, or from letters — in
these (lei>artmentrf of science. If there could be im-
pressed upon a letter the image of the writer and his
surroundings during the brief space of time that the
paper was subjected to their influence, — and this was
the conclusion I eventually arrived at, — why could
not rocks receive impressions of surroimding objects,
some of which they have been in the immediate neigh-
borhood of for years, and why could they not com-
municate this in a similar manner to sensitive per-
sons ; thus giving us the clue to the conditions of the
earth and its inhabitants during the vast eras of the
past?
I accordingly commenced, some ten years ago, a
series of experiments with mineral and fossil speci-
mens and archeological remains, and was delighted to
find that without possessing any previous knowledge
of the specimen, or even seeing it, the history of its
time passed before the gaze of the seer like a grand
panoramic view ; sometimes almost with the rapidity
of lightning, and at other times so slowly and distinctly
that it could be described as readily as an ordinary
scene. The specimen to be examined was generally
placed upon the forehead, and held there during the
examination; but this was not absolutely necessary,
some psychometers being able to see when holding a
specimen in the hand.
The result of some of the experiments, made at vari-
ous times, I give in the words of the psychometer at
the time. In some cases the phraseology has been
slightly changed, the idea never; and generally the
exact words are given.
CHAPTER IV.
EXPEBIUBNTS.
OuB earliest experiments were by no means as sat-
isfactory as they subsequently became ; the power of
the psychometer increasing as the experiments con-
tinued. I present many of these, because they show
the manifestation of this power as we first became
acquainted with it.
EXPERIMENT I,
Piece of limestone, full of small fossil shells, from
Quindaro, Kansas, a small town on the Missouri River.
Examined by my sister, Mrs. Cridge. Specimen un-
seen, and nothing known by her regarding it.
"It seems to me there is a deep hole here. Oh,
what shells ! small shells ; so many. I see water ; it
looks like a river running along. What a high hill I
almost perpendicular ; it seems as if the water had cut
it in two ; it is not so high on the other side. The hill
is covered with sand and gravel."
In this case the present condition of the place,
where I obtained the specimen, was given, and, as far
as I am acquainted with the spot, it is a very accurate
description. This piece of rock had taken in the pic-
tures of the turbid Missouri that swept past it, the hill
4 87
38 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
that hung over it, and the country in general around
it, and, to the eye of the psychomcter, they became
apparently as plainly visible as to a spectator on the
spot.
EXPERmEXT II.
Piece of quartz from Panama.
Examined by my wife, Mrs. Denton. Saw it, but
knew nothing respecting it.
" I see what looks like a monstrous insect. Its body
is covered with shelly rings, and its head is furnished
with antennae that are nearly a foot long. It stands
with its head against a rock that looks like this. I see
an enormous snake coiled up among wild, wiry grass.
The climate of the country seems to be much warmer
than this ; the vegetation is tropical."
The animal seen was probably a land crustacean of
some kind. The whole of the vision is evidently in
harmony with the tropical condition of the country,
from which the specimen was obtained.
EXPERTMEirr izr.
Fragment of lava from Kilauea, on Hawaii, one of the
Sandwich Islands.
Mrs. Cridge. Specimen unseen by her. She had
no idea of what it was, nor did she know that I pos-
sessed any such specimen.
" I see the ocean, and ships sailing on it. This must
be an island, for the water is all around.
" Now I am turned from where I saw the vessels,
and am looking at something most terrific. It seems
as if an ocean of fire was pouring over a precipice,
and boiling as it pours. The sight permeates my
LAVA FROM KILAUEA. 39
whole being, or the terror which it inspires. I see it
flow into the ocean, and the water boils intensely. I
seem to be standing on one side of it."
The feeling of terror, produced by the sight, did not
entirely pass oflF for an hour. It seemed to be as great
as if she had actually stood upon the spot, and beheld
the whole as an ordinary spectator.
Those who have read Mr. Coan's account of the
eruption of Kilauea, in 1840, will see the accuracy of
the description. The specimen of lava examined,
which was not larger* than a hazel-nut, was, I under-
stood, ejected from Kilauea, during that eruption,
when, as Mr. Coan says, " a river of fused minerals, of
the breadth of Niagara, and of a gory red, fell in one
emblazoned sheet, one raging torrent, into the ocean."
There can be no guess-work about such a descrip-
tion as this. I am well satisfied that my sister had not
the most remote idea of what the substance was that
she was trying, until the vision was presented to her
view, nor indeed then ; and it will be seen, in experi-
ments that I shall present, that my knowledge had
nothing to do with calling up these images before her.
EXPERIMENT IV.
I wrapped a number of specimens of various kinds
in separate papers, and Mrs. Denton took one, neither
of us knowing anything respecting it. She said, —
" The first thing I see is a volcano, or what I take to
be one. An elevation of considerable height appears
before me, and down its side flows a torrent of melted
matter, though torrent does not convey the idea ; it is
broad and shallow, and moves, not rapidly, like water,
40 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
but croi^ps slowly along. Now I sec another stream
pour over the top of the first, and the whole side of
tho mountain is covered. This second flow moves
much more rapidly than the first. This specimen must
be hiva."
On examination it proved to be a piece of brick-
colored lava, i)icked up on the banks of the Upper
Missouri, where it is common; having been washed
down i)robably from the Rocky Mountain region.
AVe have the means, then, by this wondrous power,
of calling up and examining in" minute detail the vol-
canic eruptions of all time, provided we can obtain
specimens of their products; — see Tenerifie's mighty
crater when covered Avith glowing lava, and its surg-
ing waves beat madly against the black, craggy preci-
pitins that gird them; — read the story of Vesuvius, —
that fiory old man of the mountain, — from the time
that he was a screaming baby. Etna's history, written
by his own linger, before the reed was fashioned or
the papyrus j)repared, will be read by coming savans,
and his ruddy page shall shed new light on many dark
and mysterious subjects.
EXPEItlMEXT V,
Fossil fish-bone found near Painesville, in a bone bed,
of, probably, about the same age as the Hamilton group
of the Devonian formation.
Mrs. Foote. Had no idea of what it was.
"I see clouds of steam rising from the side of a
hill, and on one side a large ledge of blue rocks.
" I now see something long and dark that looks like
a fish ; there seems to be a large hump or bunch near
FOSSIL FISH BONE. 41
the head. I should think it is ten or twelve feet long,
— perhaps not quite so long as that. I see now that
there is no hump on its head. What I thought so is a
rock that hangs over near its head. High rocks hang
over the water, and trees grow on them. East of me
is what seems to be the lake or ocean. I can see the
bottom of the water; it consists of sand and gravel.
What a most beautiful place 1 It seems so much so
that it appears artificial."
Some may think it strange that trees should be
spoken of as growing during this period ; yet, I think,
there is httle doubt that the earth supported a luxuri-
ant vegetation even before this period ; not as much
so as during the succeeding Carboniferous period, but
luxuriant compared with the flora of our temperate
zone at this time. In the very bone-bed from which
the specimen was taken, I found the impression of a
tree nearly a foot in diameter.
EXPERIMENT VL
Same specimen.
Mrs. Denton. Had no knowledge of it, or of the
previous examination.
"I see a point of land extending into a large body
of water. The water looks to me like a lake. It
hardly seems large enough for the ocean. I can see
along the shore for miles. There is a singular-looking
object in the water, about eight or ten feet long ; and,
from just below the head, it tapers the whole length
nearly to a point. It has a skin without scales, like a
cat-fish. I see it dive obliquely down, fasten itself at
the bottom, and then wave its body to and fro. This
4*
42 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
is a largo fish. It has six fins; two pectoral, two
ventral, one caudal, and one anal. Its eyes and mouth
are large. It has no teeth, but a hard, sharp, bony
gum. It sucks its prey, and when doing so, the open-
ing of the mouth is nearly round; but when closed,
there are comers on each side."
She now became fatigued ; but the examination was
continued on the following day.
"Now I see the skeleton of it within the body.
There is a large bony plate below the head, and to it
other bones are fastened in some way. The back-bone
at the upper part is as large as my wrist, but not one-
third as thick laterally as vertically ; but near the tail
the vertebrae are nearly circular.
" I see roe witliin it. The eggs are quite large, but
the layers are thin ; there are two of them, one lower
than the other. The lower one is the more developed.
" I catch a glimpse of a singular animal. The body
seems roundish, but it is at such a distance, as well as
in the water, that I cannot describe it minutely. The
upper part is out of the water, and seems spread out
like a sail, and the wind blows the animal along. It is
so gauzy that I can see the light through it ; but there
are dark lines that look like ribs supporting it ; and
between the upright ribs are horizontal ones, jointed
in the middle, that fold up in a very singular fashion,
closing completely like a fan, when the animal wishes
to sink. I see eight or ten of them now near each
other."
There is considerable difference between the two
descriptions, just as there would be in the descrip-
tions of any scene, given by two independent observ-
FOSSIL FISH BONE. 43
ers. The scene in both cases is the shore of a large
body of water ; both see a large fish, and nearly agree
as to its length. It is, in both cases, the principal ob-
ject seen, the bone of a fish being the subject of exam-
ination, but neither person having any idea of it.
What remarkable coincidences indeed, if this were
mere guess-work, or chance. It might have been a
piece of chert from a lead mine, shale from a coal mine,
a fragment of a mastodon's tooth, or bone from some ex-
isting fish or beast. No mere ordinary sensation could
have distinguished it from these ; yet, here, without a
hint or question, the conditions present themselves to
two independent observers, that, I think, paleontolo-
gists will at least consider probably existed during the
period when the fossil under consideration was a part
of a living organism.
What a peep into the Devonian times this gives us.
Trees adorn the land ; the water, in places, at least, is
clear enough to see the gravelly bottom ; large fishes
are basking in it, and genuine Nautilidao, undreamed
of by the naturalist, are floating upon the placid waters.
What myriads of organic forms must have lived,
with bodies that could not under any circumstances
be preserved as fossils : jelly-fish, radiates of infinitely
diversified forms ; mollusks, destitute of shells, or hav-
ing shells too fragile for preservation. Of all these, the
ordinary paleontologist knows no more than the histo-
rian knows of nations that flourished before letters
were invented, or than the ancient astronomers knew
of planets invisible to the naked eye. As the tele-
scope came to the assistance of the astronomer, and
gave him more correct conceptions of known celestial
44 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
bodies, and revealed to his gaze the otherwise invisi-
ble worlds of space, so the science of psychometry will
shed new light upon many extinct animals and plants
of which we have some knowledge, and reveal to us
innumerable or^nic forms of whose existence, without
its assistance, we should be as ignorant as the world
was of the existence of Uranus and her moons before
the telescope was invented.
EXPERIMENT FZT.
Calcareous tufa from the Temple of Neptune, Paes-
tum, twelve miles from Mount Vesuvius.
Mrs. Denton. Specimen unseen, and nothing known
by her regarding it.
" I see near me deep ravines and high hills. Some
of the hills appear destitute of vegetation and look
rocky and naked. Others in the distance are worn
down and appear covered with verdure, and a mellow
light shines over the country. At the foot of a moun-
tain, wliich looks to me like a volcano, are a few houses
having the appearance of a village ; but they vanish
almost instantly. That mountain is a volcano. I see
smoke and vapor mingled issuing from it, and it
spreads over so as to hide the view from me in that
direction. The sea is behind me. That mountain and
its ejections are more strikingly visible than anything
else. Around here is a great waste, as if the country
had been covered by eruptions from the mountain,
making a dark brown surface which is above the origi-
nal level of the country."
Why was not the temple seen ? it may be asked. I
do not know ; but if the experiment had been contin-
STBIATED LIMESTONE BLOCK. 45
tied or renewed, I think it is probable that it would
liave been. Vesuvius seems, for the time being, to
have overshadowed everything.
EXFERUIENT VUL
Striated block of limestone, Grand River, Paines-
ville, Ohio.
Mrs. Denton. Saw the specimen, and may have had
some idea of its nature.
"I see* a mountain ridge of ice, gorgeous, magnifi-
cent, and yet terrible. The ridge has a sharp edge
with deep notches in it. The sides are ragged. The
whole mass seems moving slowly along. I can hear it
grind and scrape as it passes over the rock. I believe
it must be in water; it certainly could not move on
land in that way. The lower part is in water."
(Turned the specimen over.) " I see no water on this
side, but great spires of ice rise very high."
Nothing can seem much stranger than that the
grinding sound of a moving glacier which passed over
the country ages ago should have been communicated
to, and retained by, an imbedded boulder, so as to be
heard by a person to-day; and yet I am as well as-
sured of its truth, as I am of anything that has not
come within the sphere of my own sensation. If light
can impress itsqlf upon objects so that they retain its
influence for centuries ; if radiant forces, proceeding
from objects in the dark, can form pictures of those
bodies upon contiguous bodies, — and these facts sci-
ence recognizes, — why may not the waves of sound
register themselves so as to perpetuate their exist-
ence, and give that explanation to the ear that the eye
46 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
of the psychomcter demands, as the life-like panorama
passes before it ?
That sounds are registered in the human brain is
evident ; and so thorouglily is this done that they can
be heard by the individual years afterward, and, what
is most surprising, with even more than their original
clearness and force.
Dr. Macnish, in his statement of the illusions to
which he was subjected during an attack of fever
referred to in page 16, says, " But though by closing
my eyes I could thus dissipate the spectacle, I found
it impossible to get rid of the accompanying music.
This was the grand march in the opera of Aladdin,
and was performed by the orchestra with more superb
and imposing eflfect, and with greater loudness, than I
had ever heard it before; it was executed, indeed,
with tremendous energy. This air I tried every eflFort
to dissipate, by forcibly endeavoring to call other tunes
to mind, but it was in vain. However completely the
vision might be dispelled, the music remained in spite
of every effort to banish it."
The air played at the theatre was no more lost than
.the scene displayed; and under the peculiar condi-
tions produced by the fever, it was executed with even
greater effect than before. The outward ear probably
heard not, but the inward ear heard, more intensely
than it was possible for the outward ear to do.
A blind man, mentioned by Dr. Macnish, was subject
to illusions of sound ; " for he often had the conscious-
ness of hearing music so strongly impressed upon him
that it was with difficulty his friends could convince
him it was purely ideal."
PH0S0TYPE8. 47
"In October, 1833, a woman, aged twenty-eight,
bom in Piedmont, went to a village ball ; she danced
during three days in a sort of frenzy, and after-
wards heard without cessation the melodies which had
charmed her. They were Montferrines, and each gave
place successively to the other. This continued until
she died."*
Probably she was diseased, and her disease produced
such a condition of the brain that the melodies ex-
isting there could be heard. Disease possesses no
power to make sights or sounds ; they are in the brain,
and all that disease does is, occasionally, to produce
the conditions by which they shall become manifest
to the individual. Pacts indicate that what we once
hear, however carelessly, becomes indelibly impressed
upon the mind, so that under extraordinary conditions
it may be repeated with all the accuracy with which it
was originally impressed. One step farther, and we
have the impression made on material objects retained,
then revealed to human consciousness, as in many of
these experiments.
Dr. Abercrombie, who deserves credit for recording
many strange and valuable facts, relates the following :
"A girl aged seven years, an orphan of the lowest
rank, residing in the house of a farmer, by whom she
was employed in attending cattle, was accustomed to
sleep in an apartment separated by a very thin parti-
tion from one which was frequently occupied by an
itinerant fiddler. Ttis person was a musician of very
considerable skill, and often spent a part of the night
in performing pieces of a refined description ; but his
* De Boiemont on Halludnatione, p. 316.
48 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
performance was not taken notice of by the cliild,
except as a disagreeable noise. After a residence of
six months in this family she fell into bad health, and
was removed to the house of a benevolent lady, where,
on her recovery, after a protracted illness, she was
employed as a servant. Some years after she came to
reside with this lady, the most beautiful music was often
heard in the house during the night, which excited
no small interest and wonder in the family, and many
a waking hour was spent in endeavors to discover the
invisible minstrel. At length the sound was traced to
the sleeping-room of the girl, who was found fiist
asleep, but uttering from her lips a sound exactly re-
sembling the sweetest tones of a small violin. On. -
farther observation it was found that, after being about
two hours in bed, she became restless and began to
mutter to herself; she then uttered sounds precisely
resembling the tuning of a violin, and at length, after
some prelude, dashed oflF into an elaborate piece of
music, which she performed in a clear and accurate
manner, and with a sound exactly resembling the most
delicate modulation of the instrument, and then began
exactly where she had stopped in the most correct
manner. These paroxysms recurred at regular inter-
vals, ranging from one to fourteen and even twenty
nights, and they were generally followed by a degree
of fever and pain over various parts of the body.
When awake she showed no kind of turn for music."
As nothing we see is ever effaced, so nothing we
hear over dies out. Not only is there a wonderful
cabinet in the mind containing pictures of all we ever
saw, but there is also a storehouse of latent sounds
PHONOTYPES. 49
containing all we ever heard. The lullaby sung by
our cradle, the patter of the rain upon the roof, the
sighing of the wind, the roll of the thunder, the dash
of the falling water, the murmur of affection, the oath
of the inebriate, the hymn in the church, the song at
the concert, the words of wisdom and folly, the whis-
per of love, — all are faithfully registered. And our
experiments have convinced me of what is still more
difficult to believe, that all sounds register themselves
on all objects within their influence, and that these
phonotypes, as they may be termed, are almost, if not
entirely, as enduring as the objects themselves. Phi-
losophers tell us that " the slightest movement of the
smallest body, in the remotest region, produces results
which are perpetual, which diffuse themselves through
all space, and which, though they may be metamor-
phosed, cannot be destroyed."* These experiments
demonstrate, to a great extent, the accuracy of this
statement.
If we could become at once cognizant of all the
sounds that are locked up in the objects surrounding
us, or in our own brains, what a din would be presented
to our ears. Occasionally individuals seem to pass
into this interior world of sounds, to their great aston-
ishment. "A farmer in the neighborhood of Edin-
burgh, accustomed to drink freely, was invited to the
funeral of a friend. He took a dram before he left
home, and another at the house of his deceased friend.
He had some of his acquaintances to dinner, with
whom he continued to carouse until late at night. On
the following morning he heard five hundred people
* Baekle'8 History of Civilization, Vol. ii., p. 384.
6
50 THE BOUL OF THINGS.
talking at once. Ho compared what he heard to the
confusion of tongues at Babel."* The surgeon bled
him, and in two days ho was cured.
As our experiments proceeded, the power of recog-
nizing sounds increased, though it never became as
active as the power of vision.
Incredible as it may appear, all forces that operate
upon bodies leave their impress upon them just as
indelibly as the radiant forces. Or, in other words,
what we call insensible matter receives the impression
of whatever force is applied to it, treasures it up, and
can impart it to a sufficiently sensitive individual. A
pebble, that has been rolled to and fro by Ihe waves,
retains the rolling sensation communicated to it, and
with such tenacity that the heat of a furnace does not
cause it to relinquish that hold. Thus every body
retains, not only all that light and sound have commu-
nicated to it, but all that motion has impressed upon
it ; and the autobiography of the meanest boulder by
the roadside would fill more volumes than all our
libraries contain. The nail retains the impression
made upon it by hammering, the clay by grinding, the
brick by burning, the wool of the cloth, every step
of the torturing process by which it was transferred
from the back of the sheep to the back of the
man.
Hence it is, probably, that all fossil remains of an-
imals are imbued with the feelings of the animals
of which they formed a part, and, under their influence,
the psychometer, for the time being, feels all that was
felt by them ; and thus the characteristic actions of
* Diticases of the Brain and Mind, Wintslow, p. 310.
GLACIAL SCRATCHED PEBBLE. 51
monsters that have been extinct for millions of years
can be accurately realized and described. This branch
of psychometry may be termed psychopathy; and I
find that generally, in examining specimens, seeing
and feeUng go together ; though some psychometers
only see, while others feel, most readily, the influence
of a specimen, but can see nothing.
EXPERIMENT IX,
Pebble of Trenton limestone, with glacial scratches
upon its surface, picked up near Lyons, Wayne county,
New York.
Mrs. Denton. Specimen unseen and unknown.
" I feel as if I were below an immense body of water,
— so deep that I cannot see down through it, and yet
it seems as if 1 could see upward through it for miles.
Now I am going, going, and there is something above
me, I cannot tell what. It is pushing me on. It is
above and around me. It must be ice ; I am frozen in.
The motion of the mass I am in is not uniform; it
pitches forward, then halts and pitches again, then
goes grinding, pressing, and crushing along, a moun-
tain mass.
"All is dark. Now, I see a tinge of crimson, mixed
with purple. What can it be ? How beautiful I I feel
water again, as if I were drenched with it." (What
kind of water is it ?) " It is not rain. It seems like a
mixture of fresh and salt water ; a Uttle while the one
and then the other. I see hghts before me, apparently
reflected from rising vapors. They are finer and more
broken than those I saw before, and reflect the colors
of the rainbow.
52 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
"What an awful chasm we are approaching ; we can-
not cross it without beinp^ dashed to pieces I am sure.
I say we, because I feel completely distinct from the
mass that moves me. There is that chasm again I It
is terrific I We are going right to it, dashing most
recklessly. We shall never get out or across. (Pause.)
That is most astonishing. I felt desperate as we ap.
preached the brink, but it was full of water, and we
• floated across. I wonder if that is not the lake ? so
deep and so broad. Why did I not see the water?
The first I knew, I felt the sensation of floating. Now
we are aground. All around us is shallow water, ex-
cept a few islands, which are not high enough to be
dry.
"Now, I see ice before me over a wide field. There
are thousands of spires melting gradually away. There
is a flood all over the country, but the water is not
very deep. There is a shallow sea this side of the
chasm, except a little spot of land here and there, and
that is completely water-soaked.
" There are five icebergs in sight, some of them as
high as mountains ; they are anchored ; the sight is in-
describably grand. There is another at my right that
has a tall spire and a large mass for a body. It is rock-
ing, and I beheve will tip over yet. It is rounded at
the base. There is a current in the water that dis-
turbs it.^'
What a fine picture of the latter part of the drift
period in North America, when a sheet of ice covered a
large part of Canada and British America, from Lake
Ontario, which was then probably an arm of the ocean,
to the Arctic regions; as at the present time a glacial
GLACIAL SCRATCHED PEBBLE. 53
sheet covers northwestern Greenland. On comes the
icy mass toward the south, the only direction in which
motion is possible, because the only direction in which
the ice can melt, and room be found for the mass con-
stantly increasing by falling snows. On it comes, bearing
with it the rocks that it tears oflF in its passage, slides
into this arm of the sea that we have supposed to
occupy the place of Lake Ontario, thus forms icebergs,
which float southward till they strand on what is now
the northern part of the State of New York, and leave
their rocky burdens to form the boulders that are so
common over the face of that country.
How often, on looking at some gray old boulder,
we have wished it could relate its history, and tell us
what had passed before and around it during its event-
fill career. Little did we dream of the possibility
of that, and more than that. These "hard heads"
are wise heads, too, in a sense, and much they can
teach us when we are prepared to learn. They are
"chiels taking notes," indifferent spectators though
they appear, and what they report may be depended
upon as true. What is described by the psychometer
is but a small portion of what is presented. At times,
one panoramic view after another is unfolded in too
rapid succession for the most meagre description.
I know the explanation that some will offer to ac-
count for these marvels. The self-confident biologist
says, " I know wefl how it is done ; I can make my
subjects see anything that I have in- my mind. I imag-
ine a snake, a crocodile, a volcano, and they are seen
at once by my subjects ; and this is done in the same
manner." You are mistaken, however. I have repeat-
6»
54 THE 80UL OF THINGS.
edly tried to influence the minds of psychometers,
when making examinations, and at all times without
avail. Many specimens have been examined when no
one knew what they were, and yet the results were
quite as accurate as at any other time; indeed, in
almost every case, statements have been made and
ideas advanced of wliich we had not previously the
most distant thought. Take the following example : -r-
EXFERIMEST X.
Out of a number of minerals and fossils lying upon
the table, Mrs. Denton, with closed eyes, picked up
one, no one knowing its character.
" I am in the ocean, deep under the water. I can
see a long way, for the water is clear. There are mil-
lions of minute coral polyps busily at work. I am
looking down upon them. I observe one kind of coral
that is very peculiar; it is a foot in diameter at the bot-
tom, and rises in terraces to the top, where it is much
smaller. I should judge this specimen to be coral, or
something worked over by coral, though it feels noth-
ing like it."
On examination it proved to be a piece of flat
coral about an inch long and an eighth of an inch
in thickness, from the Niagara group of the Silu-
rian formation, at Lockport, N. Y. This is a specimen
of various experiments tried in a somewhat similar
manner and with like results, conclusively demonstrat-
ing that the biological explanation is an incorrect one.
EXPERIMENT 2[I.
A small fragment of the enamel of a mastodon's
tooth, cut ofi* so that it might not be recognized, being
ENAMEL OP mastodon's TOOTH. Si-
about one-twentieth of an inch in thickness, and three-
tenths of an inch in diameter. The tooth was dug, by
miners in search of lead, out of a crevice thirty feet
beneath the surface, near Hazel Green, Wisconsin.
Mrs. Denton. She did not see it, and had no idea of
what it was.
" My impression is that it is a part of some monstrous
animal, probably a part of a tooth. I feel like a per-
fect monster, with heavy legs, unwieldy head, and
Very large body. I go down to a shallow stream to
drink. (I can hardly speak, my jaws are so heavy.)
1 feel like getting down on all fours.
" What a noise comes through the wood I I have an
impulse to answer it. My ears are very large and
leathery, and I can almost fancy they flap my face as
I move my head. There are some older ones than I.
(It seems so out of keeping to be talking with these
heavy jaws.) They are dark brown, as if they had
been completely tanned. There is one old fellow, with
large tusks, that looks very tough. I see several
young ones ; in fact, there^s a whole herd.
" My upper lip moves strangely. I can flap it up.
It seems strange to me how it is done.
"There is a plant growing here higher than my
head; it is nearly as thick as my wrist, very juicy,
sweet and tender, something like green com in taste,
but sweeter." (Is that the taste it would have to a
human being?) " Oh, no " (appearance of disgust on
the countenance); "it is sickish, and very unpleasant."
The complete identification at times of the psy-
chometer with the thing psychometrized, or the ani-
mal with whose influence it is imbued, is one of the
5G THE SOUL OP THINGS.
remarkable facts developed by our experiments, and it
throws light upon some of the most mysterious depart-
ments oi* nature. Some forms of insanity appear to
present a condition produced by intense sensitiveness,
resulting in the overpowering of the mind by sur-
rounding influences, so that the individual ceases to
be himself, and becomes the tool for those influences
unconsciously to use ; the individual supplying the
power, but the influences directing and spending it,
instead of the will of the individual.
Some manifestations considered to be spiritual come
under this head, and may be readily accounted for in
this way. You cannot walk into and out of a room
witliout leaving a portion of your influence in that
room, which will continue as long as the bricks and
mortar endure. You cannot sit upon a chair but the
chair receives from you that which can convey to some
sensitive persons the idea of your presence and your
mental peculiarities. Hence our houses — made of
brick, from clay over which the Indian passed and re-
passed ; with their letters from hundreds of persons,
some living, some dead; with objects in them bandied
at some time by men of many races ; arrow-heads made
by Indians, tea fingered by Chinese, coflee and cotton
by negroes, ivory-handled knives and forks, the ivory
of which passed through the hands of Samoides and
Russ; with influences proceeding from all persons
who have visited them — are conventions of unseen in-
fluences representing thousands of diverse individuals,
the sphere of which sensitive persons can and fre-
ely do recognize, and are afibcted by, without
\aware of the source fron\ which it proceeds. I
BIRD TRACKS OF THE CONNECTICUT. 57
say not this from any desire to throw discredit upon
the fact of present communication between the spirits
world and our own, for this I know to be absolutely so ;
but it will be found, as Science marches on with her
hosts, and conquers the dark realm where ghosts and
witches and fairies have revelled for ages, that much
which is supposed to come from another world is the
offspring of our own.
EXPERIMENT XU,
In the summer of 1861, 1 obtained a small fragment
from a slab containing the impression of two toes of
one of the bird-like tracks from the Connecticut Val-
ley. It was but a mere speck, not more than a quar-
ter of an inch long and one-twentieth of an inch thick;
but it was quite large enough to teU some wonderful
tales of a remarkable time.
Mrs. Denton. Specimen not seen, and not a word
had ever been uttered in reference to my possession
of it, and since we were in the Far West at the time
of the examination, she could have had no idea of its
original whereabouts.
"There is some magnetism about this. I have a
glimpse of a long, broad, flat place, frequently washed
by water ; it is sujBSciently rolling, however, to prevent
the water from remaining upon it. Whether it is the
edge of the sea or not I cannot tell, but there lies
before me a large body of water.
" I begin to get the outline of objects moving, some
on this flat and some among bushes that grow near
there. One that I see attracts my attention much by
its great singularity ; it is without exception the
58 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
Btrangost-looking being I over saw. (When I go back
80 far, there is a difficulty in seeing objects at a dis-
tjincc, which I think is owing to the thick, heavy at-
mosphere of* those early times.) One of these animals
is right before me now ; it lias a rather long, small
neck. A second one appears with a flat head and a
neck tapering rapidly to it. The first one has a flat-
tish head ; from that there is an angle to the back, and
then another to the tail. As it moves, its back rises
and falls, and it looks as if the arch of the back assisted
in propelling it. Now I see three other backs, but no
other part. (I had a glimpse just then of a turtle.)
That animal I saw puzzles me ; it seems to be deficient
in legs, though I cannot see them distinctly. It goes
very easily, though its motion is so singular. Its legs
are short, and the angles of the body are not far from
the ground. It moves with a good deal of rapidity.
It has flat-looking feet, wide enough for it to balance
itself upon. It has just two feet. There I I know
what it is now. It is that two-footed reptile I have
read about. From foot to foot it measures, I should
think, about four feet."
Second examination, made two days after, from a
larger portion of the same slab.
" Its head very much resembles in form the head of
a snake, and its neck is long and gracefuUy arched.
Its scapula is long, extending on each side of the neck
a little beyond its articulation with the humerus, which
appears to be on the under side. At first I thought the
scapula projected beyond the articulation, but I be-
lieve now that it is a bone united to it by a joint, and
connected with other bones, that elevate what look
BIRD TRACKS OP THE CONNECTICUT. 59
like wings on each side of its body. Lifting its fore
foot it can sit upon its hind foot, assisted by the tail ;
then, giving a spring, pass through the air for quite a
distance. It does not seem to move its wings during
the transit, but they act like parachutes, in its descent,
and it comes gently down.
" I cannot see any teeth ; but in the place of them
appears to be a bony gum. It is carnivorous, and
feeds upon fish and reptiles. I can taste how sweet
they were to it. It had a motion of its head among
the weeds in the water like that of a duck. There is
something about it that fesembles the opossum, but
whether it is marsupial or not I cannot say."
Some time after this, many specimens from various
localities having been examined in the intervening
time, we tried another fragment of a slab from the
same locality, Mrs. D. as before knowing nothing of
the nature of the specimen.
" I see an animal that approaches the manmial in ap-
pearance more closely than those animals I saw some
time ago. It has claws, and is digging or scratching
in the earth. Its long tail, with a bunch on the end
of it, is elevated. It has a long body, and is a quadru-
ped. It is somewhat reptilian in appearance, and yet
it seems to be a mammal. It is carnivorous and very
savage."
If minute fragments can yield so much to the psy-
chometer, what may we not expect when the quarries
of the Connecticut valley are interrogated ; when the
pictures preserved in its slabs are copied by psycho-
metric artists, and its wonderful menageries of orni-
60 THE SOUL OF THINOS.
thoid lizards and Hauroid mammals are brought before
us for inspection ?
yomo two years afterwards, having obtained a larger
specimen in Albany, which was obtained from the same
locality, Mrs. D. examined it as before. .
" I see the bed of a stream that is partly dry. It is
broad, and sometimes rises high. The banks here are
low and sloping. There is rock on the other side.
" I am farther south and southeast now. I see an
extensive tract of low, even ground. It seems naked,
and looks as if washed by water sufficiently to prevent
the growth of vegetation upon it. I see the appear-
ances of bodies moving through the air, but they are
partly hidden. That low, flat ground seems to be con-
nected with the river, and there seems to be a min-
gling of salt and fresh water here."
E2CPERIMENT XIIL^SAME SPECIMEN,
" I see multitudes of objects. They swarm around
me ; there are fishes among them ; they change rap-
idly. What strange-looking animals there are here !
This seems to be the shore of the ocean, covered by
the tide and then left bare.
" One animal I see with a very long neck ; it has
wings, but does not look like a bird ; the wings are
bat-like ; but the animal is, I think, a reptile. There
are many of them here, and they look like those I saw
in Chicago, with a specimen from the Connecticut val-
ley. They have exactly the same appearance.
"I see another animal with feathered wings, but
they are the coarsest-looking feathers I ever saw.
One is very near me ; it is lii^htish-colored, with a red-
BIRD TRACKS OF THE CONNECTICUT. 61
dish tinge. There are many among weeds that grow
in stagnant water, of which there is a large body be-
tween here and the main land. The head and neck
are reptilian in form ; the mouth is large, and the jaws
are very different from the bill of a bird. I see one
drinking ; but it does not raise its head to swallow as
a bird does. It sits up like a bird, but has a slimy
appearance, notwithstanding its feathers, which are
thin and wide apart ; they look stiff and unfinished.
The barbs on the shaft are widely separated, and the
feathers look something like those of a drowned bird.
I see some of these animals in the air ; their wings are
thick near the body, and gradually become thinner
toward the edges, where they are membranous.
" Here is a large monster that looks as if it might
devour all these ; but it is sluggish in its movements.
It is a reptile, with a head like a crocodile, but larger.
It has enormous jaws, large eyes, small neck, and
broad shoulders. It is looking at the other animals,
and crawling softly toward them. It has a sly look.
It is crested with an edge of thick points all along the
back. (I feel as if I should be swallowed alive, with
BO many rapacious monsters around me.)
" I see another animal, with a tail of great length,
that curls round and round just like a snake. It looks
like the body of a serpent joined to the body of a liz-
ard. It may be five or six feet long ; but the body is
not more than two feet. I believe it could draw the
head in and dart it out for some distance. It seems
like a link between the lizard and the serpent. Its
tail winds and unwinds rapidly, sometimes in the air,
and sometimes on the ground.
G2 THE SOUL OF TIflNGS.
" Tlio only thought manifested hero is, on the one
hand, to devour, and, on the other, to escape being de-
voured."
These descriptions will be appreciated by those who
have made the sandstones of the Connecticut valley
and their footprints a matter of study. They give a
life-like, and, I doubt not, accurate picture of the time
when the valley of the Connecticut resembled the
Bristol Channel or the Bay of Fundy, having rivers
pouring in large bodies of fresh water, high tides, and
muddy waters, which deposited sediment over wide
areas on each side ; and these left baking in the sun-
sliinc until the return tide. Over this surface crept,
crawled, wriggled and stalked the strange organic
forms of these times, — slimy reptiles, and more slimy
worms, walking fishes, and rude reptilian birds, foot-
prints of which are so numerous in various portions of
the valley.
EXPERIMElfT UV.
Whalebone walking-cane.
Mrs. Denton knew it was a walking-cane, but, hav-
ing no opportunity of examining it, supposed very nat-
urally that it was a wooden one.
" I feel as if I am a monster. There is nothing of a
tree about it, and it is useless for me to go any far-
ther." (With great diflSculty she was induced to con-
tinue the experiment.) " I feel like vomiting. Now I
want to plunge into the water." (Convulsive shudder-
ing.) " I believe I am going into a fit. My jaws are
large enough to take down a house at a gulp. I know
now what this is, — it is whalebone. I see the inside
of the whale's mouth. It has no teeth ; it has a slimy
BEICK FROM OSWEGO. 63
look ; but I only get a glimpse of it. Now I see the
whole animal. What an awful-looking creature ! "
This identification of the psychometer with the ani-
mal psychometrized is at times so complete as to com-
pel the suspension of the experiment, the influence
produced sometimes affecting the person for hours.
EXPERIMENT XV.
When lecturing in Oswego, N. Y., the high school
was burnt down, and I picked from its ruins a small
piece of brick, which I handed to Mrs. Denton for
examination, she supposing it to be a piece of rock.
" I feel as if all was in commotion, and I was moving
with tremendous force, and flying into ten thousand
pieces. It seems as if I could not go with suflScient
rapidity.
" It makes me nervous. There is fire about it. It
is horrible. It produces a terrific feeling. It is a
piece of brick, I am certain. There is such confusion
about it I cannot see anything, though I know there is
fire about it. I feel like leaping down."
Some may suppose that some of these remarks were
in reply to leading questions ; but such was not the
case. In most instances not a word was said ; and in
others, the questions asked have been merely in refer-
ence to what was not fully explained.
In these last two experiments it will be seen that
the substance was eventually named ; and, in many
experiments that we have tried, the substance is often
correctly named in an instant, though nothing was
known of it except psychometrically.
I am not suflSciently acquainted with the history of
64 THE SOUL OP THIN08.
tho brick from which tho specimen was taken to tell
whether the account given is correct in every particu-
lar ; but it must be evident to any one that the feel-
ings experienced were much in harmony with what
the clay generally passes through in being formed into
brick. It seems a little singular that the heat of the
fire had not obliterated the sense of the motion to
which the clay had been previously subjected, but
many experiments have convinced us that intense heat
does not destroy even the pictorial impressions that
have been made upon bodies.
E2[PERIMEirT ZVJ.
Many years ago I gave to Mrs. Cridge for examina-
tion a specimen of the residuum of cannel coal, she
not seeing the specimen or knowing anything of its
history.
" It is coal. I seem to be at the bottom of a mine.
What a mass of coal I It seems soft, and the bed is
about as thick as the height of this room."
In other experiments, made with metals melted from
the ores, I have met with similar results. I have not a
doubt that fossilifcrous rocks which have been so highly
metamorphosed that all organic traces are invisible,
may be made to yield impressions to the psychometer,
and a wide and important geological field will be res-
cued, to the great benefit of future explorers, and the
perfection of the geologic record. I think it will yet
be found that many rocks, regarded as belonging to
the non-fossiliferous, are rich in organic influences.
EXPERIMENT XVIL
Fragment of fossil shell from Carboniferous forma-
tion, Iowa.
FRAGMENT OF A SHELL. 65
Mrs. Denton. Neither she nor I knew what it was
till after the examination.
" I see something that resembles a star-fish in form,
though it differs from all living ones that I have seen.
It is round, and has four long arms or tentacles, and
shorter ones between. The shorter ones seem to be
used for locomotion, and the longer ones for prehension.
The long ones are the most pointed ; the small ones
are flatter, and more like feet. The mouth is in the
centre. The long arms are ringed or jointed, so that
the animal can bend them rapidly, and convey food to
the mouth. Each long arm has two points at the end.
"I see another animal moving through the water.
It has a head nearly as large as the body ; the body
tapers to the tail. It does not move with fins or true
feet either, but with a webbed apparatus of some kind,
apparently between a fin and a foot."
In this case the shell, or the mollusk originally occu-
pying it, was not seen at all, but animals that probably
inhabited the ocean at the same time, and whose influ-
ence was received by the shell, and preserved for ages
after it became fossil.
The star-fish described, resembles the ophiura, or
serpent-like star-fish, one species of which Professor
Sedgwick found in the lower Silurian, and other forms
occur in the more recent formations. The animal seen
moving through the water was probably one of those
extinct forms of which the geologist may never know,
unless it be by the investigations of future psychom-
eters.
E20PERIMENT XVm.
It was naturally to be expected, if there was any
6*
GG THE SOUL OP THINGS.
truth in psychometry, that animals would be seen of
which the geologist knows nothing, for the number
that the geologist knows is necessarily but a small por-
tion of the mighty host that has existed. The air
seems to have had tenants .long before geology recog-
nizes their existence.
Bone from Tully limestone, near Seneca Lake.
Mrs. Denton. Specimen imseen, and nothing known
regarding it.
" I see a long, smooth beach. It is before me, for I
seem to be on the water. It extends for a great dis-
tance, and gently rises as it recedes from the water.
On that beach are quadrupeds of some kind. One is
large, heavy, thick-skinned, dark-colored, and thick-
necked ; the flesh is not fibrous, but soft. Its head is
broad, and horns rise up from its nose. I see another
. with a long neck, and a head nearly as large as a
sheep^s, but in appearance like that of a snake, though
it is a quadruped. Both look reptilian.
" What a beautiful place this is I I see a large rock
completely covered with beautifully green moss. The
rock is craggy, but all green, and the water at times
sweeps over it. There are many large objects in the
air, but they do not seem to be birds."
Second examination, a month afterward. Specimen
unrecognized.
"I see something that looks like a fish with spines
on both sides and nearly round it. It seems short,
compared with its breadth, for a fish.
" I see part of another animal in shallow water, with
its body hid among the water-weeds, that look like long
moss, but differ from all I ever saw before. The back
BONE FROM TULLY LIMESTONE. 67
of that animal is now visible to me. It has what looks
like ears, but I cannot tell whether they are or not.
They are in the same situation, and lie back on the
body for a considerable distance. It has sharp-looking
eyes. There are a great many of these animals, and
they have a very strange appearance. What I took
for ears must be folded wings; I can see between
them and the head, though they are attached on the
upper side. The wing is membranous, but I cannot
describe it, it differs so much from anything I know.
It is ribbed. The animal looks more like a reptile
than a fish, though I cannot see the whole distinctly."
The Tully limestone is one of the representatives of
the Devonian formation, in the State of New York ; it
lies immediately above the Hamilton group, so widely
distributed and so well known. That the air was
occupied by flying animals so early is a very startling
idea, when we remember that the earliest remains of
birds that have been found are in the Cretaceous, or
Chalk formation, certainly formed millions of years after
the deposition of the Tully limestone. If the air was
tenanted thus early, we may presume that it was occu-
pied by successive forms, as the earth was during the
time intervening between the Devonian and Cretace-
ous periods, and if so, what an evidence we have of
the imperfection of the record that geology gives us
of organic existences. We have but fairly made a
beginning in the study of ancient life-forms.
These are the earliest psychometric evidences that
we have had of the existence of reptiles, though they
may have lived long prior to this ; for our ignorance
should never be made the boundary of knowledge.
68 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
EXPERIMENT XIX,
Stones falling from the heavens, commonly known as
meteoric stones, have always excited considerable at-
tention. " They are," says Humboldt, " the only means
by which we can be brought in possible contact with
that which is foreign to our own planet." Some years
ago, a farmer near Painesville, Ohio, informed me of a
singular stone on his farm, that looked, as he said, like
iron ore. On arriving at the spot, I found a dark,
boulder-like looking mass, weighing, probably, five or
six hundred pounds, covered with a dense crust, from
one-fourth of an inch to three-eighths of an inch in
thickness. On breaking off portions, a net-work of
iron was observed, that indicated very clearly its mete-
oric character. I carried off small fragments of it,
and had some of them tried psychometrically, one by
Mrs. Foote, who had no conception of what it was, nor
that I had any such specimens in my possession.
" I seem to be travelling away, away, through noth-
ing, right forward. I see what looks like clouds and
something sparkling like stars ; but there seems to be
a mist between me and that. How curious that is I it
carries my eyes right up ; every other specimen has
taken my eyes right down."
What could be more descriptive of the path of an
aerolite — "away, away, through nothing, right for-
ward " ? In reference to her last statement, she said
that her eyeballs were rolled upward in opposition to
her own will.
Whence come these singular visitors? Are they
ejected from lunar volcanoes ? Are they formed in
the upper regions of the atmosphere ? Are they small
METEORIC STONE. 69
planets of a similar class to those circulating between
the orbits of Mars and Jupiter ? or are they fragments
of rings once surrounding the earth, as the rings of
Saturn surround that planet ? I think our experi-
ments throw some light upon this dark subject, though
much remains yet to be done.
EXPERIMENT XX.
A few days after the last examination, I tried Mrs.
Foote with another fragment of the supposed meteor-
ite, under similar conditions. •
" It carries my eyes right up. I see an appearance
of misty light. I seem to go miles and miles very
quickly, up and up. Streams of light come from the
right, a great way off. I see something sparkling, —
a huge body like a mountain. Between me and that
\% a broad road, that glitters like diamonds. To the
right of that I see a large round body that I can see
through, and yet there is substance to it. The sun
is rising behind that mountain, or a sparkling light is
shining at a vast distance."
EXPERIMENT XXI.
I gave the same specimen to Mrs. Denton, who
knew nothing of it, nor of the previous examinations.
" Tliis seems to have been moved. I see it turning
rapidly on its axis, and little flakes or cinders flying
from it, which it leaves behind, like a tail. As it
moves it changes its shape." (Turned the specimen
over.) " I see what looks like a vein of metal, and
through it I see what appear like joints ; it is curved.
From this vein streaks of light pass off like the beard
from a head of wheat.
70 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
" Now I SCO a temple, built of wood, and in it a rock
with three points. It is about three feet to the high-
est point. I am reminded of the Aztec temples."
Aerolites have been objects of worship in many
countries. At Emesa, in Syria, the sun was wor-
shipped under the form of a black stone, reported to
have fallen from heaven. Pliny mentions a stone
which fell at Abydos, and was worshipped at that
place. The holy Kaaba of Mecca, and the great stone
of the pyramid of Cholula, in Mexico, have all the
same history. It is possible that this Painesville aero-
lite had answered for a god to some race that preceded
the Indians in Ohio. I had never thought of it previ-
ious to this examination, but a subsequent one made
me think it more probable.
EXPERIMEXT XXU.
Another fragment of the same.
Mrs. Foote, Conditions as before.
" I see thousands of persons moving along. What
a multitude I They are marching in rows ; a few are
standing still. How strange they look I Beyond them
there seems to be a city, with trees set out in beauti-
ful rows. The people are in diflferent companies; some
look dark and others light. One company is busy
stooping over, as if they were digging. By the side
of that company is a ledge of rock, and from that
a smoke is rising, one cloud after another. The com-
pany digging are bare-headed ; they have dark skins,
but are not negroes. Now I see a river, and away off
is a range of rocks, covered with moss, ferns, and
bushes. The rocks taper off in height as I go down
METEORIC STONE. 71
the river, and there is a level plain, with woods in the
distance. Farther down on the right is a city. There
is something round it, posts and high work, that seem
made to protect it. I see buildings and people ; the
buildings are small." (What are they made of?)
" Don't look like boards at all ; most of them seem
plastered, or mud-bedaubed. It looks nothing like our
cities. One building that I see is very large, and a
great many people are coming and going near there,
some walking and others riding." (What are they
riding on ?) " Not horses, but animals much smaller ;
I do not know what. Some of the streets are very
dirty, others clean. From the city I can see out into
the country ; there is a fine, broad highway." (In re-
ply to a question,) " The large building is not high,
but covers considerable ground. The roof goes up to
a peak, but it looks nothing like our buildings ; it re-
sembles most a huge tent. People are riding on
strange-looking things, drawn by animals that look
more like sheep than anything else, though they are
not sheep, for they are larger and of a darker color,
and hold up their heads like deer. The vehicles look
like old boxes mounted on two wheels."
That a race of comparatively civilized people, living
in cities, and employing beasts of burden, ever existed
in Northern Ohio, will seem like a very strange story
to some persons ; yet those who are familiar with the
remains of mounds and fortifications that are scattered
over the surface of Ohio and the Western States gen-
erally, may regard it as possible that such a people, as
Mrs. Poote saw, once lived in Ohio, who, being startled
by the descent of an enormous aerolite, had made it
72 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
an object of religious worship, and it had thus become
impressed with the scenes described.
That Indians should have employed animals as beasts
of burden will appear strange, to those only who are
unacquainted with their history. When the Spaniards
first invaded Peru and Chili, they found the llama in
common use as a beast of burden. Augustin de Zerate,
in 1544, thus describes the llama in Peru: " In places
where there is no snow the natives want water, and to
supply this they fill the skins of sheep with water and
make other living sheep carry them; for it. must be
remarked these sheep of Peru are large enough to
serve as beasts of burden. They can carry about one
hundred pounds, or more, and the Spaniards used to
ride them, and they would go four or five leagues a
day." Captain G. Shelvocke says of them, "The heads
of these animals are small in proportion to their bod-
ies, and are somewhat in shape between the head of
the horse and that of the sheep. Their necks are
long. They walk holding up their heads with wonder-
ful gravity."
These animals are found both brown and white ; but
the white are most common. The llama was not, how-
ever, found by the Spaniards in North America, but it
is quite possible that at a much earlier period it may
have been, having perished, as the camel and horse
had perished, that we know to have existed in North
America during the Tertiary period.
EXPERIMEIfT XXni.
The first opportunity I had of trying what was
known to be an aerolite, was in June, 1861. It was a
METEORIC STONE. 73
mall fragment broken from a specimen in tl^e posses-
iion of Rev. W. B. Cristopher, of Galena, 111. As
before, the examiner neither saw nor knew anything
of the specimen, and as wo were trying experiments
with mundane specimens under like conditions, almost
every day, that could not be distinguished from this
by touch, there was Kttle probability of the peculiar
character of this being in any way guessed. The
specimen was very black, heavy, and somewhat lus-
trous. From the appearance of it, it probably con-
sisted of iron and nickel, as meteoric stones gene-
rally do.
Mrs. Denton.
" This seems to have had something done to it. I
am at the foot of a mountain or high hiU. I can easily
see into the inside of it, but with difficulty the out-
side. I know not how to describe what I see. Here
are different kinds of metal, and beautifiil objects that
look like gems. I see a great deep chasm; what a ter-
rible depth I It must have been dreadfully disturbed.
" I see a hilly country now. The landscape is beau-
tiful, delightful. All is at perfect rest, like a calm, sum-
mer's day. The climate seems to be that of continual
spring, without the heat of the tropics, or the cold of
this climate."
EJCPERIMENT XXIV.
Ten days afterward I broke a small portion from the
above specimen, and tried it again as before.
" I see a mountain of rock, with iron-like network
all through it. It looks like meteoric iron. (This must
be a piece of the specimen I tried the other day.) I
866 different colors in the rock that look like the reflec-
7
74 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
tion of brilliant p^oms. It is, however, merely light
reflected from the iron.
" There seems to be a great deal of electrical light
in this. In proportion as I move this specimen from
my forehead, the mountain increases in visible size*
It looks ragged. The iron seems quite distinct."
EXPEItJMEyT XXV.
More than a year afterward I gave this specimen to
Mrs. Foote, she having no idea of its character. She
held it in her right hand.
"This is curious. There is nothing at all to be
seen, and I feel as if I was in the air ; no, not in the
air, either, but in nothing, — no place. I am utterly
unable to describe it; it seems up, however. I feel as
though I was rising, and my eyes are carried up ; but
I look around in vain ; there is nothing to be seen.
" I see clouds now, but nothing else. They are so
close to me that I seem in them. My head, and neck,
and eyes, are affected. My eyes are carried up, and
I cannot roll them down.
" Now the clouds appear lighter and ligliter, and
look as though tlie sunlight would burst through them.
As the clouds separate, I can see a star or two, and
then the moon instead of the sun. The moon seems
near, and looks coarse and rough, and paler and larger
in size than I ever saw it before.
" What a strange feeling comes over me. Seems as
if I am going riglit to the moon, and it looks as if it
was coming on to me. It affects me terribly."
She was too much affected to continue the experi-
ment longer. Had this aerolite, at some period of its
METEORIC STONE. 75
history, come within the sphere of the moon's attrac-
tion, and had its velocity so increased that its in-
creased centrifugal force had carried it off into space
again, whence, drawn by the superior attractive force
of the earth, it had fallen, and its planetary career
ended forever? Large iBre-balls have been seen ap-
proaching the earth, and then flying off again appa-
rently in this very manner.
EXPERIMENT XXVL
Another meteoric specimen I obtained of Professor
McChesney, Chicago. It was a small fragment of
meteoric iron, and was tried as before.
Mrs. Denton.
"I am a very large — a monstrous beast. Others
are near me that are different. My proportions are
huge. I seem to be among trees. (I do not believe I
can get at the true influence of the specimen.)
"I see a great rock that goes up like a mountain. I
feel like flying, going, going. What a high rock that
is I I am at the foot of it. (I cannot make this agree
with the other.) There is a slope off to a tract of low
land in the distance ; it looks marshy. I do not feel
at home up here ; I am too awkward and clumsy. I
am rising through the air to the top of the rock.
(That certainly cannot be right ; the two do not agree
at all.) Is it a fossil?" (No.) "That rock looks
like a great broken mass. There are bodies in it that
shine so as to dazzle my eyes. I cannot tell what
they are. Now I have that moving feeling again. I
know what this is now ; it is a piece of an aerolite.
The slope or inclined plain that I saw is covered with
76 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
short, green vegetation, differing from all I have ever
seen. It looks more like moss than grass, though I
never saw anything covered with moss to such an ex-
tent. The soil in which it grows seems very thin.
" That is strange I I seem to have come to the
' jumping-off place.' The sky is overhead, and almost
under my feet. There is a ledge of bare rock of great
height, and miles in length, and, looking down at an
angle of about thirty-five degrees, I see the sky be-
low."
This specimen, previous to examination, had been
wrapped up in a paper with a fragment of the tooth of
a mastodon, and had apparently imbibed considerable
of its influence, and to this, in my opinion, strange as
it may seem, was owing the difficulty that Mrs. D. had
in obtaining the true influence of the specimen.
Facts that have come before us during examinations
since made, have convinced me of what I then sur-
mised, — the transference, at times, of psychometric
impressions from one specimen to another. I have
sometimes thought that where specimens have no strik-
ing history of their own, they more readily receive
impressions from neighboring specimens.
EXVERIMEXT XXVU.
I Two months after this. Dr. Bartlett, of Aurora, 111.,
gave me a piece of rock, looking somewhat like a light
lava, supposed to be of meteoric origin. It was one
of a number of pieces that were found upon his farm,
west of Yv^aukogan, 111., covering the ground over an
oval space, at one end of which, where the fall had ap-
parently taken place, they had sunk deeply into the
METEORIC STONE. 77
ground. The doctor thinks the aerolite, before its
fall, must have been as large, at least, as a flour-barrel.
Mrs. Denton. Conditions as before.
" Feel as if I were away down at the bottom of the
sea. I can see about twenty feet around me ; not very
distinctly though, for the water is not clear. I hear it
roaring above me.
"I am near a cliff that presents a perpendicular
face to me ; whether it rises above the water or not I
cannot tell. I occupy the same position with regard
to the high cliff that I did before with a meteoric
specimen [Experiment 26] ; the only difference being
that I am now in water and do not see that long, green
slope. I cannot help thinking that this is the same
place, and this specimen must be meteoric.
"I am now rising, and everything around me is
rising at the same time. I have a nervous feeling in
connection with it, as a person might be supposed to
have during an earthquake. I rise and sink, rise and
sink, though never as low as before. I feel as if there
would be a collision before long. There is a bright
stream of light now, right before me. What can that
mean? It flashes upon my vision every moment, and
produces great terror. All seems strange and terri-
ble. There are two streams of bright light, which I
seem to see through a dense fog.
" Now I am moving with great velocity and tremen-
dous force, and then there comes a terrible crash. All is
confusion. I do not think the concussion took place
on this earth. I see enormous rocks, like moun-
tains for size, shattered and piled one on another. I
have seen nothing like it for magnificence and sub-
7*
78 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
limity. Tho rocks aro absolutely naked. What a pit 1
I can 800 duwn a vast distance ; it is horribly deep.
" Now I am down, and miles of rock are above me.
This is chaos. I see water pouring down like a torrent
among tlio naked rocks." (In reply to a question.)
"There was heat before tho concussion, and heaving,
rolHng, sinking, and rocking before moving through the
air.
"I have travelled for many miles over the surface of
that world, for world it is, with plains and seas.
"I see a road between two cliffs; it is natural, of
course, and near it is a low ridge, covered with green
vegetation ; tho soil is exceeding thin."
Many experiments are yet needed to bring order
out of this apparent chaos. Our experiments indicate
that meteorites were once portions of a world, or of
worlds, shattered by some terrible concussion into
fragments ; that these worlds, or at least one of them,
had an atmosphere surrounding it, and large bodies of
water upon it, and vegetation apparently in the condi-
tion of that of our own planet about the close of the
Silurian period.
EXPERIMENT XXVIU.
In July, 1860, there was an eclipse of the moon, visi-
ble in Lockport, New York, where we then were. It
occurred to mo that a psychometric examination of
the moon might be made by the psychomotor sitting
where the lunar light could fall upon the forehead.
The event seemed to justify the conjecture ; and, al-
though we have tried no other experiments in connec-
tion with celestial bodies, I have no doubt whatever
that the astronomer will eventually derive as much as-
THE MOON. 79
sistance from psychometry as the geologist is likely
to do.
Mrs. Denton.
" I feel a sensation of intense dryness ; every-
thing is dry, hot, and crisp. What a rough, ragged,
rocky scene of desolation this is, everywhere. It is
absolutely terrible ; it affects my whole system. Near
the edge of the moon which lies toward the sun, I
see an enormous crater, miles in diameter, and at the
bottom is a lake of lava ; it is red, and I see it in slow
motion. It is remarkable how it keeps its place in the
basin that encloses it, which seems miles deep, with
craggy rocks on every side." (" Why does it seem re-
markable," I said, " that it should keep its place in this
basin ? I should think it would be the most natural
thing in the world." She replied, " I am looking up,
and it seems as if it should pour out.") " I have a
view of the moon's crust, and compared with the
earth's it seems a mere shell, enclosing the liquid lava.
" The electrical condition of the moon seems to me to
be disturbed by the eclipse, and that disturbance is re-
flected to the earth and back again; but I cannot prop-
erly describe it. The disturbance in the electrical
condition of the moon and earth seems to be recipro-
cal; a tremulous vibration is produced that seems
unusual."
It is a common idea that the moon is cold, and poets
have long sung of the " cold, inconstant moon ; " but,
if this psychometric observation may be relied on, it
is by no means as cold as we may have supposed. A
body like the moon, destitute of water and an atmos-
phere, must part with its heat slowly; and it would
80 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
not be at all surprising if our little attendant planet
had a very warm heart, after all.
Sir William Herschel discovered, with his great re-
flecting telescope, on the dark part of the new moon,
what he conceived to be the flames of an active vol-
canot Since his time, various persons have seen lumi-
nous spots upon tlie moon, wliich favor the idea of
present igneous activity upon its surface.
According to Humboldt, "Melloni was fortunate
enough to observe, by means of a lens of three feet in
diameter, the most satisfactory indications of an eleva-
tion of temperature during difierent changes of the
moon."* In this case, I suppose the heat would be at-
tributed to reflection from the sun, but it may be ow-
ing to heat radiated from the substance of the moon
itself.
EXPERIMENT XXIX.
Some of the bodies, of which the aerolites are frag-
ments, appear to have resembled the moon in the ab-
sence of water, for Mrs. Denton remarked on trying
one specimen subsequently : —
" This has a great deal of the lunar feeling. 1 am
in a region of rocks, all dry. I do not feel the heat of
the moon, but the dryness is similar, as if all water
were absent. I see large masses of rock, with veins of
iron all through them, forming quite a net-work, with
here and there large, pure masses of iron."
EXPERIMEXT XXX.
I have a small stalactite, which I obtained in a cave,
about a mile and a half west of Saleni, Indiana. I put
this into the hands of Mrs. Cridge, when her eyes were
^CosmoH, Vol. IV. p. 143,
STALACTITE PROM A CAVE. 81
closed, and requested her to examine it psychometri-
cally. She supposed, from the feeling, that it was an
orthoceras, of which I had many specimens, and which
it resembles.
" I see pieces of rock hanging down ; they look like
icicles, as if they had been formed by the droppings
of the rock. I don't understand it, for the rock seems
quite hard. I feel cold, and as if water were dropping
on my head."
EZPERIME2fT XXXT.
Many months after this I gave the same specimen to
Mrs. U. Taylor, of Lockport, New York, whom I found
to be a good natural psychometer. She supposed it
to be a part of some animal.
"I go straight along a road; there is water near,
and a cave, into which I enter. I see two persons go-
ing in with lights. Stalactites hang from the top all
over. The two stand looking up. It is so damp and
cold, it fairly makes me feel chilly. It is a large,
roundish plac.e. Off at a distance seem places where
you can go still farther, but I cannot go ; it makes me
shudder. Now I go to the right ; there is a basin of
water ; and to the left, room after room. Stalactites
hang down like curtains, and shine most beautifully."
The accuracy of this description surprised me, ac-
customed as I was to the faithfulness of the psycho-
metric pictures. The road to the cave is along the
western bank of the western branch of Blue River,
Indiana ; and out of the cave, which is a " large, round-
ish place," a small stream issues. When I obtained
the stalactite, I was in company with another gentle-
man, and each carried a candle ; but as the cave had
82 THE SOUL OF THIXG3.
l)Oon repeatedly visited by parties with candles, I do
not presume that we were the parties she saw. A
lew hundred yards from the mouth the cave branches.
There is a basin of water in the body of it, and rooms
on the left with stalactites, as described.
EXPERIMENT XXXn.
I have a small fragment of fibrous gypsum, which
was obtained in the Mammoth Cave, Kentucky. This
I gave to Mrs. Denton for examination; she saw it,
but knew nothing of its history, and supposed it to be
a piece of asbestos, which it somewhat resembles.
" You must have had this given to you. The place
I see does not look like this region. I see a bench
with rocks upon it resembling this specimen. Back
of this bench I see a hill with soil and vegetation on
it. The rocks I saw seem to have been placed there
by artificial means. Now I see a curved wall arching
over head; the rocks that lie around seem to have
come from an open place near there. Farther on, the
rocks are perpendicular.
" I am in a cave that I have seen represented in
books, I am almost sure. It is very extensive. (I am
not in good condition for examining, or I could see
much better.) It has been visited a good deal, for I
perceive artificial light; that is, light difiering from the
light that the rocks give out, by which I see objects
under ground. There are parts of the cave, however,
that have been but little visited. I notice one room
that has been visited a great deal, and visitors must
have remained and talked in it.
" At one place I see steps going up, and a rock juts
MAMMOTH CAVE. 83
out a long way; it looks fearful. I judge this place is
more extensive than it is known to be. All the rooms
near the entrance seem to have been visited ; this I
know by the artificial light in them. Where that is, 1
cannot see as distinctly ; it makes Usdf visible, rather
than the objects around.
"There is a cave below this that is more magnificent
than the other, much more so. It has not been visited,
I think. It is surpassingly beautiful. It looks like a
palace built to embody the idea of beauty. There is
something that shines like a sun, raying out light all
around ; I cannot tell what it is. I cannot think of
this as a cave ; it is a gorgeous palace. I see a beau-
tiful curtain-like partition between two rooms, with
ridges and deep flutings. I notice one long hall with
two walls, about three feet high, running the whole
length of it; they look very singular here, for they
have quite an artificial appearance. What a splendid
place this would be to live in ; only there is a cool,
damp feeling about it. I know not how to get out of
this labyrinth.
" There is a pit down, down much deeper. It goes
into another cave by a winding way. What monstrous
rocks I The cave near the surface is but a baby com-
pared with these giant caves below. I thought that
was a great cave, but what a poor pigmy by the side
of these I This cave is partitioned ofi", in every direc-
tion, into long, fine rooms, with entrances from one to
another, generally having high ceilings, though they
are not all of the same height. There are grand long
halls opening into the entrance where I came down.
I wonder if it is not dangerous. If those rocks were
84 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
to fall, how could ono get out ? I don't know what it
means, but I havo a Benso of animal influence. All at
once 1 am on the surface."
I then informed her that the specimen was from the
Mammoth Cave. She said, "Is there water in the
Mammoth Cave ? for I saw streams of water in it, but
did not notice them particularly, there was so much
else to see.''
I have never visited the Mammoth Cave ; but those
who have will, I think, acknowledge the accuracy of
the descriptions of the known parts of the cave. The
truth of the statements with regard to the unknown
portions future explorers may yet determine. The
animal influence felt was probably owing to the fossils
contained in the Mountain Limestone, in which the
Mammoth Cave has been hollowed out, by the action
of underground streams for ages.
One thing the reader will notice in this, as well as
in some other examinations, that the psychometer
seemed to be at the spot and travelling over the
ground. When our experiments first commenced, pic-
tures connected with the history of the specimen
passed before the gaze of the psychometer, like a
panoramic view, she being a mere passive spectator.
After some time these pictures could be to a certain
extent controlled, their progress arrested or hurried
at will, till at length the psychometer seemed to travel
to the spot where the specimen came from, and de-
scribe it as a living person would who beheld it with
the natural eye. Not only was this done with regard
to present time, but with regard to all past time. All
past to the psychometer seemed to become present;
MAMMOTH CAVE. 85
all that had been was found to exist, and could bo
examined as thoroughly, almost, as the present around ,
us.
It would seem that rays of light are passing from
all objects continually, which are invisible to the eye,
as a general rule, and can pass readily through some
substances, if not all, which are opaque to ordinary
light. These rays seem to be able to pass at once to
the brain of sensitive persons and give the sensation
of vision, without the intervention of the eye as an
organ. Ordinary light is too coarse for such a refined
organ as the brain to receive without the intervention
of another organ, which receives it and then intro-
duces it to the brain. But for this refined light the
brain needs no such go-between, but it passes at once
through the portals and is admitted into the inner
chamber of the soul. Some of the lower animals
seem to perceive objects, although they are totally
blind, and, in some cases, do not even possess the vis-
ual organs. We find in most large caves blind ani-
malS| such as beetles, millipeds, crawfish, etc.; but
although they possess none of the ordinary power of
vision, they yet move away from the light of the ex-
plorer's torch, just as similar animals out of doors
when they see a coming individual. Eyes are unne-
cessary to these cave tenants, and in process of time
they are 'withdrawn ; but they possess what answers
the purpose to them in their underground existence
equally as well ; otherwise they would certainly cease
to exist.
In the fresh-water polyp the whole body is sensitive
to the influence of light, for it turns to it ; and that
8
86 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
this is owing to tho scnsitivcuess of the whole body,
^ is evident from the fact that, if cut in two, both parts
equally seek the light.
"Tho monas sulphuraria, atentor niger, and the
aciinia'f seek the light, but change their position if
exposed to the full glare of the sun, and sink beneath
the surface, before any part of their bodies comes in
contact with the atmosphere. VeretHlum cynomorium
(a species of zoophyte) seeks the darkest spots and
folds itself together if brought within the influence of
the light. In all these animals the power of sight, or
rather the sense of perception, is spread over the whole
surface of the body."*
Bats, that spend their lives in twilight or darkness,
appear to possess this interior vision to a wonderful ex-
tent. Experiments made by Spallanzani, and repeated
by eminent philosophic naturalists, demonstrate that
the bat, when blinded, regulates its motions in the
same manner as when it has full possession of its eyes.
" Completely blinded bats were not in the Slightest de-
gree obstructed in their motions. They flew about by
night or by day with their wonted ease and rapidity,
avoiding all obstacles which lay, or were intentionally
placed in their way, as dextrously as if in full posses-
sion of their sight. They turned round at the right
time when they approached a wall, rested in a conven-
ient situation when fatigued, and struck against noth-
ing. The experiments were multiplied and varied in
the most ingenious manner. A room was filled with
thin twigs ; in another, silken threads were suspended
from the roof, and preserved in tho same position and
* Thompson's Passions of Animals.
BLIND BATS. 87
at the same distance from each other by means of
small weights attached to them. The bat, though de-
prived of its eyes, flew through the intervals of these
threads, as well as of the twigs, without touching
them ; and when the intervals were too small, it drew
its wings more closely together. In another room a
net was placed, having occasional irregular spaces for
the bat to fly through, the net being so arranged as to
form a small labyrinth. But the blind bat was not to
be deceived. In proportion as the difficulties were in-
creased, the dexterity of the animal was augmented.
When it flew over the upper extremity of the net and
seemed imprisoned between it and the wall, it was fre-
quently observed to make its escape most dextrously*
When fatigued by its high flights, it still flew rapidly
along the ground, among tables, chairs, and sofas ; yet
avoided touching anything with its wings* Even in
the open air its flight was as prompt, easy, and secure
as in close rooms ; and in both situations, altogether
similar to that of its associates who had the use of
their eyes." *
Any animal living in darkness during a continued
existence, would, in my opinion, receive visual impres-
sions in the same way ; still more, animals whose an-
cestors had existed in a similar manner for ages, the
power increasing with continued use, as transmitted
for many generations.
It is not surprising that human beingst should possess
a power which is thus shared in by many animals, some
of which are quite low in the scale of existence.
Harriet Martineau tells us of an old lady who had
• Chambers's Edinburgh JoumaU Vol. iv., p. 203.
88 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
bceu blind from ber birth, and yet saw in her sleep;
and, when in lier waking state, described the color of
tlie clothing of individuals correctly.
Must blind persons exhibit such phenomena to a
greater or less extent, according to the sensitiveness
of the individual and the length of time during which
the power has been cultivated. The case of the blind
Yorkshire surveyor is familiar to most persons, and,
in his case, the possession of vision, without the use
of eyes, seems most evident.
Somnambulists who read and write with eyes closed,
and sometimes bandaged, who in dark nights walk
along the roofs of buildings and narrow walls, and per-
form various feats which other individuals could only
do in the light of day, bear evidence to the possession
of this faculty, that we are now considering, in man.
For this subtle light to which I have referred is never
obscured ; it is always day with it, and, to those who
perceive by its instrumentality, the darkest midnight
is light and clear as the sunniest noon.
Clairvoyance is but the exercise of the same power
by an individual in a somewhat different condition* K
this subtle light can pass through a brick wall, the
brick wall can be as readily seen through, by the per-
son who sees by its instrumentality, as we can see
through a pane of glass. To the clairvoyant, therefore,
all things are transparent as air, because they are per-
vious to the light by which he sees ; the rays proceed-
ing from objects passing directly through the transpa-
rent skull — transparent to this light — to the brain.
Facts which philosophers have sneered at, and phe-
nomena which they have denied, will eventually be
MOUNT OF OLIVES. 89
accepted, and found to be in harmony with refined
forces of matter with which they are as yet unac-
quainted.
I have recently become acquainted with Mrs. Lu-
cielle do Viel, of Pultneyville, Wayne Co., N. Y., a
lady who, on examining a specimen psychometrically,
not only goes to the spot from which the specimen was
obtained, but has the sensation of travelling while doing
so, and frequently sees towns, ships, rivers, seas, etc., as
she passes along to her destination. She informs me
that she has seen objects with her eyes closed, from
infancy, and frequently heard sounds that were inau-
dible to all but herself. After picking berries or gath-
ing chestnuts, on lying down to sleep, she saw them in
great abundance, and often wished she could have .the
privilege of gathering what was so plainly visible.
When young, she frequently told her friends what she
saw ; but, being laughed at and called visionary, she
ceased to be communicative in reference to these vis-
ions. Previous to my trying her with the following
specimens, she had never done anything of the kind,
nor heard of its being done. I simply requested her
to tell me what she saw and felt. The following ex-
periments were made, she having no knowledge what-
ever of the specimen previous to its examination. She
is more familiar with the French language than with
English, and hence had more difficulty than another
would have had in describing what appeared to her.
After trying her with two specimens of but ordinary
interest, I gave her the specimen of hornstone brought
from the Mount of Olives, an examination of which is
recorded in experiment 66.
90 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
EXPERIMEST XJXin.
"I am going back, back, — over the water I glide
along, but I see no vessels. Now, I am on shore ; and
see stones and rocky hills. There are large and small
stones scattered all around, with moss among them. It
is too stony for trees. What a long way off this is I
There is water near where I am now, and a little grass,
and small bushes. I see a basin of water; it is a
lake, I judge.
" There does not seem to be many people. The land
is so poor, I judge, they could not raise enough to eat,
I see a forest a long way off.
" I see an ancient place now ; how old-fashioned it
is I Old houses almost down ; arched gates and win-
doxys; how curious they look! Now I see people.
Is that Spain?" (No.) "There is something grow-
ing on that rocky mountain ; a few trees. They are
not very tall, but thick and bushy. I should judge
they were fig trees ; but the leaves look like the olive.
" I have seen people like these ; but I cannot tell
where. The women wear turbans and pantaloons ; and
men and women are much alike. I see cattle, but they
look different from ours. Farther back I see horses,
sheep, and goats.
"I see a great palace. It is very beautiful. It
looks like a Roman Catholic church. That is what it
is. I see images, the cross, candlesticks, and an image
of the Virgin. It is a very large place. Women are
kneeling, and men walking on their tip-toes, as if
they were afraid of disturbing something. Back of that
palace I see a high mountain that lies to the north, I
judge. Now I see ruins, — large stones lying round
MOUNT OF OLIVES. 91
that have fallen down. Some are in heaps, and some
are scattered ; they seem too large for men ever to
handle."
After supper, a second examination was made of the
same specimen.
" It seems just as it did before. Fm going over the
water again. I guess I'm crossing the Red Sea, it
looks so red and dark. I see no vessel. Now I'm on
shore. It is dreadful far. I see rocky little hills,
heaps of stones, and large, flat stones lying by the
wayside. The roads are narrow and crooked; they
look like paths. I notice a large hill ; it is all stone
though, except a few small trees, which can hardly
find root.
" Now I see a city, with high stone walls and large
iron gates. The wall is thick and high. Two men
are watching at the gate ; they look like Jews. I
wonder if they will let me in. Now I come to that
temple and go in again. There is the crucifix at the
altar, the images, and the women praying. It is a
splendid place. Now I see another nice temple, not
so large as the first. There are Greek letters on the
outside ; I cannot read them. I see many houses ;
they look curious ; some are in ruins, and some are
nice-looking places.
"I am on a mountain now; and there is anothei'
mountain on the opposite side, with olive tjees and fig
trees all the way. I see a garden, and water in a kind
of basin. I have seen a description of this place, I
know. Is not this Jerusalem ? The mountain I stood
on was Mount Moriah, and that opposite the Mount of
Olives."
\)'l THE SOUL OF THINGS.
Who docs not see that what was stated is true of
Jerusalem and its vicinity, and of no other place? I
found, on visiting her house subsequently, a work on
Palestine, by means of which she had become familiar
with Jerusalem and its vicinity, and hence the readi-
ness with which she identified what she saw, which, at
first, very much surprised me.
EXPERiMnyT xxnr.
Fibrous gypsum, Mammoth Cave.
"I am travelling south now. I see the soldiers'
camp and tents. There are mountains around there,
back and back. I see a cave ; it looks white, like
marbFe. Wliat curious things on shelves, or what
look like shelves, — vases, cups, candles, and candle-
sticks, all in stone. There is a natural seat all round
there.
" I see a spring ; how clear the water is. There are
fine statues, horses, camels, everything one can think
of, almost, in stone.
" What a pretty place this is ; it glitters like gold.
What makes it shine so ? Now I see water falling in-
to a kind of basin down there. I see the appearance
of curtains. That water pours into another basin be-
low again."
This specimen is the one that was the subject of
Experiment 32, and was obtained from the Mammoth
Cave some years ago, at gf time when there were no
camps or soldiers in the neighborliood ; so that it ap-
pears she saw the locality at the very time the exam-
ination was made, a time when, as I afterward learned,
our soldiers were in the immediate vicinity.
A BLACK PEARL. 93
EXPERIMENT 2LKXV,
I have a small black pearl, given me by Captain Le-
per, who brought it from the Gulf of CaUfomia. This
I gave to Mrs. do Viel for examination, who did not
see it, but supposed, as she afterward told me, that it
was a small bean, which in shape it much resembles.
" 1 am travelling a long way again ; I think south-
east. I see a man on his knees, digging and scraping
with his hands. He has something like a basket on a
stick, which he puts into the water and dips out, and
then scrapes with his hands in the dirt. It is not
much inhabited here. It is either between points or
islands, where this man is at work getting things."
(What is he getting ?) *' Stones, or something valua-
ble, for he is very choice of them, selecting them with
great care. (Oh, but it is a long way from here !)
As near as I can see, he is getting pearls. He scrapes
into this vessel, full of holes ; the water runs through,
and he selects out of what remains at the bottom.
They may be diamonds for aught that I know ; they
shine very bright. He- puts them into a little bag, af-
ter he picks them out.
" Back from him there is a large building, but it
looks as if no one lived there. I see goats ; they are
the only animals that I can find. I see trees and
vines. That sea-shore is splendid. What clean, nice
sand I "
In this experiment she apparently travels to the
spot, but whetlier she saw what was occurring at the
time, or what had occurred at the time the pearl un-
der examination was gathered, it is impossible to say.
The lower part of the Gulf of California is the place
94 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
where pearls are obtained, and the land in that neigh-
borhood is very sparsely populated, or, as she described
it, " not much inhabited."
EXPERIMENT XXXVl,
A small fragment of Table Rock, Niagara.
" I am in a place where I see stony land. I trav-
elled west from here. I see a stony mountain ahead
of me. This came from a rock at that mountain. It
is settled all around there, and there are forests back
from the villages. Some parts of the village look well,
but it is nothing particular as a whole. The people I
see look like our people. I see several places where
water runs down the side of the mountain. I see some-
thing clear and white in the rocks; it looks like silver."
(Look around, down below.) " I see two or three huts
and arbors, and some rabbits. There is a cave that
goes under that mountain. I am curious to see it. I
see bones on the ground that look like human, and a
beast's head of some kind." (Turned the specimen
over.)
" Now I see a kind of smoke, — it may be a cloud of
some kind; it goes right up. It is more toward the
middle than the cave. I see no fire, — once in awhile
a little spark. That smoke does not spread ; it goes
straight up.
" I am looking down now in the mountain. It is a
deep hole. There is something down there boiling up,
boiling up all the time, and the smoke comes from
that. Is that a hot spring?" (No.) " What makes it
boil so? It makes just such a noise as the lake does.
How it roars ! It is louder than the lake. It sounds
TABLE ROCK, NIAGARA. 95
just like a torrent." (Go across to the mountain on
the other side.) " That is a small one, not so high as
the one 1 was on before. Can that be a volcano ? I
hear it roar off here. There are no inhabitants here.
It is very rough. There is a river that goes right
round, — yes, all the way. It has a very pretty shore,
but it is not very deep. There are two or three small
villages round there. The people seem to fish a good
deal. .
" That river has a very rapid current ; it looks stony
in places, and the water boils right up. What makes
it smoke so ? It runs right under that big mountain.
There is a place under the mountain where it runs
just as it does above, and boils right up ; that is what
makes the smoke. On the other side the water de-
scends into a deep hole; it seems like a whirlpool
down there. Under that water is a place where 1 can
go. The stones are flat under there. The water
pours over my head. There is an arch of stone over
me. The stone is white in places. It is right under
the mountain where I see this. I can go a long way
under that arch, and as far as I go the water is. It
seems as if the water was engulfed as fast as it fell.
I wonder where it comes from? The water makes
that smoke ; it looks like a rain-cloud or mist. It rises
right up through that hole in the mountain, and when-
the sun shines it sparkles, and that is what I took for
sparks.
"I am on top of the mountain again, and looking
over the water. There is a great, big cataract. The
water goes down with tremendous force, and that
makes it go up like smoke. Wliat monstrous stones
9C THE SOCL OF THINGS.
tliere are near that cataraet, — many as big as this
h«;u.se. That is a terrible whirlpool ; the water goes
round like a wheel. It is so strong it carries the fish
up with it. Near the cataract i^ a large, square face
of stone, anrl that is what the water falls over. That
stone conies over, something like a piazza, and the wa-
ter fulls over it. There is quite a space behind the
water; it looks hke a long tunnel. What a tremen-
dous l)ody of water I What force ! I never saw any
ciitanict like this before."
She travelled in the right direction, and seemed to
be at the spot in a few moments; but her vision seems
.to have been very much circumscribed, so that she
could only describe what was in the immediate vicin-
ity of where she seemed to be. She had never been
at Niagara personally, or she would doubtless have
recognized the spot. Any one who has been there,
must see' the exceeding accuracy of her description,
which evidently none but an eye-witness could give.
The white substance she saw in the rocks on two occa-
sions is a very pure variety of gypsum, as white as
chalk, which is worked up by persons at the Falls into
ornaments and sold to visitors.
On crossing the mountain she seems to have gone
over to Goat Island, for she sees the river " goes right
round," and from there, right under the cataract itself,
where there is an arch of stone above, and the water
pours right over her head. She then passes to the
Canadian side, and sees the cataract in its grandeur,
which she seems to have been unable to do before,
and beholds, with keener vision than ordinary visitors,
that long tunnel, as she likens it to, which all visitors
GALENA. 97
know exists between the descending sheet and the
wall of rock behind it, along which many persons ven-
ture daily, accompanied by guides.
EXPKlllMENT XXXVn.
Sulphuret of iron from the Marsden lead, west of
Galena, III. (Thought it was a stone.)
"I am going over Niagara River. I see the cataract
and suspension bridge. I am travelling west. I see
a place dug out of the earth where this came from. I
see something there that looks whiter than copper,
and a good many people are digging it. It is a good
way oflf west. Back of here there is a town or city,
and a body of water and vessels." (The Mississippi is
about three miles west of there, and Dubuque, Iowa,
perhaps seven or eight miles.) "I see horses and
wagons that carry the stuff away.
" Now I see a place where they melt it ; there is a
great furnace. It looks like lead. There are many
people at work ; I never saw anything like it before.
" They have axes under ground there for cutting it
out. I see them pick out white stones and lay to one
side.
" Now I see them shipping it in a vessel — they un-
load it from wagons — it is in bars.
" They have dug quite deep, and there are two or
three ladders in different holes. As they go down they
dig away under and very wide — thirty or forty feet, I
should think. They have lights down there, and very
long ladders to go up and down. The men are hack-
ing into the wall ; they are almost as black as negroes.
Thev haul the stuff out in buckets from one hole to
98 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
another. It is very damp and cold in there. How
the wall shines I There is very clear water there."
The accuracy of this whole description is marvelr
lous. The Marsden lead is the richest known in the
neighborhood of Galena, and is worked about five
miles west of that city. The mine is the deepest in
tliat region; and the inflow of water, which is very
pure, is so great, that an engine is kept constantly
employed in pumping it out. There are several holes,
as she stated, furnished with ladders ; and in the prin-
cipal one they have dug " away under," for the roof
of the mine dips at an angle of about fifty or fifty-five
degrees. The wall glistens much more than is com-
mon in lead mines, on account of the great abundance
of crystallized sulphuret of iron.
When at the mines she seems to have come into
rapport with the lines of travel to and from it ; along
one she goes to the smelting furnace, and from there
to Galena, where the lead is shipped on board vessels,
in bars, as she states, and then returns on the other
again to the mines, to continue her explorations.
The only statement that she made in reference to it
that is open to criticism is the one in which she says,
" They haul the stuff out in buckets from one hole to
another." If my remembrance of it is accurate, the
ore is drawn up in buckets by the steam-engine that
pumps the water out, by a very crooked passage, it is
true, and this may have led her to describe it as going
from one hole to another.
EXPERIMENT XXXVIU.
Piece of chamois horn, from Switzerland. It was but
a small fragment, and no person by feeling could have
CHAMOIS HORN, SWITZERLAND. 99
imagined its character ; and as she did not see it, evi-
dently the remarkable power that she possesses could
alone give her the clue to the surroundings of the ani-
mal of which it was once a part.
"I am travelling south-east now, I think. I pass
over many places that I have done before. I see
many soldiers and cannon, but I go over them. Now
I am on the sea-coast, and here are all kinds of shells.
"I go farther back into the wilderness. I see prairies
and dark-colored hills. I go farther back to the moun-
tain land. There are large mountains; I see one higher
than any I ever saw before. I see a splendid city a
little way ofiF.
" I see little caves here and there that seem to have
been dug for shelter. The rocks are dark, and so is
the soil. I see goats or deer climbing up. There are
numbers of animals running round me, some goats and
some deer. The horns of the goats arch over back,
but the deer's horns are bushy. Streams run down
from the mountain-side and make gullies ; the water is
clear, and they look beautiful.
" 1 went into one of those caves ; they are dens for
wild animals. Nuts grow on that mountain — some
look like hazels — they are not ripe. They are very
sour — I tasted them; they make the water run out
of my mouth.
"It is a splendid country all round here. I'll go
into that city and see how it looks. Some buildings
are of white marble, and others of dark stone. The
people are swarthy, but they dress a good deal like
our people. They have a stern look. I see a Roman
Catholic church; there is a cross on the top. I see
100 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
other churcliea. . There are many mules in that coun-
try — more than horses* I can see the whole city.
On the otlicT side is a body of water, and a very ex-
tiMisivo wilderness in the distance."'
Here wo have the mountainous region of the Alps,
wliore the chamois dwells, the caves in which wild
animals shelter, the animals themselves, with their
horns arching back, — though she supposed them to be
a peculiar kind of goat, — and, generally, what we
should behold if visiting the region in proper person.
EXPERIMENT XXXIX.
Conglomerate from Eagle River, near where it emp-
ties into Lake Superior.
" I am going west of here. I pass over Niagara,
where I was before. I pass rocks and over woods and
waters, and now I am close by a lake and a wilderness.
That is a pretty shore. It is a nice place all around —
quite a wilderness back. I see a creek that nins
through the wilderness and empties into the lake. It
makes quite a ripple over the stones as it goes down.
Tliose are beautiful trees — oak, I think, white oak. I
am close to the edge of the creek, and but a little
way from the lake.
" A little way back there are inhabitants. I see
farms, and log houses, and saw-mills. They take wood
to the lake. (That creek is narrow.) They are not
all Yankees there. I see different kinds of people —
some French. That is a great place for timber. That
water is deep enough for vessels to come in. I see
one at the wharf now taking in wood."
This description of the place from which I obtained
GLACIER«CBATCHED PEBBLE. 101
t^ie specimen is correct, I believe, in nearly every par-
ticular. I obtained it from the rocky bank of Eagle
River, about 300 yards back from Lake Superior, and
within the bounds of Eagle River village, where the
water "makes quite a ripple over the stones as it
goes." The creek runs through a wilderness and emp-
ties into the lake, which has at that point a beautiful
pebbly shore. There is a wharf near the place, and
vessels call, in going up and coming down the lake. I
am not certain that she is correct about the kind of
trees in the neighborhood, which, I think, are princi-
pally small pines.
EXPERWENT XL,
Glacier-scratched pebble, Palmyra, New York.
"This draws me down. There are many stones
where this came from ; I see numbers of them. It did
not come very far. You got this close by, a little
south of here ; not very far from Pultneyville. You
did not pick it up for its beauty, but to see if any one
could tell where it came from. There is a bed of this
stone where it came from, — different layers, one above
another. I see a village ; there is nothing remarkable
about it."
These examinations were made at Pultneyville, on
the shore of Lake Ontario ; and Palmyra, where 1 ob-
tained the specimen, is sixteen miles south of Pultney-
ville. She had never been at Palmyra, and hence did
not recognize the place, which she appears to have
seen psychometrically.
Some persons may think that out of a multitude of
examinations I have chosen just the few that had in
9*
102 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
tluMii Romcthiup^ remarkable, but this is not the case. .
My time was bmited, and Mrs. do Viol's family duties
prevented her trying as many experiments as she oth-
erwise would. She examined, in all, thirteen speci-
mens, and cmt of the thirteen I have presented eight.
The rest were probably just as correct, but I have not
yet been able to verify them as fully as I could wish.
This lady had no idea that she possessed any such
power, till she tried a specimen that I gave her, and
she expressed the greatest delight at the wonderful
tilings that she was thus enabled to see. She seemed
less fatigued by it than any psychometer that I ever
saw, owing probably to her robust physical constitution.
Of what great utility this department of psychome-
try may become I All drift may be tracked by the fu-
ture geologist to the place of its dispersion; and
where that drift contains portions of the precious
metals, the vein from which they were borne may
readily be discovered. A simple, cheap and efficient
telegraph lino may be established between the most
distant places on the earth, that may be worked as
rapidly as a person can read. In short, the uses of this
power are innumerable, and such as only the great fu-
ture can develop.
I am strongly inclined to believe that if we detach
a rock from its parent bed, wherever it may be car-
ried, there is a line of connection extending from that
rock to the bed from which it was derived, and that
along that line something (call it soul, spirit, or mind,
I know not what term would be most appropriate)
passes from the psychometer to the place, and sees ob-
jects as they at present exist. When a psychometer
RAVINE NEAR LOCKPORT, N. Y. 103
examines a specimen of rock from a building, some-
times the quarry is first visited where the rock was
obtained, and then the building ; and at other times
the building is first visited, and then the quarry.
If psychometers only wandered over places as they
exist at the present time, which appears to be the case
with Mrs. do Viel, such an explanation would be quite
sufficient for all cases ; but when they wander, as
they appear to do, through the streets of cities, which
they find in their prime, though they have been but
heaps of ruins for centuries, when they skim over
wide continents, containing strange mountain chains
and long-perished rivers ; roam through trackless for-
ests alive with extinct mammals, and visit the ocean-
caves of early geologic periods, very different must
be the explanation of this. Can it be that all the Si-
lurian period — its thermal oceans, its shelly beaches,
its foggy skies, all its tenants of water and rock, and
t'le diversified surface and changing conditions of the
globe and its inhabitants during its vast continuance
— is locked up in the fragment of limestone, whose
interior is viewed by the psychometer ? I am some-
times inclined to think that the universe is contained
in every pebble, and it only needs the all-compelling
soul to call it forth. Time will explain all.
EXPERIMENT XLL
There is a remarkable gulf, north of the town of
Lockport, New York, evidently produced by a branch
of the Niagara river, which, at some distant period,
flowed over the ridge there, and cut its way back for
more than a mile. At the present time there is a small
104 THE SOUL OF THINOS.
creek flowing through it, which empties into Lake On-
tario a lew miles below. There is a mineral spring at
the bottom of the gulf, and some one had dug out the
rock in its neighborhood in order to deepen it. I car-
ried away a block of it to Lockport, and broke out
from the centre of it a small piece, which, up to that
time, had never seen the light. I wrapped it in two
thicknesses of paper, and then presented it to Mrs.
Taylor for examination, she having at the time, I am
positive, no knowledge of it whatever. She was si-
lent for some time, but at length said : —
" I find great difficulty in fixing my mind upon it.
I am on the edge of a clifl*; below me there is a deep
ravine, with a little stream running through it, off to
the lake. I go across a rocky, uneven piece of
ground, and see trees and grass ; trees grow on the
side of the ravine. I see you hammering among the
rocks."
The description is accurate in every particular.
Is a man exaggerating when he says the paving-stones
can sec, and tell what they see ? Images of external
objects in their vicinity are impressed even upon their
interiors; images that will continue as long as the
stones themselves endure.
EXPERIMENT XLU,
When seeking for fossils in the bed of the Wyan-
dotte River in Kansas, some years ago, I found a piece
of petrified bone, apparently a portion of the leg-bone
of some monstrous mammal ; and near it a piece of the
enamel of a tooth, looking somewhat like the side of a
mastodon^s tooth. This was examined by Mrs. Den-
ENAMEL OP A TOOTH. 105
ton, she as usual neither seeing it nor knowing any-
thing of its supposed character.
"I see a very large and singular-looking animal,
great beyond anything that I ever conceived a quad-
ruped to be. Its huge legs are wide apart ; the hind
legs considerably larger than the fore legs. The head
is large, and must be very heavy ; it moves from side
to side. There is a kind of marsh where plants grow,
and there it goes to eat.
" It seems as if I could describe the whole of the
internal organs of the animal. The bones are large,
and the marrow seems monstrous. The skin is very
thick. The nose comes down a long way and widens
out, and the animal seems to have had the power of
lengthening its neck at will."
EJFERIMENr ZLUr,
The fragment of tooth was also examined by Mrs.
Cridge, under like conditions. I had carefully kept
both specimens from observation previous to these ex-
periments, in order to have a satisfactory result.
" I can see many animals that are large, but I see
them too indistinctly to describe them. One is a large
animal with horns, which lie back toward the shoulder.
It has a very long head, and is about the size of a
horse, but differs from all animals that I have seen.
" A river appears before me, and a swamp, and a
thicket connecting the swamp and river. There is
one very large animal near there, a walking stack of
flesh. What curious legs I They are spread out and
look very heavy, but look short compared with the
size of the animal ; the ankle joint seems to come right
106 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
<lowa on the ground. It has a very long neck. The
lore feet are unlike the hind feet. It eats branches of
trees. It has the power of drawing in and sending
out its neck. The head seems small compared with
t!ie size of the body." (In reply to a question:) "I
tliink it has a trunk, but it is shorter than an ele-
phant\s ; it seems to smell by it. It is very wide at the
end and open. There I I see the animal roll it over
and over, and place it on the top of the head.
" I see another animal, light-colored and scaly, cov-
ered with a suit of armor ; it has quite a long tail. It
has a long head, and horns laid back upon it. The
back is covered with regular, sharp protuberances;
underneath it is of a brown color. It is quite harm-
less, living upon herbs. I can see it nibbling. Its
teeth seem to be quite sharp."
It appears evident that both saw the same animal,
though the descriptions differ somewhat. One sees a
marsli where plants grow; the other sees a swamp and
a thicket. Both see a very large quadruped; both
notice that its legs are wide apart, though they speak
of it in somewhat different language, and both observe
a difference between its fore and hind feet. One sees
that it possesses a trunk, which the other does not
appear to observe until the question is asked whether
it has or not ; but both state that it is wide at the end,
which is very different, as every one knows, from the
shape of the elephant's proboscis. Let it be remember-
ed, that neither person knew that the specimen exam-
ined was a part of any animal, and that these remarka-
ble coincidences were brought out, not by hints given
or leading questions asked, but by presenting the
RAIN-PRINTS ON SANDSTONE. 107
specimen, which certainly could convey no idea to
ordinary touch of its nature, and then leaving all to be
educed by its pyschometric examination alone.
From pyschometric examinations, made at various
times, I believe that many huge animals existed in
North America during the Tertiary period, allied to
the mastodon and megatherium, and some that appear
to have been links between the pachydermata and
edentata ; the descriptions given agreeing partly with
t!ie one and partly with the other.
From the appearance of the cervical vertebras, in the
engraving of the skeleton of the megatherium, given
in Dr. Buckland's Bridgewater Treatise on Geology,
it seems very probable that it had the power of pro-
truding the head, thus enabling it to reach distant
branches without moving its ponderous body. The
vertebras of the neck seem to be concave on their
upper surfaces, and convex on their lower, fitting into
each other, as one cup of a set fits into another; so
that they could be removed a considerable distance
apart without danger of dislocation.
The animal seen encased in armor was probably
allied to the Armadillo family, many of which, of
gigantic size, with shells like turtles, existed on the
American continent during the Tertiary period.
EXPERlMEUrr 2[LIV.
At Chagi'in Falls, Cuyahoga Co., Ohio, there is, in
a sandstone quarry, a layer about three inches thick,
on which are found, over the whole surface, the im-
pression of rain-drops ; corresponding casts of them
being found on the under surface of the overlying
108 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
layer. Occasionally, fossil fish with heterocercal tails
have been fuiind iu the same layer as the rain-drops.
The rock is a member of the Devonian formation,
ilrs. Denton, without seeing it or knowing anything
regjirding it, placed a small piece of one of the slabs,
containing the impressions of rain-drops, upon her
forehead, and said : —
" I see a zigzag flash of lightning; it divided before
it reached the earth. Now I am in a shower, and feel
as if drenched by rain. This must be the impression
of rain-drops."
How strange that the electric flash which darted to
the earth millions of years ago, should still be visible,
and the rain that followed it still be felt I
EXPERIMENT XLV.
When travelling through Texas, several years ago, I
found in Henderson County a creek, the bed of which
contained innumerable fragments of silicified wood,
some of them of rare beauty ; and in the vicinity, I
saw bodies of trees, two and three feet in diameter,
and many feet in length, changed into sohd flint. One
of the small pieces that I brought home with me, was
the subject of this experiment, which was made as
before.
" I see water and trees, some standing and others
lying. The water is peculiar ; it has some property in
it that produces a feeling of incrustation, on putting the
hands into it. It is very warm ; a hot steam rises from
it. It has a saltish taste, but there seems to be some
alkali in it. It looks clear, except on the top, where
a kind of crust floats upon the surface. The water
FOSSIL WOOD FROM TEXAS. . 109
flows over a small cascade into a lake below. Moving
my position, I now see trees, tall, large and majestic,
and the light comes through their dense foliage. They
shoot up very high before branching. I can see trees
on the upland, but they are more scrubby. Many
trees are lying in the water.
" I go down the stream. What quantities of drift-
wood! The water is almost danmied by it. What
monsters I — large, spotted lizards like crocodiles ;
some in the water, and others crawling on the soft
mud. The water and the swamp are full of them.
The spotted ones are too slender for crocodiles, and
their jaws too long.
" One I see with a short and broad mouth. At the
connection of its legs with its body is a wing-like
extension of the skin. It seems well suited for the
water, biit is clumsy on land.
" I see many small animals that the large ones are
in pursuit of How rapidly they dart away! One
dives right into the mud, as a fish would into the
water ; its sharp snout being well fitted for the work.
" What monstrous reptiles I Here is the struggle for
life. I see many reptiles that look like newts, but
they are from three to four feet long. The water here
is very difibrent from that which I first saw."
Here the trees and the silicifying agencies seem to
have come up first, as most intimately related to the
history of the specimen ; then its surroundings during
the Tertiary period, when it was drinking in the influ-
ences of the crawlers that abounded in it. If the ex-
amination had been continued longer, I have no doubt
t!iat the images of the Tertiary quadrupeds would have
10
K'
110 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
pre8ente(l themselves, and perhaps those of the early
human occupants of the country.
Here wo have an evidence of the great deficiency
of ordinary geological investigation, in revealing to
us the various forms of life that have existed on the
face of the globe. 1 think it probable that a thousand
times as many animals existed, prior to the human
period, as the paleontologist knows anything about.
Take these Texan Tertiary deposits, and we find in
them no bones, no footprints, nothing to tell of the
myriads of animals that swarmed and rioted during
countless generations, but the psychometric impres-
sions, which seem to be the only means by which the
gaps that at present exist in paleontology can be filled
EXPERIMENT XLVL
An experiment made with a Tertiary fossil, obtained
near Calabazal, in Cuba, gave me a wider view of what
this psychometric power is destined to do for science
in the future than I ever possessed before.
Mrs. Denton.
" I see streams of water running down the side of a
hill; the water is very much charged with foreign
matter. There are rocks visible, that seem to have
been formed by deposit from the water. There are
fossils in the rock, but they differ from any I ever saw
before.
" I go back in time, and see a volcano and a shower
of fire. There is a long dark strip of rock from the
low ground up to the volcano. The land seems very
unstable ; rocking, and heaving up, and sinking down ;
sometimes appearing above the water, and then vanish-
FOSSIL FROM CUBA. Ill
ing beneath. I seem to be on an island. The eastern
part is less stable than the western. All the western
part is under water now. The island is longer from
east to west than from north to south. It extends south
of east, farther than directly east. I think it is south
from here. The coast is very singular. I see what
would probably be called a barrier reef along the
coast, and so regular is a portion of it that it looks ar-
tificial.
" The climate is delightful. I seem to be on the
north side of the island, west of the centre, and some-
what inland.
" I have a glimpse of a grove, with vines stretching
from tree to tree, and naked boys climbing on them.
"Farther south and east there is a strip of land
richer than here. This seems to have been washed
by the sea. There is a kind of point here, and I see
what looks like an artificial ditch."
At the time when this examination was made, I
did not really know on what part of the island of
Cuba the specimen was obtained ; but on writing to
llr. McDonell, of Madison, Wis., of whom I received it,
he informed me that " Calabazal is twelve miles south
cf the city of Havana, at a point where a railroad
crosses a stream, half way between Havana and Santi-
ago."
How wonderfully correct, then, were the statements
of the psychometer. Cuba is seven hundred and fifty
miles long from east to west, with an average breadth
of about sixty miles ; consequently the island is
" longer from east to west than from north to south."
Its direction is E. S. E., hence " it extends south of
112 THE 80CL OP THINGS.
east farther than directly east." The mountains in-
crease in height from the west to the east end of the
island, where they are diflFused over nearly the entire
surface, some of them being nearly 8,000 feet high ;
KO that it is probable that the eastern part has been
less stable than the western. The specimen was
taken from " the north side of the island," " west of
the centre," and twelve miles from the coast ; and con-
sequently, " somewhat inland." It came from a place
'* south from here," which has a " delightful climate ; "
and from a Tertiary bed, containing many fossiLs, dif-
fering from any that Mrs. D. had seen before. It was
taken from a railway cutting, which may explain the
ditch that was seen.
Let it be remembered that Mrs. D. did not see the
specimen; that she had no conception whatever as
to the character of it, or the place from which it was
obtained ; and that I did not know many of the facts
stated during its examination, and its extraordinary
character is most manifest.
What is to prevent the accurate exploration of the
Arctic and Antarctic regions by a process incompar-
ably easier and cheaper than the expeditions of Parry,
Ross, and Kane ?
EXPERIMENT XLVU.
Recently, the alligators that swarm in our southern
rivers have been put to some useful account ; oil being
made from their bodies, and leather from their skins.
A piece of this leather I had given to me by a friend,
and in a few days had an opportunity of trying it psy-
chometrically. In this, as in all other experiments
recorded, where the contrary is not stated, the psychom-
LEATHER PROM ALLIGATOR'S SKIN. 113
eter did not see the specimen, and had no idea of what
it was previous to the experiment.
" I see an animal with a long neck and a long head.
I see its skeleton. What a long neck I I believe I
can count the bones ; the processes are large and wide
apart. It is an animal much larger than a horse. I
get this indistinctly, as if it really did not belong to it,
or only incidentally. The skeleton resembles that of
the sea cow I saw the other day." (In the Academy
of Sciences, Chicago.) "I see a large leg, bent as if
in walking. It is an alligator's. A little old man passes
before me, with his feet on a chair ; he is bent over as
if doing something.
"Now I am in another place altogether. Other scen-
ery comes up, more tropical. I see plants and ani-
mals, such as live in warmer countries than this. One
animal, I see, is an enormous bird. There are hun-
dreds of reptiles, too ; the water is alive with them.
Two of them are eating the body of a dead animal.
Some of them are alligators. There are many turtles
of various kinds and sizes ; fishes, large frogs, and
other animals."
After informing her what it was, she said that she
had come to the conclusion that it was an alligator's
scale.
The first influence may have come from the oil with
which the leather was curried ; but the stronger influ-
ence eventually makes itself felt.
EZFERIMBJUT XLVDL
Near La Salle, Illinois, on the Illinois River, there is
a large high rock of white sandstone, known by the
10*
114 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
name of Stan'ed Rock, from a legend, which states
tliiit the remnant of an Indian tribe was starved to
death upon it, being surrounded by their enemies.
On the top of the rock, and around it, are found, in
great abundance, Indian arrow-points, arrow-heads,
beads, and pieces of pottery. One of the latter was
the subject of this experiment. Conditions as before.
Mrs. Denton.
" I see a round place, as large as the floor of this
room ; and on it a fire is burning. It looks like a fire
around which Indians gather. There are woods nearly
surrounding the fire. I seem to have a night view.
" There is a stream here, and I am hunted. A num-
ber of fellowb are paddhng across and yelling. I think
they are after me ; but I feel somewhat secure, though I
know not why. Now they are across ; I can see them,
i»ut they cannot see me. They go Indian file, and they
look like Indians. How they shout and whoop 1 I
am crossing over their track, and running into the
woods on the other side. I have come to the conclu-
sion that they were not after me. I seem to have too
much calm, steady thought for an Indian."
Who was this fugitive, and how came this piece of
pottery to record this incident in his life ? The debris
of the old Indian villages abounds with biographies of
the old aboriginal warriors and their families, and if
a man chose to devote himself to the work, he might
write the histories of the Caesars and Napoleons of
the New World, whose names are all unknown.
EXPERIMENT XLIX.
The Autobiography of a Boulder. — At Jaynesville,
AUTOBIOGRAPHY OP A BOULDER. 115
Wis., I obtained from a hill of gravel that had been
cut through by the railroad, a boulder of dark trap, of
somewhat peculiar appearance, and weighing probably
four or five pounds. Breaking off a fragment, the fol-
lowing was obtained from it psychometrically, the psy-
chometer knowing nothing of it, and the angular frag-
ment conveying, of course, no idea of its character to
the mere touch.
"Mercy! what a whirl things are in I I do not
know what to make of it. I feel as if I were being
belched out of a volcano ; there is water and mud, and
everything is in a perfect whirl. There are great
pieces of rock beside me, some larger than I feel my-
self to be, though I am of great size.
"This is the strangest feeling I ever had. I am
sent up whirling in a torrent of water, mud and rocks ;
not sent out, but it is .puff, puff, whirl, whirl, all of us
flying round together.
" Now I am lodged. I can hear that puff, puff, how-
ever, and with every puff, the water rushes out, so
that it seems as though the volcano were vomiting.
Now, a torrent of water rushing back sweeps me from
my resting-place, and I am rolling in again. What
fury there is down there I I did not go far down.
Another gush, and I am washed a long way off. I can
see it boil over now, but do not feel it. I see no fire
about it, though there is steam, and, I think, gas.
" I am now away down the side of a mountain, and
feel quite benumbed. I can just hear that belching
sound and feel the heaving of the grouDd. Here I lie
for a long time.
" At last I fall into a cavity, a deep one, very rough
116 THE SOUL OP THIN08.
and uneven. It is dark. I perceive the influence of
water in my neighborhood. How shall we ever get
out of liere ? I am surrounded on all sides.
" The water has burst in with great power, and it is
spinning me round and round. I am being moved
onward by little and little during a long time. (I
muHit hurry along, for it is a vast period.) I am now
in a kind of notch, where the rushing water keeps me
in a constant whirl.
" At last I see the daylight. There is a long shelf
that slants down into the water; I am washed right
up on it, and the water has left me. It is a long body
of water, larger and wider than a river ; it looks like a
lake, and has waves of considerable size.
" The water rises again ; it washes around me, and
I am carried back into it. All is dark now. I am
washed on into a deep and wide hole. I am far under
ground and under water. There is a strong current,
and I am being rushed along by it. A strange feeling
of passivcness possesses me, a disposition to go as it
comes. It seems so strange to me. I feel as if a
great deal larger then than now. I keep moving
slowly along, slide a little, roU a little, stop a little,
and knock against the side now and then — one side,
however, more than the other; I do not know why
that should be.
" I am out once more. I lie in a basin, in a large
open place. I am not at the bottom of the basin, how-
ever, for other rocks are below me. (How cold the
water is ! ) The basin is gradually filling up, by rocks
rolling in. It is in a terribly cold latitude. I am all
in a chill." (She fairly shook with cold.)
AUTOBIOGRAPHY OP A PEBBLE. 117
"I feel now as if there were something over me
besides water. I don't know what it is, though.''
(The room was very warm, yet she drew her chair
close up to the stove.) " It is strange that I see so
little — I just feel and act. The basin in which. I lie
is shallow from me up. That which lies over me must
be ice, for I can see light through it. I am fast in it
too. My connection with this ice seems to give me a
connection with aU the country round, so that now I
can see for many miles. There is a great depth of
ice ; I look up through it ; it is a long way to the top,
and seems unbroken for a great distance.
" How strange I The ice has broken loose, and I
am in motion now, travelling southwest. It goes very
heavily, hitching now and then. There is a 'kind of
pitching forward of the upper part that surprises me ;
ice certainly could not do that ; the under part seems
to go slower than the upper; it cannot be possible,
and yet it seems so. How intensely cold it is I The
noise the ice makes in moving is awful to me, though
I do not suppose it could be heard far ; and yet here,
it is a terrible grinding noise, with a ring to it.
" It seems as if I had come a long way ; but it is
strange how slow it moves. I do not understand how
a solid body could move in this way, for a part of it
moves faster than another part ; and yet it seems all
solid ; it is incomprehensible. It is a flat, thick mass
of ice, several miles broad. How insignificant a tree
or a house would be in its pathway I
" It seems as if we had a hard time of it, scraping,
scratching, and grinding along. It meets with obstar
cles and checks, more than would be produced by mere
118 TUE SOUL OF THINGS.
unrvonnoss of the ground. I am bo far back, that I
do not iViA 111! that the front has to contend with.
"It seems to bo growing warmer now. I do not
feel :is cold as I did. It is a great deal warmer, and
the heat seems to come from beneath too. The ice ia
mehin<r, drii)i)ing, and running. It seems to melt away
from under: I do not understand that. It does not
seem as if we hud come far enough south to make all
this difference in climate.
** I'lie ice is leaving me, I believe. Yes, it is. The
lengtli of the ice surprises me; it seems like a long
coast of ice ; great cliffs rising up like walls. It melts
and melts, and keeps sliding on, faster since it melted
so rapidly. I have dropped out of the place where I
was, on to the ground, and I am only moved occasion-
ally now. The front of the ice is miles ahead of me,
and overhead the great mass still goes on. I am still
moved on a little occasionally, but the ice is fast leav-
ing. I am neiirly out from under, but the front is still
a long way ahead."
She was too much fatigued to continue the experi-
ment any longer, or doubtless it would have revealed
much more. What it did reveal is significant.
North of the fortieth degree of north latitude, on
this continent, we find, covering the face of the coun-
try, beds of sand, gravel, or clay, and, sometimes mixed
with these, or lying above them, boulders, or, as they
are sometimes termed, erratic blocks and lost rocks.
These rocks frequently differ in their mineral composi-
tion from the rocks in the neighborhood of which they
are found ; and the rocks with which they are identical
in composition are generally found north of their pres-
AUTOBIOGRAPHY OP A PEBBLE. 119
ent localities, sometimes, indeed, many hundreds of
miles. Beneath these beds, which are known to the
geologist in the aggregate, as the drift or glacial form-
ation, we find upon the solid rock scratches or furrows,
that have evidently been made by the passage of some
body over them; that body, from the appearance of
these furrows, having moved in a general direction
from north to south. These beds and appearances
excited the attention of thinking observers for a long
time, before any theory was formed of their origin, ade-
quate to account for the facts observed in connection
with them. At the present time it is universally con-
ceded that ice has been the principal agent concerned
in their production ; but with regard to its operation
there is considerable difference of opinion. One party
supposes that during the drift period, the time when
these beds and appearances were formed, this northern
country, over which the drift extends, was under
water ; and icebergs, laden with fragments of rock and
detritus, swept by glaciers from some northern re-
gion, came floating down, as they now do from the
west coast of Greenland into the Atlantic Ocean, and
stranded upon the shore; but, impelled by a south-
ward-flowing current, they shd over the floor of the
ocean, and their imbedded pebbles made the furrows
or scratches ; and, on melting, the material with which
they were laden was left upon the floor of the ocean,
forming, when that became dry land, the beds of drift to
which I have referred. Another party supposes that,
owing to some cause as yet unexplained, this northern
country had, during the drift period, an intensely cold
climate, so much so that snow falling could not melt,
120 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
but becaiiio condensed by its weight into a grand sheet
of ice of vast thickness, which covered the face of the
country; and that this sheet of ice, moving in the only
direction in which it could melt, namely, toward the
south, passed over the country, grinding down the
rocks in its march, and leaving upon them those plain
indications of its progress, which the glacial furrows
and beds present.
There are many diflSculties in the way of accepting
the glacial theory, as it is termed, but the psychometric
experiments that we have made upon scratched rocks-,
point unvaryingly to the existence of glacial action at
the localities from which the specimens were derived ;
and at the same time the action of icebergs is indica-
ted as one of the. auxiliaries in producing the varied
phenomena belonging to the drift.
It is a remarkable fact, a fact with which Mrs. D. was
unacquainted at the time that the above examination
was made, that ice, moving in the forijai of a glacier, trav-
els with unequal velocity. Thus, in an article on gla-
ciers and glacial theories, in the Westminster Review,
the writer says : — " The rate of movement of all parts
of a glacier is by no means the same. Sometimes the
commencement and the end appear to move somewhat
faster than the middle, sometimes the lower end moves
more swiftly than the upper, — difiFerences which
doubtless proceed from changes in the form of the
yalley, and consequent variations in the amount of re-
sistance at different points. But there is a constant
and most important discrepancy between the rate of
motion of the central part of the glacier and that of
the sides ; the former being invariably found to be mov-
AUTOBIOGRAPHY OP A PEBBLE. 121
ing onward much more quickly than the latter. The
same relation appears to hold good between the super-
ficial and the deeper portions, so that the motion of a
glacier resembles that of a flowing body. It matters
not whether we choose a limpid fluid like water, or a
viscus fluid like tar, if we allow either to flow, and
then measure the velocity of its difierent parts, we
shall discern that the lateral and ii\ferior portions are
retarded by friction against the walls of the channel,
and hence that the top flows faster than the bottom, the
middle than the sides."
On seeing this psychometrically, Mrs. D.'s astonish-
ment was very great, and she could scarcely credit
the possibility of her vision being correct in this par-
ticular; yet, the scientific accuracy. of it, the well-in-
formed reader will see at a glance.
There is one portion of the psychometric descrip-
tion that deserves particular notice ; it is that in which
the heat is spoken of as coming up from the earth into
the ice and melting it. The spot where the boulder
was obtained is on the edge of that singular region of
No Drift, which is nearly coincident with the lead re-
gion of Illinois, Wisconsin, and Iowa ; extending all
around for a few miles beyond the district in which
lead is found. On every side of this district drift is
abundantly distributed, especially to the north of it ;
but within that charmed circle you cannot find even a
drift pebble. What can be the reason of this ? Some
have suggested, that, during the drift period, this por-
tion of the country was an island, so far elevated
above the waves that drifting icebergs never reached
it, and consequently deposited no drift. But this ex-
11
122 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
planation takes for granted that all drift phenomena
were produced by floating icebergs, which is far from
being provetl. How does it happen that the region of
the No Drift is coincident with the lead region, and
that there is no other portion of this continent, north
of the fortieth parallel, in which drift is thus absent?
I have long been of the opinion that the lead in the
region referred to, has come from below, in the state of
vapor, through the underlying porous sandstone into
the magncsian limestones in which it is found ; the de-
posits having been formed by subUmation, at a time
wlicn the rocks were heated to a certain degree, even
to tlie surflicc ; indications of which are plain and abim-
dant. This may have occurred during the drift peri-
od, and, as the glaciers came down from the north and
northeast, they melted as they came near this heated
district, leaving their detritus on the spot, and thus
formed tliose immense accumulations of drift that are
found in Wisconsin, north of the lead region. I had
no thought of this theory at the time that we made
the examination, but our examinations favor it very
strongly ; for, if so, the circumstances described in the
last experiment, must have taken place at or near the
very place from which the boulder was obtained.
EXPERIMENT L,
Some glimpses of the ancient world that we have
occasionally had, seem to indicate that the earth was
once surrounded by a ring, or rings, like those sur-
rounding the planet Saturn, which having become bro-
ken from time to time, have dropped to the earth in
fragments. Some of them yet remaining in space, and
RING SURROUNDING THE EARTH. 123
occasionally drawn within the sphere of the earth's at-
traction, may constitute a portion of those bodies
known as shooting stars and aerolites; while others
still remaining may produce the appearance known as
the zodiacal light. I have not had an opportunity of
verifying this by the statements of other psychome-
ters, but hope to do so at some time. This experiment
gave us the first presentation of this appearance : —
Soapstone from the bed of a creek near Painesville.
Devonian formation.
Mrs. Denton.
" Did you get this from a stream ? for I seem to be
in the bed of a creek. There are two trees on one
side and an open space on the other.'' (This is cor-
rect.) " I see a tropical region, and plants and, ani-
mals in great abundance. I see the sun setting, but
the atmosphere does not look clear as now. It looks
much as it does when very foggy. There is a long
circular belt or arch of light in the water, that looks
as if reflected from something above. The sun is still
above the horizon, but I see the light of this body
notwithstanding, for the dark atmosphere seems to
prevent the sun's light from obscuring it.
" Now I see it in the sky; it is a segment of an arch ;
but there seems to be more of it than I can see. It ex-
tends from the eastern horizon upward for about sev-
enty degi'ees, at least that is as far as I can see it. It
looks about as broad as the full- moon, yet has a faint
appearance of being broader."
A few days afterward, from the 'same specimen, the
belt was seen in the heavens again, but much broader
than before; apparently, three times as broad. The
124 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
Huii^rt place in the heavens was about twenty degrees
Houlh of the heh. It did not appear this time nearly
as bright as before ; it looked as if covered with a
veil, hiding its brightness, though through it the shape
was distinctly revealed.
EXPERIMENT U.
The next three experiments were made for the pur-
pose of discovering the condition of the earth, and of
its fauna and flora, during the Carboniferous period,
and their revelations are of great interest to the
paleontologist. In no case was the specimen known.
Small specimen from a bone bed in the Coal Mea-
sures, near Youngstown, Mahoning County, Ohio.
There are impressions of plants in the shale below.
Mrs. Denton.
" I see plants as tall as a man ; two-thirds of the
way up the stalk, is a bright, yellowish red bud ; I call
it a bud for want of a more appropriate name ; out
of it the upper stalk appears to grow. It is really on
one side of the main stem, but grows with it for some
distance. There is just one bud on each plant. At
the end of the stalk is something that looks like a corn
tassel. The plants are quite succulent, and cover
the ground completely, as close together as they can
grow.
" I sec ribs, naked ribs, and now the skeleton of a
long animal. I see another skeleton, longer than the
first, but the ribs are not as large. Now I see the ani-
mal ; it resembles 'a lizard, and has a fringe of long
spines along the back.
^^ I see another animal, with a scalloped shell upon
SANDSTONE, WESTERN RESERVE. 125
its back. It has somewhat the appearance of a turtle
with a scalloped shell all round.
" I see a fish, with spines from the head to the end
of the tail. All I see looks odd, strange."
EZPEsncEyT zn.
Sub-carboniferous sandstone. Western Reserve, Ohio.
Mrs. Denton.
" I see something that looks like a plant, but it dif-
fers from anything I ever saw before. It has several
stalks that go up to a certain height, and a round body
encloses the whole; then they go up again smaller,
and are enclosed in a similar manner; then again;
and then at the top it branches into heads, mak-
ing it, altogether, about three feet in height. That
which encloses the stalks looks something like a recep-
taculite.*
" The stalks that support the little heads, of which
there are some five or six, seem to be furnished with
cilia in constant motion ; and from the heads proceed
tentacles, also having a constant, wavy motion. They
must be some low kind of animal, instead of plant ;
probably, belonging to the radiates. The heads, as I
call them, move somewhat as I have seen crinoids.
The bodies encircling the stems are of a brown color,
the stems somewhat lighter. They are really beau-
tiful.
" The water is very dark, and seems quite thick ; it
has much the color of smoked glass. It is not caused
by mud, however, but it is chemically impure. There
is a long, low, flat piece of ground with plants growing
* A coral -like fossil found in the Silurian formation.
11*
126 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
Oil it, that look like high weeds. The water rises so
as to cover it occasionally. The atmosphere is dark
and heavy."
BZPBBIMENT LIU.
A piece of anthracite coal from Pennsylvania.
Mrs. Denton.
" I see a shallow stream of water that looks like a
kind of bayou. A dense vapor hangs over it, that it is
difficult to penetrate. I seem to be in a boggy place,
where there is a great deal of vegetable matter be-
neath me, not floating on the water, but the water is
all through it, so that it is soft and spongy. I should
think there are two or three hundred feet of vegeta-
ble matter beneath my feet ; and it seems as if I could
shake acres of it all round.
" I see an island of higher ground in this swamp,
with a dead tree twenty or thirty feet high upon it. I
had a glimpse just then of an enormous lizard-like
animal."
Such examinations have given me a more vivid, and,
at the same time, what seems to be a more correct
idea of the Carboniferous era than I ever had, before
investigating the subject psychometrically.
Many may object to the apparent abundance of
reptilian forms that were presented in these exami-
nations ; but the number of fossil reptiles, known to
geologists, in the Carboniferous formation, is constantly
increasing.
According to Lyell, previous to the year 1844, no
remains of air-breathing animals were known as low
as the Coal Measures. In ten years from this time,
that is, in 1854, the skeletons, or portions of the skele-
GLOBULAB FOSSIL FROM WJSCONSIN. 127
tons, of no less than seven Carboniferous reptiles,
referred to five diflferent genera, were brought to
light, besides numerous reptilian footprints, made by
animals larger than those whose bones were discov-
ered.
From the great number of genera compared with the
number of species, we may safely infer that the num-
ber of species of reptiles, existing during the Carbon-
iferous period, was very much greater than that
discovered ; and that we have made the acquaintance
of but a few of a very numerous family, whose por-
traits Nature has carefully preserved in her rocky
galleries. And although, at present, but one reptiHan
form is known to the geologist in the Devonian formar
tion, yet, I am well satisfied, that, during the deposition
of the Chemung group, one of the higher groups of the
Devonian formation in the State of New York, rep-
tilian forms abounded in the waters, although not a
bone or track of them has yet been found. At some
future time we may refer to these early reptiles again.
EXPERIMENT LIV.
A peculiar globular fossil, about an inch in diameter,
found near Evansville, Wisconsin, in the Upper Magne-
sian or Galena Limestone. It is, probably, a fossil rad-
iate of some-kind.
Mrs. Denton. Specimen seen.
" A remarkably beautiful view is presented. I see
a shell more than a foot long. Near it are several
singular bodies, having roots like plants and stems
five or six feet long; on the top is a green translu-
cent body, with a soft gelatinous covering, fully half
128 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
an inch thick. The interior reflects through the trans-
lucent green, giving a mixture of orange, purple, and
a tinge of pink. Among them is a large star-fish, or
an animal of that kind ; it is covered with spines. 1
perceive branches spreading from the top of that
green animal. (This water is poisonous, I believe ; it
seems as if it would poison me now.)
" 1 see a long body, a foot in diameter, which looks
like a green feathery brush, collected around some
small body.
" Two eyes come before me, and disappear in an in-
stant. I see that shell again, and another one, curved
and thicker in proportion to its length. The animal of
the first is retreating into its shell. There is some-
thing at the end of the head, of the same shape as the
orifice of the shell. The animal seems slimy. Some
of them look double, as if there were two bodies in
one shell, or two heads united in one body. I see
one go right into the shell, and the cover, I saw, comes
tight down and closes it. It does not seem to do it
often, only when it is alarmed. As snails thrust out
horns, so this thrusts out two bodies that resemble
them. There are bodies at the end of them that look
strange ; they are brick-colored, and I believe are
eyes; the animal itself is dark-colored."
These forms are in harmony with what- we know of
life, during the period of the deposition of the lime-
stone in which the fossil was found. The Oalena lime
stone belongs to the Lower Silurian formation, and at
the time of its deposition, moUusks, articulates, and
radiates abounded ; and we do not know that any
higher animals than these existed. Many beautiful
POTSDAM SANDSTONE, WISCONSIN. 129
radiates, with plant-like steins and flower-like bodies,
must have flourished in the heated waters of those
early oceans.
E2LPEBIMENT LV.
Having obtained a specimen of Potsdam sandstone,
when in Wisconsin, I subjected it to psychometric ex-
amination.
Mrs. Denton.
" I see shells ; multitudes of them, swimming and
floating on the water. Everything is so small and
delicate here ! There are many small bivalves. A
delicate fan-like leaf comes floating along ; it is lightish
green, and looks as if it grew in the water.
"I see a shell much larger than the bivalves; it
seems a univalve, but it is still small. Everything is
very diminutive. There are many species of minute
organic forms, but they are too small almost for notice.
" The large shell, of which I spoke, has the mouth
covered with a flexible membrane, through which the
animal sucks. This membrane it sometimes presses
out, so as to make it convex at the mouth of the
shell.''
The organic forms existing during the period of the
deposition of the Potsdam sandstone, were generally
small, if we may judge from the fossils whose remains
have been discovered in it. This was not, however,
invariable ; for the tracks found on slabs belonging to
this period, in various parts of Canada, show that crus-
taceans, larger than our ordinary crabs, crawled along
the sandy shores at this time. Life probably existed
in much higher forms in some parts of the earth than
130 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
others, during the same geologic period, notwithstand-
ing the general similarity of organic forms in contem-
poraneous formations.
EZPERIMENT LVL
The Potsdam sandstone, which lies at the base of
the Silurian formation in North America, was long
supposed to be the lowest fossiliferous rock on the con-
tinent ; and its fossils, of which but few were known,
were regarded as the earliest representatives of life
that existed in the ocean, at that period, covering
nearly the whole land.
To Dr. Emmons must be attributed the discovery of
fossiliferous beds, on this continent, lower than the
Potsdam sandstone. But it is hardly presumable that
the Taconic formation, the name which he gives to the
fossiliferous beds below the Potsdam, contains the re-
mains of the earliest organic beings. As we have one
formation, the Silurian, that contains no remains of
reptiles, others still higher, the Devonian and Carbon-
iferous, that contain no remains of birds, there may be
a formation, yet to be discovered, in which no fish
remains exist ; another, lower, in which articulate fos-
sils shall be absent ; and another, still lower, in which
even the mollusks shall disappear, and the radiata be
the only representatives of animal existence on the
globe. The Huronian rocks, largely developed in
Canada, on the borders of Lakes Huron and Superior,
are known to be older than the Potsdam sandstone, for
that sandstone is found resting upon them ; but the
Laurentian group is still older, for the Huronian rocks
are found resting unconformably upon it, showing that
LAUBENTIAN LIMESTONE. 131
the rocks composing it were deposited, consolidated,
and upheaved before the Huronian beds were laid
down. How much older than the Potsdam sandstone
then are these beds! These metamorphic beds of
gneiss, crystallized limestone, &c., have been examined
over a large area ; but, as might be supposed, in such
highly metamorphosed rocks, no recognizable fossil has
yet been found, though bodies have been discovered
that bear some resemblance to the coral Stromatapora
rugosa, but no paleontologist, that I am aware, accepts
these as actual fossils, though several have suspected
their organic origin. Had not the limestones of the
Laurentian group been metamorphosed, I have no
doubt they would have yielded fossils in great abun-
dance. As it is, their forms have vanished ; but the
heat that could destroy their forms, could not dissi-
pate their influence, and hence the psychometer finds
them instinct with life.
I gave to Mrs. Denton a piece of crystallized lime-
stone, from the Laurentian rocks at Perth, Canada West,
she being unaware of its nature.
" I see an object that consists of three leaf-shaped
divisions, that expand and contract ; when expanded,
it is more than an inch across ; but when contracted,
it seems to sink into cells, somewhat like the coral
polyps. There is a stalk about six inches long, on
which this portion rests, which has cells all round it.
" I see many objects now that it is difficult to de-
scribe. One, about two inches long and one inch in
diameter in the widest part, is round, grows on a stalk,
and expands about two-thirds of the way to the top,
and then diminishes more rapidly to an end that is not
132 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
ad small as the other. It has some appearance of a
criiioid, but diflfers from any that I have ever seen.
The upper part branches out like foliage ; it has a
pinkisli tinge. There are open places on the sides,
through which tentacles are protruded and drawn in
again. I see those on the top contract and expand,
but not as much so, I think, as the other. I see many
corals too, with larger cells than I ever saw before. I
can see the polyps very clearly. There are many dif-
ferent forms here."
The Laurentian rocks, styled by the government
geologists of Canada the oldest rocks of the globe,
may possibly prove to belong to the Radiate era, the
dawn of the morning of life on our planet.
EXP£BIMENT LVU,
I placed in a box the following specimens, each
wrapped separately in a piece of paper, so that no one
by ordinary sight could be distinguished from another :
Fragments of the Porcelain Tower, China ; Mastodon's
tooth ; Bone of fossil fish ; Brick from ancient Rome ;
Limestone from Mount Lebanon ; Temple of Minerva,
Baii; Obsidian, Mexico; Sandstone from Connecticut
Valley ; Limestone from Mackinaw ; Hornstone, Mount
of Olives ; Fossil wood from Kansas ; Lava, Mount
Vesuvius ; Antimony, Borneo ; Lead ore, Platteville,
Wisconsin ; Boulder, Jaynesville, Wisconsin ; Silver
ore, Mexico ; Aerolite ; White marble, Anti-Libanus ;
Lava, Kilauea; Conglomerate, Lake Superior; Gold-
bearing quartz, Australia ; Glacial-scratched rock, Wis-
consin ; and Basalt, FingaPs Cave, Staffa.
Mrs. Denton took out one of these, no one knowing
fingal's cave. 133
which it was, and described what she saw and felt as
follows : —
" I can hardly tell whether I am on the surface or
under ground. I seem to be in a kind of cave, but I
do not have that chilly feeling that belongs to caves.
If a cave, it is a large one. It is a cave of some
kind, and yet cave is hardly a proper name for it. It
is open to daylight, with a wide entrance. I do not
know how I got in here. I do not seem to stand on
the ground at all, or on rock. It seems as if there
were water in there. How did they explore it ?
Parts of the rocks are drenched with water. The
cave is open to a great body of water that comes in.
On each side there are — what shall I call them? —
pillars of rock.
" It looks dark farther in. I feel as if in water, and
not a great way from other land. I have glimpses
of land at a comparatively short distance. It feels
like the sea where I am. At the opening of the cave
there are shorter pillars that do not reach to the roof;
I see them on the left-hand side in going in. How
delightful to sail in there I There is a grandeur and
novelty about it that few other places possess. How
high the entrance is ! The floor seems to be water ; I
can see no other floor. These are regular columns;
they are not rough and uneven, as rock generally is. I
am reminded of FingaPs Cave ; it looks like the pic-
ture of it which I have seen.
" There is a sensation of sailing in there, or more as
if a vessel went dashing by me. I caught a glimpse
of rigging just then ; it vanished in an instant. I can
hear the sea roaring, and dashing, both. There is
12
134 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
something terrific about it/' (Mrs. D. had never seen
the sea at this time.) "It has such a feeling of unceas-
ing, never-ending motion about it.
"I see a large bird, and hear several screaming.
What can they find on such a rock as that ? I see no
vegetation. They alight on some of those columns.
How they delight in daring the dashing waves and the
storm. I see a great many now ; they inspire me^ I
see fishes in the water, but not distinctly ; I just catch
a glimpse of them now and then.
" The sensation of the whole is almost overwhelm-
ing; standing here all alone with the wide expanse,
the roaring waves, the screaming birds, where human
beings seldom come — how grand ! There is a majes-
tic loneliness about it that attracts me ; I want to dare
the elements with those birds.
" I think that roof has extended farther out at some
time. Yes, a great deal farther out. I seem to hear
it fall into the water with a terrible crash and splash.
I think it bent round to the right and joined some
other land at a vastly distant period. What a mag-
nificent place this was once ! How much we have lost
of the beauty of the past ! It has been more than as
long again at .one time ; what remains is but the end
of it. There are columns still remaining out in the
water, at a distance from the shore.
" The land has been all around here for a long way
at some time. There was once an extensive tract,
which has sunk under water. The sensation I have, is
more of its having sunk than of its being washed
away, though that has been done to some extent. The
land seems to have vibrated for some time before it
fingal's cave. 135
became stationary. I see it rise and sink, rise and
sink, over a considerable extent. I do not see how it
could have been, but that is what I perceive.
" There is quite a number of islands around here.
The main body of the land seems to have sunk and
left them. I wonder if some of them are not the tops
of mountains.''
Half the examination was made, before she knew
that I had a specimen from FingaPs Cave in my pos-
session ; yet, had she visited it in person, a more accu-
rate description of the cave and its surroundings,
according to the statements of many visitors, could
hardly have been given.
Staffa, the island on which FingaPs Cave is situated,
is one of the Hebrides, or Western Isles, of which
there are one hundred and sixty. Sir J. Banks gives
the following measurements of the cave: — Length
from the rock without, 371 ft. 6 in.; breadth of the
mouth, 53 ft. 7 in.; and height of the arch at the
mouth, 117 ft. 6 in. There are pillars from thirty to
fifty feet in height, and the sides are columnar through-
out. "As the sea never ebbs entirely out, the only
floor of this beautiful cave is the fine green water."
Some months afterward I accidentally met with a
description of the island of Stafia, by J. MaCCulloch,
M. D., F. L. S., in the Monthly Magazine for 1815, in
which are statements that corroborate some of the
ideas advanced during the previous examination. He
says, " I took notice of a fact of considerable impor-
tance in the natural history of this island, which had
before escaped the remarks of visitors. This is the
occurrence of a bed of alluvial matter on some parts
1:^6 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
of the unrface, containiug fragments of the older rocks.
It is most easily seeu at that side of the island whicli
taoes lona. and on the summit of the clififs of a semi-
circular Iwiy o[>ening in that direction. The bed is
liere broken at tlie edge of the cliff, so as to expose
its thickness for a considerable extent. But the same
appearance may also be observed immediately above
the ordinary landing place, where the bed has also
been broken. The stones which it contains are all
rounded, and of various, often considerable, dimen-
sions, and they exliibit specimens of granite, gneiss,
micaceous schists, quartz, and red sandstone. To-
gether with these are some rolled pieces of basalt.
*' Here then is a circumstance in the mineral history
of Staffa, adventitious it is true, but involving diflScul-
ties of no small importance. If we cast our eyes on
the map, we shall perceive that it is embayed in a large
sinuosity formed in the island of Mull, and nearly en-
closed on the opposite side by lona and the Treshan-
ish islands. Beyond the latter a second line is drawn
by Tiney and Coll ; while to the north, but at a greater
distance, are placed the islands of Muck, Rum, Egg,
Canna and Sky.'' After thus examining the whole
ground, he says that he has arrived at the conclusion
tluit " Staffa has formed part of one continuous land
with the islands of Coll, Tiny, and Mull." He is of
the opinion, however, that the separation was caused
by the sea wearing away the missing land, and leaving
the islands as we now find them.
EXPERIMENT LFIH.
Mother-of-pearl opal, southwest of Lake Yajoa. Nica-
raugua.
MOTHER-OF-PEARL OPAL. . 137
Mrs. Denton. Specimen unseen and unknown.
" I see the action of electricity on fine particles of
matter. A flat, circular surface appears, composed of
fine particles of matter, segregated froni the sur-
rounding rock by electrical forces.
" I see a number of persons that seem quite busy ;
they are in a row, and are bent over doing something.
This is a mountainous district, but the mountains do
not seem to be in one continuous chain; the peaks
are scattered. Between the mountains are broad lands
that are to some extent inhabited. I see a village ofi"
at a distance ; I think it stands on high table-land ; I
have to look between mountain peaks to see it. I see
this like a panoramic view ; I do not seem to be there.
" Near me is a deep chasm, very deep ; yet there is
land above me, — heights on either side. The country
has quite a peculiar appearance, unlike any country
I have ever been in before. There is a kind of dark
shade to everything ; it may be some peculiarity of
the foliage, but I do not know.
" There is a human influence about this that is for-
eign ; it is the influence of a people I am not familiar
with. Their influence is singular ; I cannot see them,
but I feel their spirit. They might be called civilized,
but they do not take the interest in art, science, or
intellectual investigations that enlightened people do.
They seem very well satisfied with things as they
are.
" They are religious, but their religion does not
seem to affect their <?onduct much ; it does not enter
into the soul. They may be very tenacious of their
faith, and observe the ceremonies of the church with
12*
138 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
great precision, but their standard of morals is low;
tiioy lack strength of intellect and power of thought.
" One cliaracter comes before me every few minutes,
— a team-driver. He carries a long whip, and shouts
and sings by himself; shouts to his mules, and jumps
on one and rides, instead of getting into his cart. Oc-
casionally ho sits on one side, like a woman. It seems
as if he had no purpose in life beyond the enjoyment
of the present. He comes up before me, among those
hills and mountains, with his team. I think he comes
from that vilhige I saw. He wears a short kind of
frock overcoat, loose pants, that look odd, and has a
slouclied hat.
" It seems to me I could spend months in wan-
dering among these mountains, ravines, and deep can-
ons, — some of them so deep I cannot see the bot-
tom of them. I cannot tell how the people manage to
travel in this country, and yet they seem to do so,
for I see roads here and there.
"This seems to me to be a district where either
precious stonos or precious metals are obtained, and I
think those people, that were stooping, must have been
engaged in getting something valuable, either out of
the stream or out of the rock. There is very pure
water in streams here, but it does not remain in sight
for a great distance, they wind among the hills so. A
beginning has hardly been made in developing the
mineral wealth of this country ; it seems so quiet, so
utterly undisturbed. Why has there not been a diflfer-
ent class of people here ?
" At one place, underground, is an opening, deep
and narrow, a kind of chasm, in which there are trea
THE NORTH POLAR REGIONS. 139
sures. What a pure feeling there is about them ; they
must be precious stones, for I do not feel the metallic
influence which gold gives. There is the common
rock of the country, and these loose fragments of fine
material. This place in which I now am, seems like
an underground canon the rushing waters have been
wearing for ages ; there is some water there now. At
the bottom are precious stones in wonderful abun-
dance. The feeling of purity connected with them is
delightful. Some have been gathered from the sur-
face, but underground, is wealth they never dreamed
of"
It is unnecessary for me to dwell upon this examina-
tion ; the description given of the country and its in-
habitants will be acknowledged, by those who are ac-
quainted with them, to be correct ; while the psychom-
eter plucks out the heart of the secret of the speci-
men under examination.
EJWERIMENT LIX»
One evening in December, 1862, when trying a crys-
tal of amethystine quartz from St. Catherine's Bay, on
the Saguenay, a tributary of the St. Lawrence, Mrs.
Denton seemed to obtain, very readily, comprehensive
views of the "country to the north of there, and event-
ually appeared to pass into the polar regions, though
nothing of the kind was anticipated when the experi-
ment commenced.
" The Hudson's Bay region is a great deal warmer
than I supposed, I see lakes and streams over such
a wide surface that they seem like pictures. I had no
idea that these extreme northern regions had as tern-
140 THE SOUL OF TfflNOS.
perato a climate as they seem to me now to possess. I
see a large river, much larger than I expected to find
in this region. I see vast mountains of ice and snow.
I do not know where I am, but I seem beyond the
limit of the land, on the ice.
" In tlie distance are mountains that look as if they
were land. Some are very high, and one I think is a
volcano ; if so, it is in a state of eruption now. There
is a bluish, purplish, soft haze around it, and a kind of
mellow light over all. It really seems warmer than it
does here.* It is so strange, it appears like another
world. It seems a long way beyond the boundary of
this continent. I fancy that must be the very pole
itself. There is water between me and it. It does
not seem as cold as I should have expected to find it,
and I see neither snow nor ice. The heat seems to
come from the interior, and yet I cannot think it possi-
ble. There seem to be boiling springs there.
" Now I see mountains of ice and snow again ; I
think I must be returning."
SECOND EXAMINATION,
"How difierent from countries that I have previ-
ously explored I In the far north there are not those
continuous forests to shut out the view, and hence the
eye takes a wide sweep. The cold of that country,
after all, is not as terrible as I had supposed. It is its
continuity that makes it so dreadful. How those
snow-peaks shine, as the sun glances on them I There
are great plateaus all covered with snow, and beyond
that the open sea, where it is much warmer."
* We were then in Quebeis.
THE NORTH POLAR REGIONS. 141
THIRD EXAMlNATlOJfT.
"I go under the surface through the rock, for that
is the easier, to the north of Hudson's Bay, on the
western side of it. (I cannot control my movements
when travelling over the surface, but diverge here
and there; which ^ is not as much the case under-
ground.) After I get up there I go over the snow.
" I do not know where I am now, but I am drenched
with water, as if a flood had rolled over me." (She
looked at the map of North America.) " I do not
think they have mapped that accurately. I see a great
chasm, — very large; a little beyond that, and to the
right, a rock towers up perpendicularly to a great
height. I see round snow huts, and men riding in
sledges drawn by dogs of some kind.
" I am among those icebergs, — stationary ones, how-
ever, — and mountains of snow again. Those moun-
tains of ice are magnificent. I see now a long break
in them. They stand up on both sides like two walls ;
and there is a long, straight opening through which I
see for a great distance. The sides are so even that it
looks like a way cut through. There is water at the
bottom. It widens as I go along. It is now a broad
channel, and I can see the water move in it. As I go
up, it moves down. How water can run there I do
not see ; for there are mountains of ice on each side.
There is a slope back from the water; then the ice
rises in peaks. Now I come to a broad sheet of water ;
I cannot see how broad. I am much farther west than
I was before. I have come by a diflerent route. It is
difficult to go farther north. I see the same hazy
appearance that I did before ; the same looking hills ;
142 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
80 far away that I can but just distinguish them. I
have great difEculty in getting there. I keep coming
back, and it requires great eflfort to go forward. There
are hot springs in the sea, or inland near the sea.
I see steam that rises from them. What a peculiar,
yellowish, hazy light that is."
FOURTH examination:
" I seem to be right there. There is the same
singular light; the same hills and mountains. I am
nearer than I was before. 1 see a volcano. I can
imagine that to be the very pole itself, it looks so
central. The rocks are more naked than I at first
thought. I see spires of bare rocks, and nothing
anywhere but hills and rocks. This side of it is a
body of water, bounded on the south by mountains
of ice and snow. It looks difierent, now that I am
so much nearer. There is the same mellow, warm-
looking light. Occasionally it seems colder than at
other times. Sometimes it seems warm as summer.
I see one or more streams of water. One of them is
as wide as the Ohio River at Cincinnati, but not
nearly as deep. It runs over and through naked
rocks ; not in a channel like our rivers; but spreads as
they slope back, washing the whole surface of the
bare rock. I see several orifices, out of which smoke
is issuing."
The question of an open polar sea is one that has
been frequently discussed, and many facts have been
given in favor of it, especially by Dr. Kane. I was
surprised on reading his Arctic Explorations, subse-
quently to the previous experiment, to find how much
MOSAIC FBOM CICERO'S VILLA. 143
the account given by Mr. Morton resembles the de-
scription given by Mrs. Denton, though she had never
seen it. When an unbroken sheet of ice covered the
sea to the east, west, and south, Mr. Morton com-
menced his journey due north, over snow-drifts, and
among icebergs, some of them more than a mile long.
After travelling four days, they discovered a channel
of open water, widening as they continued northward,
the water of which was several degrees above the
freezing point. Still continuing their journey north-
ward, the ice on the side of the channel became rotten,
and the snow wet and pulpy, until eventually they
found the waves beating upon the naked rock, the
channel having expanded into an iceless sea, which
they viewed from a cliff of considerable height, and
over which the wind blew from the north for thirty-six
hours, and yet failed to bring down any ice; indicating,
most plainly an extensive open sea beyond. Supposing
this to be true, we have yet to learn the cause of this
remarkable condition of things.
EXPERIMENT XX
The value of psychometry to the archeologist may be
seen from the five following experiments, which were
made as usual ; the specimen being unseen, and no
knowledge of it given.
A small piece of mosaic pavement, dug up at Cice-
ro's villa, at Tusculum, on a hill near Prascabi, fifteen
miles from Rome, and taken to England, October 15,
1760.
If we can obtain the influence of fishes, birds, and
beasts that existed millions of years ago, why not the
144 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
influence of men who lived during the last few thou-
sand yeara, and thus glean facts of which the historian
is •profoundly ignorant ? Possibly, said I to myself,
this little fragment was pressed by the foot of the
great Roman orator ; and if not, it may have seen him,
and treasured his likeness in its heart. I gave it to
my sister Anne, not a word being said with regard to
its character.
" I see a dense forest. The trees are very high.
Under them I see a mastodon, or something of that
kind. I see its head more distinctly than I ever did
before." (Come down to more modem times, I said.)
" 1 see nothing now but what I might call a milk house,
or more properly, perhaps, a grotto. There is a spring
near it, and trees around it. I see a hill, and an old
man walking round, who wears knee-breeches. A dog
is witli him that looks like a carriage-dog. There is a
house near, — a large one. The place is evidently in
the country. There is a large porch in front of the
house, and gravel walks around it. The windows look
large." (Describe the man.) "The man is not tall.
He wears a dark blue, swallow-tailed coat, with brass
buttons. His hair is long, and he looks as if he wore
a wig or a cue. There are ruffles on his shirt, and he
has a very ancient look. He has a prominent nose, is
quick to perceive ; has large locality, and is benevo-
lent. He is not proud, but has confidence enough in
himself to be manly without being pompous. Consci-
entiousness and caution are well developed, and he has
great force and energy. His activity is connected in
some way with benevolence. He sits down upon a
seat under the trees, and a tall lady stands near, talk-
MOSAIC FROM CICERO'S VILLA. 145
ing to him. She is dressed in very ancient style;
8ho*rt waist, long skirts, and no hoops ; and has a large
collar on her neck. A girl about ten years of age
stands near her.
" Now there is a man walking up the steps in front
of the mansion. He is dressed in modem style, with
light vest, high hat, and long pants."
These were scenes in this specimen's picture-gallery
that I had not anticipated, and did not feel very much
interest in.
EXPERIMENT LXI.
A few days afterward I gave the specimen to Mrs.
Denton, she knowing nothing of its history, or of my
sister's examination of it.
" I feel Anne's influence very strong. I see her
holding this up to her forehead as I am doing. She
must have examined it."
She then desired to know what kind of impressions
I wished from it. I answered, " Surface impressions."
"At some distance from me I see a gravelly bank
with trees near, and at a greater distance there are
gentle swells. At the foot of the bank there is a
stream. Now I see a cascade, not very high, but
rather broad. (There is human influence about this.)
I see the inside of a house, and several rooms. In one
room is a bed, with a person lying on it. The person
seems" to be fifteen or sixteen years of age, and sick.
The bed looks like a broad couch ; and the head of the
person is elevated, owing to the bed being raised at
one end, so as to give it a gradual slope. The place
makes me feel gloomy. There seem to be many difler
ent influences in this."
18
146 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
SECOND BZAMINATION,
Something occurred that prevented any further ex-
amination at that time, and the specimen was laid
away for two or three days, when the examination was
continued.
" I see a large building with stone steps going up, —
six or eight of them ; there are high pillars in front of
it. It looks like a public building, but differs from
any I ever saw. A little way from it, I see another
building ; there is something very magnificent about
them.
" I am now inside of some building. At one side of
a room, in which I find myself, I see something high
and round, covered with crimson velvet. Everything
looks strange. I do not know how to describe what I
see. The style of the building is entirely different
from anything I ever saw, and so is the furniture, if
furniture it may be called. I neither know what to
call it, nor what use it is put to. I see carved work
on the walls, but not very clearly, for the light is not
sufficient to enable me. The windows are very high,
and are either heavily curtained or stained, for the
light docs not appear to come through freely.
" Now I see two pillars about eight feet high ; they
stand near each other, and are adorned with beautiful
carved work at the top and bottom ; they seem made
for ornament. I can hear some one in another part of
the building. There are many persons here, but it is
diflScult for me to see them. I had a glimpse just then
of a woman, or a man with a long robe on. Now I see
a man who looks like a servant ; he has a dress that
comes to his knees ; his pants are loose, and he has a
MOSAIC FROM CICERO'S VILLA. 147
kind of cloak on his shoulders. I could not see him
distinctly enough to describe him.
" Strange 1 I see long lines of people standing side
by side, but they vanish in an instant. They look like
soldiers ; are all dressed alike, have on their heads a
covering, high and pointed, and something in their
hands.
" I am now in the house again." (Try to find the
owner.) "I see a tolerably fleshy man, with a broad
face and blue eyes. At times he appears merry. He
wears a dress that looks easy, something like a gown,
but not as long as a gown. He is a man of a great
deal of spirit ; seems very resolute. What can he be ?
He is majestic, yet has a good deal of geniality about
him, too. He regards himself as superior, and with-
draws from others, though he does not seek to mani-
fest it. It seems to me that he has something to do
with those troops I saw, though that does not appear
to be his life-work. He has a powerful brain."
Was this the eloquent old Roman ? Probably not,
for Cicero is said to have been tall and slender; yet, a
portion of the description is in harmony with what we
know of him. His military talents, evinced when he
was proconsul of Cilicia, would explain the appear-
ance of the soldiers, and the feeling of superiority, spo-
ken of, is in strict accordance with the character of the
great Roman orator, whose vanity seems to have been
his greatest failing. At all events, we have a descrip-
tion in harmony with the time and people of the days
of Cicero.
Long after writing the above, I discovered, in the
course of my reading, that Cicero's house in Tusculum
148 THE SOUL OF TfflNGS.
had belonged, previous to his occupancy of it, to Cor-
nelius Sulla Felix, or, as he is generally called, Sulla,
the Dictator. The description given agrees better
with what is recorded of him, than it does with what
is recorded of Cicero. It is said of him that " he pos-
sessed in the highest degree the art of winning the af-
fection of his soldiers," that " his love of pleasure was
greater than his love of power," and that " women, ac-
tors, mimes, and buflfoons were his favorite compan-
ions to the last years of his life."
Where specimens have taken in so many varied in-
fluences, it is necessarily difficult to obtain any special
one of which we may be in quest. A year's examina-
tion would be none too much for a specimen of this
kind.
EXPERIMENT LIOl.
A small piece of marble, about the size of a pea,
from the ancient Christian church of Smyrna.
Mrs. Denton. She also examined the specimens in
the next eighteen experiments.
*^ A large stream of water is in sight. There is
nothing around but wild scenery. (When I allow my
mind to bo diverted from the subject, everything is
thrown into the greatest confusion.)
" I am in a building, and at one side is a high plat-
form, extending across it, I judge, and above it, a high
window. The platform is not as wide as some I have
seen, and it is higher up than platforms generally are.
At one end of it there is a beautifully finished railing,
with steps down.
" There is an audience of some kind in the room.
One person I see with something in his hand, that ex-
MAEBLE FROM CHURCH OF SMYRNA. 149
tends above his head. It may be a musical instru-
ment ; it is hollow, and bell-shaped at one end. The
congregation seems earnest, as if they had something
important on hand. All seem to have something to do.
It is not like a common meeting; they listen atten-
tively, and look enthusiastic ; their heads are bent for-
ward. Some of those who sit evidently intend to say
something. I cannot see the speaker. One man, who
sits in front, is writing. There is good taste in the ar-
rangement of the room, and much fine, beautiful work.
It must have cost a great deal. It is large and spa-
cious, and its general style is quite different from any-
thing that I am familiar with. Off at one side are cur-
tains, but I cannot tell how they are arranged.
" Now I see a mass of moving people. What can
that be they have on their heads ? They are dressed
differently from those I saw sitting, and differently
from us. How much there is that I cannot describe !
It passes before me with great rapidity, Uke a flying
panorama."
SECOND EXAMlNATIOir.
Eight days afterward the examination was contin-
ued.
" I see a large body of people ; there must be thou-
sands of them. They stand in an oval foim, their
backs toward the interior, and their faces fronting me ;
they are partially bent over. They have high, light
caps on their heads, that are quite peculiar. In their
hands are long spears with square shafts. Now, I see
another body at a distance that come and join them.
Each company has a banner; they put them together
and cross them.
18*
150 THE SOUL OP THINGfiU
" I can Reo ontlinos of towers and buildings. One
building of stono I notice in particular ; there is a
door at tlie side of it. It does not look like a house ;
it is heavy. There are trees off in one direction, and
a pretty country.
"I am now looking through an open door into a
room, but cannot see far. There is a deep window,
with a shade of some kind before it."
What an interesting picture of the primitive Chris-
tians tliis fragment of marble contains ! What ques-
tions psychometry may be expected to answer in the
future, about which theologians have been wrangling
for centuries I
EXPERIMENT ZXHL
Small fragment of a flower in relief on the border
of a garment, on a limestone slab, from Nineveh.
" I see a square block of stone, and another on it
placed there by artificial means. The edges are hewn
off, and the stone has been cut for some special pur-
pose, — prepared for something ornamental.
"A great deal passes before me like lightning. I
see several slabs lying in rows, but I cannot see them
distinctly. I see another large slab, but I cannot see
any of them connected with any particular structure.
" Two or three times I have had a glimpse of a pil-
lar on those limestone slabs that I first saw. Now I
see a slender pillar ; on one side are open places, like
side-doors, but I cannot describe them properly. Past
and present are greatly mixed in this specimen. I see
fences and houses of the present, though a moment
ago I seemed ages back.
*^ I am in a building that seems to have been used
PORCELAIN TOWER, CftlXA. 151
as a temple. It is deserted, part of it broken down
and gone ; and it seems like the ruins of some temple
or place of worship. Trees seem to have grown all
around, and even in it, they come up so before me.
There seems to have been a great deal of labor ex-
pended upon the building. At one door there is an
opening, with two short pillars that seem to have been
erected as ornaments to the entrance. There is a kind
of railing that comes around to the door. It is a very-
large building, with apartments divided off by pillars
and arches, where curtains probably hung."
These descriptions are of course very fragmentary.
We could have done much better if we could have
had more favorable conditions. Many of these exper-
iments were made at hotels, in the eveniog, after my
lectures were over, and we were both much fatigued
by the labors of the day. I present them merely as
evidences of what may be accomplished by persons
of means and leisure, and who have cultivated these
wonderful powers from their youth. The imagination
cannot overleap the eventual realization.
EXPERIMENT LXIV.
A small piece of the porcelain tower of Chiua.
" I am in a room. A little way from here there is a
mound or elevation, very regular in shape, with a tree
in the centre. I am in the room again. There is
something peculiar in its style. It is massive, with
dark-colored walls, adorned with carved work, that I
cannot see very distinctly. It seems to be divided by
curtains, and in connection with them there is beauti-
ful carved and ornamental work. The room has raised
152 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
scats, or narrow platforms, the whole length and on
both sides. It seems to me to be in a different cli-
mate from this; it must be farther south, for it is
warmer, and the vegetation is more luxuriant.
" I get the idea of a place used as a temple — a gor-
geous, magnificent place. I fed that influence about
it, in-espective of anything I have seen as yet. I go
back into the room ; it is difficult to keep out. The
sides are more clearly visible to me now; they are
gorgeously festooned with gilt leaves and flowers ar-
ranged in clusters, with vines running from one to the
other. What wealth it must have required to make
such a temple as this I
"I obtain the influence of a people whose politics
and religion are united; both seem blended in this
room. What crowds of people I too many for me to
individualize any of them. Now I see two or three
more definitely. Their head covering strikes my at-
tention; it is neither a hat nor a cap; I cannot describe
it. It is crimson, I believe, and edged with gold leaf.
I see other persons with caps on.
" I see a place now where there are many dishes of
silver and gold on a table. How rich this place isl
This is near the place where the religious ceremonies
are performed by priests or leaders. There is a
small room or recess where they go in ; it is adorned
with most elaborate carved work, and looks, altogether,
much like a Catholic place of worship. I see some
shining object extend from the ceiling to the floor.
Broad steps lead to a place higher than my head;
behind that is a platform, and behind that is another
room with figures in relief upon the wall. Every lit-
PORCELAIN TOWER, CHINA. 153
tie while 1 see fire. On that platform I see two large
uiDS. I see people again with something in their
hands like flags. There is a pole eighteen or twenty
feet high, with a turtle on the top, made of some kind
of metal.
" I am outside now, where there is a grove. I can
see the whole building ; it goes up, then there is an
open place with pillars, and a bell-shaped roof extend-
ing over it; and so it goes up several stories, one
above another, to a spire."
At the time this examination was made I knew little
more about the Porcelain Tower than the fact that a
tower called by that name existed somewhere in China.
But on reading an account of it in the Iconographio
Encyclopedia, I found many of the previous statements
remarkably verified.
The walls appeared massive, and well they might ;
for they are "twelve feet in thickness below, gradually
reduced to eight feet at the top." It seemed to bo
" used as a temple," and it is a part of the Temple of
Gratitude, near the City of Pekin, and was doubtless
visited by multitudes of devotees, who left their influ-
ence, as well as their offerings, behind them.
The rooms were seen adorned with carving, gilding,
and ornamental work; and it is stated that the walls
of the room in this tower " are covered with fantastic
painting, and bas-reliefs, and gilded throughout."
All intelligent readers will perceive much in the
above psychometric description in harmony with what
we know of the Chinese and of this Tower ; and from
the accuracy of this description we may see what may
bo done when the ruins of Copan and Uxmal, of
154 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
Thobcs and Karnak, and of cities and temples yet to
be exhumed, shall be fully examined and their story
faithfully translated and recorded.
EXPERIMENT LXF.
Old coin, probably Grecian. Specimen unseen by
the psychometer, though its shape might possibly have
given some idea of its character.
" I seem to be looking through a stereoscope. Fig-
ures look smaller than their real size. There are two
houses that look like boxes or play-houses. There is
one with a spire to it that is quite small also. I do
not understand this appearance. The one with a spire
looks larger now. One house has a round roof. It
seems to be solid below and tent-like above, the roof
made apparently of some soft material. I am up
where I see the tops of things.
" I am in a room now that seems strange. There is
a box in it, having a trough proceeding from one cor-
ner, and on the other side a double wheel. I see
another singular object, a small trough, with a wheel
at one end, as if made to go by a current of water.
The trough is inclined. Here is something hanging
against the wall that has round figures stamped all
over it. Some larger than this." (The coin was a
copper one, about half an inch in diameter.) " This is
one of the smaller ones. There is a plate of metal
lying down that has the coins raised above its surface.
There are four or five sheets of metal standing near
each other ; they seem to have been hammered rather
than rolled. They lean against a frame on the side of
the room.
HORNSTONE, MOUNT OP OLIVES. 155
"There is a large roundish vessel made of metal,
with bands or ridges around it. It seems to be for
melting metal. It stands in a metallic scalloped basin.
There are holes all around the vessel, and grooves, that
correspond with these, in the vessel in which it is set.
" I see a solid body, with a bar attached to the cen-
tre, that covers three impressions at one time. Just
then I had a glimpse of some person."
After the examination was over, she remarked that
these impressions were not obtained from the surface
of the coin, but from its heart.
There is one great diflSculty in these archaeological
investigations ; and that is, in describing what is pre-
sented to the vision. Much is presented that differs
so widely from what the pyschometer is familiar with,
that language is needed by which to describe the ob-
jects seen to those who cannot behold them. Special
education of psychometers for particular branches of
investigation will, in time, remedy this defect.
EXPERIMENT LXVI,
Small piece of hornstone from the Mount of Olives,
near Jerusalem. It was taken out of a box containing
more than twenty specimens from various localities;
and during the early part of the examination I did not
know what the specimen was, nor did Mrs. Denton
know till the close of the experiment.
" I see what looks Uke a projection of a partly de-
molished breastwork. Near it is a rather tall and
very solid-looking building, which seems to be square.
From it a wall extends a long way, with buildings here
and there for persons to go into; they do not look
156 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
large, but are very strong. Some of them are round,
and 1 think they were built for strongholds in connec-
tion with the wall.
" I seem to be north-west of some large city. I am
above it, a little to one side of the central portion, and
I can look down upon the tops of buildings which are
below me. There are some very jfine buildings. I
notice one particularly, that I judge to be a temple or
some public building, which is near me. It has a
round tower, but that is below me. The city seems
in great commotion, a tide of people flowing through
it. Its size is great ; for the influence as it comes up
to me is very extensive.
" The whole influence that I receive from this is
entirely difierent from that of this country. The cU-
mate is warmer. I can feel the influence of the sea,
but it is at some distance ; yet not so far but I can feel
its soft breath. I consider the climate and country
superior to ours, but the people are inferior.
" I see a tent-shaped building of three stories, with
pillars and spaces between, filled with lattice-work all
round ; each story diminishes in size to the top. The
building is largo and round, but what it is used for I
cannot tell.
" I see the entrance of a place that looks like a cut
vert, large enough for a person to walk into. It appears
to go underground for a considerable distance, but is
carried on the surface so far that it can be seen a long
way off.
" I feel the influence of a stream of water, though I
do not see it ; it seems somewhat large, and runs I
think to the south, with a pure stream over a clean
bed.
MOUNT OF OLIVES. 157
** I saw a grand ruin, but it vanished in an instant.
Large blocks hung as if ready to fall. The very ruin
Was magnificent.
" I see now a naked-looking mountain, that seems
connected with a range ; there are green hills, too, on
which are scattering trees.
" I am in a building that seems like a city under
cover. In one place is a high dome. In a room I see
e, long table, and upon it what seems to be a crown
xnade of gold, and decked with precious stones ; and
near it is a silver bowl. This room is beautifully or-
namented with carved figures of various kinds.
" The people live a good deal out of doors, for I see
some kind of tables and seats outside of the houses,
such as we nowhere see in this country. These people
are not as well developed intellectually as we, though
they are as well developed religiously, and are very
ceremonious. The whole country seems permeated
with the sentiment of worship. I have such a feeling
as is described by the .poet in the lines, —
* The cedars of Lebanon bow at his feet,
And the air is perfumed with his breath.'
1 should think the Bible might have been written here.
What an excellent place for a ceremonious religion !
I cannot tell how I get this, but it breathes over me ;
the atmosphere of the place seems full of this feeling.
It produces a joyous, worshipful sentiment, about
which there is nothing sad or gloomy. It recognizes
joy in everything. One of the Psalms seems to give
this feeling : * The 'mountains skipped like rams, and
the little hills like lambs.'
14-
158 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
" Xow, I liave a sense of destruction and desolation,
that contrasts most strangely with the other. It seems
like anotlier ago and another place, the feeling is so
different." (I said, " Go as far back in time as you can
within the human period.")
" I obtain the influence of a people whose principal
business seems to be looking after their flocks that feed
on the hills. They seem to have no idea beyond the
present life. The country is wild, and the people live
in groups of relatives ; this must be the patriarchal
time. They are not energetic, but fully occupied
with their employments.
" My opinion is that this is from the neighborhood
of some city on the Asiatic continent, between the
twentieth and fortieth parallels of N. latitude."
Jerusalem, the capital of Palestine, is about thirty-
three miles from the Mediterranean, and half that dis-
tance from the Dead Sea. The Mount of Olives, on
which the specimen of homstone was found, is a moun-
tain or ridge lying to the east of Jerusalem, from
which it is separated by the valley of Jehoshaphat.
The elevation of the central peak of the Mount of
Olives is stated by Schubert at 2,556 Paris feet, or 416
Paris feet above the valley of Jehoshaphat ; and hence
it appears to be 175 Paris feet above the highest part
of Mount Zion.
The summit of the Mount of Olives is about half a
mile east from the city, which it completely overlooks,
every considerable edifice and almost every house
being visible. Hence the feeling that she was " above
the city," and could "look down upon the tops of the
buildings."
HORNSTONE, MOUNT OP OLIVES. 159
The wall surrounding the city, and the towers upon
the wall, seem to have been the first objects presented,
and very naturally so. For many centuries they must
have been one of the most striking features on looking
at the city fi-om the Mount of Olives. The tall, square,
and very solid-looking building was, probably, the
tower of Hippicus, which, Josephus says, was a quad-
rangular structure, twenty-five cubits, or about forty
feet, on each side, and built up entirely solid to the
height of thirty cubits. The altitude of the whole
tower was eighty cubits, or about 128 feet. At the
present time it is styled the tower of David, and is
near the centre of the west side of the city. This
tower, and the towers of Phasaelus and Mariamne, were
left standing by Titus when Jerusalem was taken and
destroyed by the Romans. The buildings that she
saw upon the walls were doubtless towers or turrets,
of which Josephus says there were on the outer wall
ninety, on the middle wall forty, and on the inner
wall sixty ; though the number is very much smaller
now.*
The tent-shaped building, and the building that
seemed like a city under cover, refer, I think, to the
Armenian Convent, which is one of the largest, if not
the largest establishment in the city. It occupies
several acres, and is capable of entertaining 8,000
pilgrims.
Those acquainted with the situation of the Mount of
Olives will see that a mistake was made with regard to
its situation, which is stated to be north-west of the
city, instead of north-east. What part of the Mount of
* Kitto'B Biblical Cyclopedia, articles Mount of Olives and Jerusalem.
160 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
Olives the specimen was brought from, I have been
unable to learn.
How strange that a flint pebble, on a hill outside of
the city, could become imbued with the worshipful
spirit of the people who lived in it ! How much more
must houses and churches be imbued with the spirit of
the people who live and worship in -them.
EXPERJMEXT LXVIL
Piece of red damask that hung over the speaker's
chair in the House of Representatives, Washington,
when that city was taken by the British in 1814. It
was taken to England, and then a piece of it brought
back to the United Sates.
Specimen seen, but nothing known of its history.
" I sec a long hall. I seem to be at one end of it.
Straight before me is an opening like an aisle ; it is
wider, however, than I should suppose an aisle to be.
It seems to be an open space where I am, and, I think,
semicircular. I feel higher up than the objects around
me. I see a short curtain above a raised place or plat-
form, and, if such a thing would be allowed, I could
fancy this had been cut from that curtain.
" There is activity of some kind here ; something is
being done. There seems to be more than one ope-
rating in some way. Persons move in and out, but I
cannot yet understand what their business is. They
become visible, and then seem to go behind an open
place on the platform at the end where I am.
" There is a table, or something like it, and persons
come to it and do something and then retire. There
is a curtained recess at each end of the platform.
HALL OP REPRESENTATIVES, WASHINGTON. 161
The persons officiating on the platform seem to have
something to do distinct from the others.
" The hall is large, and all about is on a large scale.
There is an air of general magnificence about it. The
influence of this place is very different from what I
perceive in churches ; there is not that solemnity
about it, but an air of cheerfulness, and, at times, even
of merriment.
" Something is placed in front of me that shuts out
my sight of the hall. It has representations on it of
figures with different colors ; it seems like a painting
on canvas.
" One person comes from the right-hand side to the
table, raises up what looks like a spread, and puts
something under it. I see a door open."
SECOND EXAMINATION.
A second examination was made about a week after
the first, nothing more being known by the psychom-
eter regarding the specimen than the previous exam-
ination had developed.
" I think I know what this place is now ; I see ob-
jects more clearly than before. It is a council cham-
ber or hall. The person who comes out lays a paper
on the table ; he lifts up something and puts it under.
These seem like people that I am acquainted with. It
seems almost or quite like our own times. There is a
great deal of earnestness of feeling here.
" I see seats with something up before' them in front
of each person ; what they can be for I cannot imag-
ine. I now see they are for papers and writing. I
have seen pictures of places like this.
14*
162 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
** They have something up for discussion now that
is very amusing ; awhile ago they were quite grave.
They seem as changeable as an April sky. There are
some who profess to feel very much, but I can see
their earnestness is mere sham. They talk very glibly,
but it is mere talk. It is sickening to contemplate
them.
"There seems to be a gallery here; and those in
the gallery take no active part in what goes on below ;
but they listen with attention, and some are amused,
while others look on with admiration.
" Now there is a great concourse of people outside.
It must be some political gathering, celebration, or
something of that kind. I see several marshals.
There is a platform, and speakers on it, and a large
flag at one side of it ; there are red and white stripes
on it, I see. I see some long, broad steps, but cannot
tell where they are." (What place do you think it
is ?) " I think it is the capitol of some state, or else
of the nation."
Little thought the members of that house that the
damask hanging over the speaker's chair was such an
attentive observer of their doings ; that it was report-
ing their proceedings with greater accuracy than the
clerk, and looking into their hearts like an all-seeing
eye. Little supposed that smirking hypocrite that,
though he was deceiving his fellows, and receiving
the plaudits of the crowd for his mercenary eloquence,
the curtain waving before him was reading his inmost
soul, and preparing to transmit to the future a faithful
statement of his true condition. What a cloud of wit-
nesses surround us on every side at all times I There
MELROSE ABBEY. 163
is no darkness so dense but their keen eyes can pierce ;
there is no sound so feeble but they catch and hold
it forevey. No bribes can suborn, no eloquence can
move them from their purpose ; no lawyer can break
them down. The brick can reveal the character of
the occupants of the house, and tell tales that may
make the haughty cower and tremble.' Bury it in the
ocean, and it still carries along, and will keep for ages,
what has been committed to its trust. Break it to
pieces, and you have but multiplied it ; for every frag-
ment, equally with the whole, can tell the tale.
EXPERIMENT LXVni.
Pieee of Sandstone from the walls of Melrose Abbey,
Scotland. Specimen unseen, and nothing known re-
garding it.
"I stand within a very large building, in which
there are several persons. On one side a gentleman
is just going through an arched doorway ; he seems a
long way off, the building is so large. I see a semi-
circular place, but cannot imagine what it is for. This
building is on a magnificent scale, very lofty and spa-
cious. The windows are deep. (I obtain glimpse
after glimpse, which vanish in -an instant.) In another
part of the building is a large aisle, and at the end of
it a very high place, richly ornamented, which is sep-
arated from the rest of the aisle by a curtain. It
seems intended for persons to go upon. Architecture
and sculpture have lavished their resources upon it.
There is some stone about it, but whether it is all
stone or not I cannot tell. How massive it is, and
how elaborately worked ! no place is plain. There is
164 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
some design or other wherever it is possible. The
very railings are carved, and everything is beautifully
figured.
" I see what looks like the comer of a building on
the outside, with the sun shining upon it ; it looks as
natural as if here before me.
"Xow I see Gothic windows; one that looks like
three jinited together. There seem to be hills near
here.
" I can only see detached parts of this building ; it
is impossible for me to get the connected whole."
SECOND EXAMINATIOK.
A second examination was made nearly three
months afterward. There was nothing known regard-
ing the specimen, nor was Mrs. Denton aware that she
had ever examined it before.
" I am inside of a building, and can see a comer of
it on the outside. It is of stone, and singularly notched
and uneven. I see three arches side by side; but this
seems to be a night scene, and things are very indis-
tinct. I see in this way two domes, and a high pillar
standing by itself on a pedestal that appears to consist
of slabs, the broadest at.the base.
" Inside of the building I see a great heap of rub-
bish, as if it had been cleared from one place and
deposited in another. Where it has been cleared away
I see what looks like the support to a floor. The build-
ing seems filled up to a great extent with rubbish. It
must be a ruin. I see objects occasionally, and when
[ look again they are gone.
"I am in a place now where the beams overhead
MELROSE ABBEY. 165
are placed so as to make figures. I think this is a
place of worship. (I can feel much better than see.)
I have a sense of enthusiasm in connection with the
worshippers that reminds me of the early Christian
times. These people are ignorant and bigoted, but
very zealous. There seems to be a contention going
on between them and others. When they meet here
their zeal is enkindled and their spirits renewed, so
that they feel strong to resist the opposition they meet
with, which is greater than religious people meet with
at present, in our country at least. The religious
strife between them and some other party is great.
Here they feel at home to speak and plan. They
have confidence in each other.
" I seem to be present at one of their conferences.
One says, in substance, ' We must wage this warfare
to the bitter end ; ' another, ' We must meet them on
their own ground.' One quite sedate old man says,
' 1 am prepared for anything in this matter.' There is
another party, less bitter. in their opposition, who are
inclined to* take things more moderately. I cannot
learn what the subject is they refer to."
From the Parliamentary Gazetteer, of Scotland, we
learn that Melrose Abbey, at the foot of the Eildon
Hills, in Scotland, and the most beautiful of all the ec-
clesiastical edifices ever reared in that country, was
founded by David I. in 1136. It was destroyed by fire,
and rebuilt and decorated during the two centuries
extending from 1326 to the Reformation. " The vast
magnificence of the abbey, with its innumerable ad-
juncts and sculptured adornings, seems to have been
the result of a constant, untiring and ambitious eflfort
166 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
of the resident monks, powerful in their skill, their
numbers, their leisure, and their enthusiasm."
" At the junction of the south and west members of
the cross, a hexagon tower rises, terminating in a pin-
nacle roofed with stone, highly ornamented ; from
thence the aisle is extended so as to receive three
largo windows, whoso arches are pointed, each di-
vided by three upright bars or mullions, the tracery
various and hglit."
What a beautiful description of this structure we
have in Scott's " Lay of the Last Minstrel : " —
" The moon on the east oriel shone,
Through slender shafts of shapely stone,
By foliaged tracery combined ;
Thou wouldst have thought some fairy hand
'Twixt poplars straight the osier wand
In many a freakish knot had twined,
Then framed a spell when the work was done,
And changed the willow wreath to stone."
The description given by Mr. Hutchinson of the in-
terior of the building, which is quoted by the Parlia-
mentary Gazetteer, agrees very well with that given
by Mrs. Denton. He says, " The floor is nothing but
the damp earth ; nastiness and irregularity possess the
whole scene."
Are there any facts connected with the history of
Melrose Abbey that would account for the strife that
was felt in connection with its occupants? I think
there are, for we learn from the same authority that
"In 1269, John, of Edenham, the abbot, and many of
his conventual brethren, for the crime of violating the
peace of Wedale, attacking some houses of the bishop
ROCK OP GIBRALTAR. 167
of St. Andrews, and slaying one ecclesiastic and
wounding many others, were excommunicated by a
provincial council that sat in Perth; and as Melrose
stood near the hostile border, it was usually involved
in the rancorous events of border feud and interna-
tional war. In 1285 the Yorkshire barons, who had
confederated against King John, swore fealty to Alex-
ander II. in Melrose chapter house.
" In 1322, at the burning and desolating of the ab-
bey by Edward II., William de Peebles, the abbot, and
several of the monks were slain. During the reigns of
Henry VIII., Edward VI,, and Elizabeth, it suffered
collisions and dilapidations, chiefly from the English."
So that what was seen and felt may be readily ex-
plained by what must have taken place in the history
of this remarkable structure and its possessors, during
these troublesome times.
EXPERIMENT LXIX,
Piece of stalagmitic limestone from the Rock of Gib-
raltar.
Specimen unseen, and nothing known regarding it.
It was not known that I possessed any specimen from
the locality.
" I see down, down ; three apartments, one below
another, but not all in a direct line. In the second I
see three men, who seem to be considering the place
and talking of its history, which they regard as worthy
of note in some way. I think it has been a place of
great interest. What interest it possesses now, seems
more in consequence of what it has been than of what
it is."
168 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
SECOND BXAMTSrATlON,
Conditions as before.
" I am looking from a small opening out upon the
landscape, which has quite a stereoscopic appearance ;
there are hills, and water beyond. I see a very high
hill, with a large notch in the face of it, about half-way
up ; it is very wild, and yet very beautiful. This
country is both hilly and rocky. I see cliffs every-
where. I am surprised that any one should live here,
it is so rocky, uneven, and naked.
" I am now at the foot of a great hill of rock. What
a strange-looking place I It is very rugged in places,
and in others smooth. A steep, rough road leads up
the hill on one side. I cannot conceive how people
get down without sUding.
"I feel the influence of a body of water, which
seems to come in here and form a kind of bay, and
then at a distance communicates with a larger body of
water.
"On the top of the rock is a round, castellated
structure, which is, I think, on the highest point. It
is too extensive a building for a light-house. It has a
somewhat ancient look."
THIRD EXAMINATION.
" This place sustains a relation in some way to other
distant places, but what that relation is I cannot tell.
I cannot see any physical connection, yet I sense influ-
ences passing from here, and coming from some
distant place to this. I see what looks like a long,
winding road, that extends to a large town ; it is
crowded with people.
BOCK OF GIBBALTAB. 169
" I see the same castellated structure that I saw be-
fore. This is a picturesque country. I seem to feel
the influence of the sea, though I do not know the dis-
tance to it. On one side it seems to come very near.
There is a large town near here ; indeed, it surrounds
me, I think ; but more of it on one side of me than on
the other. There are winding ways all round, that
give it quite a romantic appearance.
" There is something remarkable about the people
of this country ; they are intellectually strong, and
yet they cling tenaciously to the old. There is great
independence and daring, yet great veneration for an-
cient forms. They possess a warlike spirit. There
does not seem to be any war in the country now, but
they have the disposition to resist encroachment by
the sword, if need be. There is nothing cringing
about them ; what they do is done because they will,
and not because they must. I have seen in the Eng-
lish character something like it.
" I can partly see and partly feel chains of moun-
tains, back in the country ; they are not long, but
there seem to be several of them. I feel the influence
of the sea extending on both sides almost round the
country. It may go all round, but I do not see it.
" I obtain the influence of very heavy structures. I
thought at first that they were walls, but they are not.
I think they are massive structures of some kind; they
might be called fortifications; they are intended to
protect the place from the attacks of enemies. They
extend for a considerable distance. I seem to be more
connected with these fortifications tfian I am with the
city. It seems as if the approach of the enemy was
16
170 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
by water ; I can hear the report of cannon booming
over it. The people are so resolute, determined, and
strong that a powerful force would be necessary to
overcome them ; I should not like to be one of the at-
tacking party.
" I am in a building now in which there are many
apartments. (I seem to be in the past.) In one of
them many persons of high rank are assembled, and on
a large raised place sits a lady, who, from her appear-
ance, must be a queen. Those persons are present-
ing something for her consideration; it is evidently
something important. They are all richly dressed, and
she is gorgeously arrayed. I do not know that this is
the same place as before, but it seems connected with
it in some way. Now, all have vanished.
" There has been much suffering in this vicinity, es-
pecially mental suffering ; the people have been cursed
by tyrants.
"This is not Switzerland, though it is rough and
mountainous. It does not seem far enough south for
Italy ; it is not far enough inland for Germany ; it is
too mountainous for England, and it is not an island.
It seems like Scotland in many respects, but I cannot
really tell what country it is. It seems longer than
wide, though there is a part stretching to the east and
southeast that I cannot see. It is in Europe some-
where."
On turning to the map of the world, after some con-
sideration, she covered, with the head of a pin, the
spot where Gibraltar was marked. " That," said she,
" seems to be about the place where I was."
The following description, taken principally from
ROCK OF GIBRALTAR. 171
the Encyclopedia Britannica, will show the accuracy of
many of the previous statements. Gibraltar, a British
town and fortress, in the most southerly province of
Spain, stands on the extremity of a small peninsula,
washed on the east side by the Mediterranean, and
west by the Bay of Gibraltar. The top of Europa
Point, the southern extremity of the rock, is sur-
mounted by a fine light-house.
This may have been the tower seen, or O'Hara's
Tower, which was built upon a portion of the rock
1480 feet above the level of the sea. Originally it
was intended for a signal station and light-house, but
being struck by lightning, is now a ruin. On the
western side of the rock the hill slopes gradually to
the sea. On this slope stands the town of Gibraltar,
containing about 15,000 inhabitants. The town is con-
nected with the isthmus by a narrow causeway, in the
defence of which science has exhausted its resources.
The most remarkable of the defences of Gibraltar are
the galleries, excavations cut out of solid rock, with
great diflSculty and immense expense ; they are two or
three miles long, and broad enough to allow carriages
to pass.
Gibraltar has been in the possession of the Sara-
cens, Spaniards, and English ; being taken and retaken
many times. During the years 1779-1783 it was be-
sieged by the combined land and sea forces of France
and Spain. On the side of the sea they brought to
bear against it forty-four sail of the line, and a count-
less fleet of gun and mortar boats, and numerous floats
ing batteries, but in vain ; though the besieged suf-
fered for years the horrors of disease and famine.
172 THE SOUL OF THINOS.
It is unnecessary for me to point out all the points
of agreement between what was seen, and what is
known of Gibraltar and its history. Those who wish
to examine tliis subject thoroughly, would do well to
read and judge for themselves. Many of the state-
ments made were entirely new to me, and it was only
after considerable research that I was able to verify
some of them.
I know of no time in the past when a connection ex-
isted between Gibraltar and the court of Spain, likely
to lead to the vision recorded of a queen and persons
of high rank. I give it, because it came up spontane-
ously, and future research may shed light upon this
also.
EXPERIMENT LXX.
A square of mosaic from the baths of Caracalla, near
Rome. Specimen unseen and unknown.
"I am in a very large building. Directly in front
of me is a large circular structure, built as if there
were a fountain in there, or a bath for water. It
is quite high and round. To come in here I went up
some steps on the other side, and down some steps on
this. The two rooms are separated by what looks
like a half partition wall. The room with the vat in
it- is, I think, a little lower than the other.
" Now that I am lower and nearer to it, I see the
structure which contains the water is either square or
nearly so ; and has a circular basin in the centre, with
a beautifully ornamented rim. The base of the square
structure has two broad steps passing all round ; and
on one comer of the base I see an immense pitcher,
which rises higher than the top of the basin. On an-
BATHS OF CARACALLA. 173
other comer is a large urn, standing on a massive
base. The handles are richly ornamented. On an-
other comer is the figure of a beautiful naked boy.
It looks like a Cupid. All these figures seem to be
chiselled out of stone, and rise to about an equal
height. On the rim of the basin is a bird that looks as
if stooping to drink ; and the whole rim is ornamented,
except where there are steps that rise from the base
up to it, apparently for persons to walk up and go into
the water. It must be a bath. What skilful artists
they must have been to cut stone in this manner I
" In one part of the room I see a large pillar richly
ornamented. Above the base the pedestal has figures
upon it in relief; the shaft is fluted, and the capital
is richly adorned. An arch passes over from it to a
similar pillar.
" I see something now that is difiScult to describe.
It is about three feet long, two feet wide, and three
feet high. It stands upon a block about a foot thick,
and is rounded the whole length, bulging out in the
middle. It is hollow, and has over the top a dish with
a rim about three inches wide. It is made of stone,
and looks quite symmetrical.
" The influence of this room is that of great gayety
and voluptuousness. This influence is very strong,
and I feel as if it must have been frequented by men
and women, who, at certain times, laying aside all re-
straint, abandoned themselves to the intoxication of
pleasure and sensual enjoyment.
" I go outside of the building, and see a very large
and high pillar, or tower, with something like bands
around it. It is some distance off. The streets seem
16*
174 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
narrow and the buildings high ; but I do not see them
clearly.
" I am in the room again, and see the upper part of
one comer, which is richly ornamented. On the sides
of the wall are varying appearances, but I cannot dis-
tinguish them. I see also a stand, apparently made of
stone, ornamented also ; there are lamps upon it."
This must have been, I think, one of the private
bath-rooms, of which there were several, in the mag-
nificent Thermae of Caracalla.
Sixteen hundred years have passed, probably, since
these pictures were impressed on the mosaics of the
bath-room ; sixteen hundred years since the influences
of the voluptuous Romans that frequented it were com-
municated to them, yet how distinctly they remain, and
probably would for as many thousands or millions of
years ; and thus are we recording our histories, im-
pressing our mental and moral conditions on our sur-
roundings, to be read by the coming ages.
EXPERIMENT LXXL «
Out of nearly two hundred specimens of various
kinds, from different parts of the world, wrapped up in
paper, Mrs. Denton took one, no one knowing which it
was. She said: —
" I seem to oscillate between the city and a coun-
try which is rough and rocky. The buildings in the
city are high, and the streets being narrow, they look
dark. There is a good deal of grandeur about it.
The people seem to be busy, and move about as if they
had great interest in what is going on. It is not
merely an interest in physical matters, either. There
MODERN MOSAIC FROM ROME. 175
seem to be two or three influences in this, somewhat
different from our own time.
" Now, I seem to be in a long room of a large build-
ing. At one end the ceiling comes down lower, and is
supported by pillars or columns, some of which have
broad capitals that are ornamented with deeply-cut
figures.
" I see a large temple. I am standing, I think, in
front of it.* The entrance is at some distance, under a
grand archway ; there are stone steps in front going
up for some distance. This end of the building seems
much higher than- the other. After passing through
the door, I see a part of a very rich building. It seems
to be a place of a great deal of ceremony. I feel the
influence of persons about, but they are not as much
here as in other parts. The impression I receive from
this place comes nearer to my idea of a Jewish syna-
gogue than any other building. I feel the influence
of priests with long robes on. What a great deal of
ceremony there is ; but I do not obtain a very strong
sense of devotion. They seem to have lost the true
devotion in the form of it.
" On one side is a place that, I judge, is for the
priests. AU the work about it seems plain, but grand.
There are no little omainents; but all is substantial.
A great effect seems to be produced here by different
colors ; but it does not seem like paint. I cannot tell
what it is. It seems to be inherent in the material
itself. In one place I see gold color; seems pure
enough to be gold itself. There are either precious
stones, or something resembling them. If artificial,
there is a gre^t deal of purity about them.
176 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
" I see three places that seem made for persons to
stand in. They are near each other, yet separated.
Persons seem to stand in them and talk to some one
on the other side. I believe this is a Catholic place of
worship, after all. I feel that influence now. Yes,
that is it. There is a place connected with this that is
very little ornamented, and seems gloomy. It is very
massive and prison-like. I see a great many people
outside. From this I obtain an idea of what may be
done in architecture with suflScient means."
On examining the paper in which the specimen had
been wrapped, I found it marked "Modem Mosaic,
Rome." From what part of the Eternal City it came,
1 am sorry to say, I do not know.
EXFERJKENT LXZIL
Mar)3le from temple of Serapis. Specimen unseen
and unknown.
" I see the ruins of a building which must have been
very extensive, or there was more than one. It was a
magnificent structure. I can feel the influence of per-
sons who have visited it. There is a feeling of rever-
ence associated with it, which seems to have been felt
by the visitors. There are long, large pillars pros-
trated, and what look to me like beams. I see stone-
work about a foot high enclosing a paved space that
seems to have been a yard at the back of one part of
the building. It forms an arc of a circle. There is a
great pillar standing; the only one that I can see
erect. I obtain the shadowy form of the original
building ; there are many parts to it. The country
seems low. I see water at a distance ; I think it must
TEMPLE OF SERAPIS. 177
bo a sea of some kind; it hardly seems the ocean,
for I feel the influence of land on the other side of it,
though it is broad. I think there is a river near here
too.
" Now I see ruins again. There seem to be huts
here, or low, poor buildings ; they look very mean by
the side of this. I see animals that seem very inti-
mate with the people.. (This view seems recent.)
The people are singular, and considerably removed
from us. They seem quite out of place here. If they
are of the same race as the builders of this structure,
they have sadly degenerated.
"The surface here seems changeable; at one time
level, and then hilly and uneven. Wandering tribes
of half-civilized people have passed over here occa-
sionally. The ruins look as if they were buried part
of the time ; being covered and uncovered alter-
nately."
The ruins of this celebrated temple are near Puz-
zuoli, in Italy, on a low terrace near the Mediterra-
nean Sea. It has been much visited, and has excited
great geological interest from the fact, that three of its
pillars now standing, only one of which was seen, bear
evidence to the sinking and uprising of the coast on
which they stand. It was below the level of the sea,
then elevated ; and, as Lyell says, " Showers of vol-
canic ashes, and materials washed in during storms,
covered up the pillars to the height, in some places, of
thirty.five feet above the pavement." It sank again
below the level of the sea, and was again elevated ;
but is said to be sinking now. Alaric and his Goths
Backed Puzzuoli in 456, and Genseric in 545. These
178 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
may be what are referred to as the " wandering tribes
of half-civilized people," that passed over there.
EXPERIMENT LXXm.
A fragment of fresco painting from "Cicero's House,"
Pompeii. Examined under the same conditions as in
the last experiment.
" I obtain a mixture of objects. I see a deep win-
dow in a thick partition wall, but there is no glass in
it. I notice small statues and colored images of dei-
ties upon the walls, that are very numerous and varied.
On a level with that window are pilasters with square
capitals. (The place I am in seems to be low.) On
one side of the apartment in which I am, is a balus-
trade, which divides off a portion of it ; that may be
for a couch or bed. Through an arched opening I see
the shadowy fonn of a man, and now another one with
something peculiar on his head. Both sit on something
quite high, compared with the height of the place.
They sit with their feet up in some way. The first I
saw is beckoning to some one. The men's dresses are
full; not tight, as men's are now. I see a head occa-
sionally that does not seem real. (There are hills at
one side of this place.) What I see is more elaborate
than I can describe ; there is too much for me to indi-
vidualize.
" Now I am in a darker room, that is very beautifully
adorned. In the centre of it is a structure built up and
ornamented ; there are steps to it. I obtain the influ-
ence of a place where they worshipped idols. The
walls seem full of that influence.
" T have passed to a large room where there are pil-
FBESCO PAINTING, POMPEII. 179
lars; the work about them seems heavy. The walls
are all decorated with those figures; they are well
done for their style, which I do not much admire.
These people care much more about art than wor-
ship.
"I see a great concourse of people; but they are
shadowy. They seem to be in columns. There is a
chariot with one man in the centre of a multitude.
They go into a large hall, and then out again. They
preserve a regular order and are united to each other
in some way. They seem to be drawing something.
Some carry lances in their hands, and some have sharp-
pointed head-pieces. I think they must be a fighting
people ; but there is a great love of merriment in their
nature. It shows itself in these processions. In an
engagement with the enemy, even, I should expect
them to manifest it to some extent. There is consider-
able solidity about them too. They are fond of music.
They think a great deal of woman, but do not treat
her as an equal. Among the masses the women seem
coarse. They are out of doors a good deal, and doing
what we should consider man's business. This seems
to be a war time, and the women seem to feel a great
deal of interest in it, and would do the meanest kind
of services to assist the men in carrying on the war.
They seem to feel that there is much at stake, and
they must help. I think they are preparing for battle,
and the men I saw must have been soldiers.
"The street from here goes straight for some dis-
tance, and then becomes very crooked ; farther on it
seems to have been made for the convenience of the
scattered houses, and goes from one to the other."
180 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
EXPERIMENT LXXIV.
I was disappointed in the previous examination;
twice before I had tried specimens from Pompeii, but
without anything being said of the terrible catastrophe
that overwhehned this beautiful city, which I supposed
would have been presented at once. I had in my pos-
session a portion of volcanic tufa obtained from the
excavations at Pompeii, and this I thought would be
more likely to give the particulars of its destruction.
It was not larger than a small bean, but quite large
enough to contain a psychometric volume, as will be
seen. All knowledge was carefully concealed from
the psychometer, who was also still unaware of the
locality from which the previous specimens had been
obtained.
" I see colored figures on a wall.
" Now, I see a yard, but it diflfers from all I ever saw
before. It is diamond-shaped, with the comer in front
of me. I feel the influence of something back of me ;
it seems like a building. It is a very heavy structure.
I do not see it, but I feel its influence behind and on
each side of me. This comes from some old country ;
the influence is ancient. It reminds me of IJickens'
song of the Ivy Green,
* That creepeth o*er ruins old/
One side of this building looks out on the water ; it
may be the sea, for I feel the influence of some large
body of water. The side of the building next to the
water, and I think another side, have square towers
rising up. I hear the rustling of long, heavy curtains
in the building.
VOLCANIC TUFA, POMPEII. 181
" In front of me, and to my left hand, the view is all
shut out, and I have been trying for .some time to find
out the cause. It seems as if there was a great moun-
tain, so high that I have to elevate my head to see the
top of it. The abrupt rise of the ground here seems
to have caused that yard to be made in the peculiar
shape it is. That mountain looks volcanic, and there
are smoke, and stones, and cinders, and dust, all issu-
ing from it in a dense body. They are thrown up
with such force that, for a great distance, they form
a perpendicular column, resembling somewhat a tall
chimney, and then spread out on all sides. The moun-
tain seems a hollow shell to a vast depth, the crater at
the top being merely an orifice of small dimensions
compared with the great cavern in the interior. The
mountain has two peaks, the lower one much smaller
than the other, but much sharper. I have been stand-
ing in the space between them, and I now go up a lit-
tle higher. I hear the mountain bellow. What a depth
that comes from I The influences that produce this
eruption seem different from any I ever felt before.
How strange it seems that I did not see this at first ;
for now everything seems so insignificant compared
with it. The amount vomited out is immense. It is
not like lava, but spreads out in a great black cloud,
that rolls over and over and covers the country like a
flood. I can hardly believe that what I see is correct.
It looks as if it would bury everything all around it.
What a sight I There it goes, pouring, spreading,
foaming, as it rolls down the mountain-side in great
black waves. It seems to me there is water too, run-
ning down the side of the mountain. At first all
16
182 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
seemed dry; but now the mountain belches out water
that sweeps everything before it. It is washing away
the cinders and ashes that it previously threw out. 1
see the water rush through the cleft between the
lower and upper peaks, and sweep a vast amount of
material down. What a desolation it spreads over the
land I It is not a dash and then over, but it continues
to pour out for a long time. The lower part of the
mountain seems entirely buried. It appears to extend
for several miles, and makes it seem like night, it is so
dense and dark. There are occasional flashes that
look like lightning, and others that are not as evanes-
cent, seen through that dense cloud. They seem to
be caused by irregular bodies of fiery matter shot up
from the crater. I can think of nothing but electricity
that could produce the tremendous force necessary to
eject this material to such a height that it falls miles
away." (Go below and see how it affects the country.)
" There is utter ruin to everything below. I do not
see any place at the bottom. It is a great barren
field; or rather an immense desert of cinders and
dust everywhere. (I do not feel the heat that I ex-
pected.) I cannot recognize any place. There is
nothing visible that was there before. Even the
water for a long way looks converted into land, being
covered with a deep, dark scum of this same material.
" I feel the influence of human terror that I cannot
describe ; it is awful. I see no one ; but the feeling
is almost overpowering. I feel like screaming. There
are many difierent sensations commingled ; but there
is a horror more overpowering than all. This is either
Ilerculaneum or Pompeii. There is no fancy about
VOLCANIC TUFA, POMPEII. 183
this ; it is too terribly real. Some seem to regard it
as a judgment of .the gods. There is wild agony,
prayer, and blind dread. Now I see them. Some
wring their hands ; others throw out their arms wildly.
I see no one injured ; that is, I receive no impression
to that effect.
" I feel the influence of some persons at a distance
from here. Now, I see a very large crowd of persons,
some hurrying along, and occasionally looking back ;
others seenl to feel as if they could never leave, but
are compelled to go to save their lives. The scene
is agonizing in the extreme. I see one woman dart
from the rest, and rush back, as if she had left a help-
less parent or child to perish, that she was now deter-
mined to save ; but she is compelled to give it up in
despair, for there is a fresh burst from the mountain,
and she sees there is no hope. A darkness almost as
great as night is now around them. How wild they
seem ! Many know not what to do, nor where to go.
They act as if they thought there was hardly any place
left in the wide world for them. There is a town at
no great distance, to which many of them seem to be
fleeing. I feel the influence dividing off in different
directions ; but I think many who escaped afterwards
perished. Such is the impression I receive.
"Those flashes from the mountain have a slight
* tinge of purple.
"I am in the city now, and, under the material, I can
see something of its previous condition. I am sur-
prised at their structures, now that I see them more
clearly. Their architecture is not of that massive
kind that I have supposed it to be. The place resem-
184 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
bles a modem town much more than I ever imagined.
There is a good deal of taste manifested in the ar-
rangement of the town and buildings, and much time
and means have been employed in making it beautiful
and cheerful. I see a large open space that looks like
what we call a square. In the distance I see a long
dwelling.; but with this specimen it is very diflScult to
obtain conditions as they were before the eruption."
EXPERDIKNT LXXV,
I told her that I had another specimen from the
same place, and that from it, I supposed, she could ob-
tain previous conditions readily. This specimen she
did not recognize, though it was the specimen of fresco
painting, from "Cicero's House," that she had pre-
viously examined.
" All is in a perfect whirl." (Pause.) " Now it is
more calm. There are multitudes in the streets on
business. Many of them are collected in one place.
It seems the early part of the day. Some never went
home from here, they started off in such haste. They
must have had some idea of danger for several days •
before this. There is a feeling of fear and insecurity
among them, but the great catastrophe came so sud-
denly, at last, that they never returned to their houses
again.
"Now I am farther back in time. I see a great
many persons in the streets. What most singular-
looking vehicles they have I they are straight up and
down behind, and generally very narrow, as if intend-
ed only for one person. I can see a head sticking up
here and there, above the odd-looking backs. The
VOLCANIC TUFA, POMPEII. 185
front part has a curve from the top, and looks better
than the back. There seems to have been much labor
and art bestowed upon them, but they are clumsy af-
fairs.
" In one place I see a long bar or railing along the
street, and over it there are long poles bent into arch-
es, each end being in the ground. Business seems to
be done there, for I see many going up and down.
At times, I think, coarse cloth is spread over those
arches to keep oflF rain or sunshine, or both. It seems
to be a kind of market-place, and this is where, I think,
many people were on that dreadful morning. I see a
large building that must have cost a great deal of la-
bor ; it has a circular appearance, and is very different
from any building I ever saw before. The lower part
of it is larger than the central, and has arched open-
ings all round it that seem like rooms. The second
story has openings all round farther in. People seem
to be going there.
" I am in the building now, in which there is a great
number of people. They do not seem to take any
part, but merely look on. I feel no solemnity about it,
as in a church. In it I see an oval space. The peo-
ple seem to be seated very singularly ; I cannot ac-
count for it, unless the seats rise as they extend back.
It is built in the fashion of an amphitheatre, so that
those farthest back can see over the others' heads.
There is some mirthfulness in their feelings, but I can-
not see what is going on down there.
" Now, I see persons singularly dressed ; some of
them are on animals that look like horses, but they
seem smaller than ours. Some of them are women;
16*
186 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
one of them on horseback. There is an entrance,
where they come in, beautifully decorated with flow-
ers. I see one young lady, with small features, of
straight and rather slender figure, standing on horse-
back near there ; she seems to have just ridden round.
She looks beautiful. There is nothing on her head but
a wreath of flowers. She has a light-colored dress,
which is in good taste, and rides on a light-colored
horse. The men have dresses on, that give them the
appearance of possessing wings, as they fly round,
standing on their horses. I can fancy some of them to
be fixed up to resemble birds. Some of them are
dressed in black. The lady on the pony is gay, merry
and nimble ; the men do not seem so light-hearted.
What a rider she is 1 It is fearful to see her ; I can
scarcely credit that any one could ride like that. I
sometimes think, some of the men are dressed to rep-
resent dark angels, and she a bright one. This is a
very large place, and is strongly built.
" I see a street now, in what seems twilight. There
is an archway, and under it, at one end, is a statue ; and
figures in alto relievo on the sides. I thought at first
that it was connected with the market, but I now think,
it is the entrance to that amphitheatre. On each side
of the statue, which seems to represent a woman, is
an animal couched.
" My attention is turned to the eruption again. The
first thing that I notice, is that hollow sound from the
mountain ; then a rumbling. I hear a kind of sharp,
hissing noise occasionally. All die away, and the peo-
ple seem to recover from their fright. This appears
to have been some days before the destruction."
VOLCANIC TUFA, POMPEII. 187
(Were any persons in the amphitheatre when it com-
menced?) "I think there were. Those near the en-
trance heard the screams in the streets, and then the
intelligence seems to have been slowly communicated
through the whole mass.
" I see and feel the rushing water now ; that was
water. There was a pause after the first outgush.
Every eye is turned toward the mountain. A great
many moved before the worst came. All the light
seems to be colored; it takes its color from the cloud
through which it passes. A purple twilight is thus
produced, — a rather dark twilight. What a scene for
a painter I In-doors it is absolutely dark, and the peo-
ple are rushing into the streets in every direction. I
see them carry off their valuables. They load them
into their vehicles and drive off; others take loads of
people and drive off furiously. I am now up where I
can see them nearly all over the city hurrying in ev-
ery direction. They carried off the more helpless, the
old, and the feeble and sick, while the strong ones
walked. I can see some of those with vehicles, ahead
of that crowd I saw with the other specimen ; they
are driving with all speed, apparently to return again.
I see some covered vehicles among them, but they
look strange."
Pompeii was a city in Italy, situated on the river
Samus, near the Bay of Naples, and, unfortunately for
its inhabitants, within a short distance of Vesuvius.
All the neighboring heights were crowned with villas,
and the loveliness of the whole region, favored by na-
ture and adorned by art, was unsurpassed.
In A. D. 63, an earthquake threw down part of the
188 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
city. From time to time, smaller shocks occurred, un-
til, on the 23d of August, A. d. 79, Vesuvius awoke
from the slumber of ages, and poured out rocks, ashes
and dust, that buried the city and surrounding coun-
try. The contrast between its previous and subse-
quent condition is thus given us by Martial : —
" Here verdant vines o'erspread Vesuvius* sides ;
The generous grape here poured her purple tides.
This Bacchus loved beyond his native scene ;
Here dancing satyrs joyed to trip the green.
Far more than Sparta this in Venus' grace ;
And great Alcides once renowned the place :
Now flaming embers spread dire waste around,
And gods regret that gods can thus confoimd/'
The younger Pliny, who was an eye-witness of the
eruption that destroyed the city, gives us a very inter-
esting narrative of it, many portions of which corrob-
orate the statements made during the preceding exam-
ination. He tells us that a cloud was seen to ascend
from Mount Vesuvius, of very unusual size and shape.
" I cannot give a more exact description of its figure,
than by resembling it to that of a pine tree, for it shot
up a great height in the form of a trunk, which ex-
tended itself at the top into a sort of branches ; occa-
sioned, I imagine, either by a sudden gust of air that
impelled it, the force of which decreased as it ad-
vanced upwards, or the cloud itself, being pressed
back again by its own weight, expanded in this man-
ner. It appeared sometimes bright and sometimes
dark and spotted, as it was more or less impregnated
with earth and cinders."
For many days previous to the eruption there had
DESTRUCTION OF POMPEII. 189
been earthquake shocks, but on that night they were
particularly violent. The next morning, which ush-
ered in no daylight, the cloud seemed to descend and
cover the whole ocean. Pliny and his mother fled for
their lives, and he says : —
"The ashes now began to fall upon us,
though in no great quantity. I turned my head, and
observed behind us a thick smoke, which came rolling
after us like a torrent. I proposed, while we had yet
any light, to turn out of the high road, lest we should
be pressed to death in the dark by the crowd that fol-
lowed us. We had scarce stepped out of the path,
when darkness overspread us, not like that of a cloudy
night, or when there is no moon, but of a room when
it is shut up, and all the lights extinct. Nothing then
was to be heard but the shrieks of women, the screams
of children, and the cries of men ; some calling for
their children, others for their parents, others for their
husbands, and only distinguishing each other by their
voices ; one lamenting his own fate, another that of his
family ; some wishing to die from the very fear of dy-
ing; some lifting their hands to the gods; but the
greater part imagining that the last and eternal night
was come, which was to destroy the gods and the
world together."
Mrs. Denton, it may be proper to say, had never
read this account of Pliny's, nor in fact any descrip-
tion of the event she so truthfully describes.
There is one statement made by the psychometer that
is contrary to the generally received opinion respect-
ing the phenomena attending the destruction of Pom-
peii. It is generally supposed that ashes, falling as
/
/ 190 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
the snow falls, in process of time enveloped the city ;
but, according to the preceding examination, water
vomited from Vesuvius, and sweeping the loose ashes
alcng with its current, must have contributed materi-
ally to the catastrophe. There are many facts, which
have been brought to light by the excavations at Pom-
peii, which are in harmony with this idea.
Various skeletons that have been discovered were
found enclosed in hardened tuff, which appears to
have flowed around them, for in some cases perfect
casts of bodies have been found ; as in the case of a
woman found in a cellar^ with an infant in her arms.
Casts have been recently discovered, so perfect, that in
pouring into them plaster-of-Paris, there were formed
statues of the ancient Romans, true to the life. Lyell
informs us that a mask imbedded in tuff has left a cast,
the sharpness of which has been compared to those in
plaster-of-Paris ; the mask was not in the least degree
scorched, as if it had been imbedded in heated matter.
The cellars and vaults of Pompeii are filled with mat-
ter that seems to have flowed in, which can hardly be
accounted for, except by streams of mud resulting
from a flow of water from the mountain ; for no quan-
tity of rain upon the dry ashes and cinders could have
caused such a flow.
It is generally considered that the Roman amphithe-
atres were devoted exclusively to gladiatorial shows.
What was seen in the experiment, however, more
nearly resembles our modern circus performances. I
have no historical evidence to offer in favor of what
was thus seen, except the fact, which some may think
of but little importance in this connection, that when
CHARCOAL FROM HERCULANEUM. 191
the amphitheatre at Pompeii was first opened, paint-
ings in fresco were found, representing gladiators, min-
strels, musicians, and vnnged geiiii. These latter may
have been what were seen represented.
EXPERIMENT LXXVI.
A piece of charcoal from a beam in Herculaneum.
Conditions as in previous experiment.
" I see low buildings on a low piece of land, that
looks to me like an island ; but that is perhaps a mis-
take. The buildings are so far away that they may
look lower than they really are. I am on high ground,
and look down upon them ; and from where I am they
have quite a hut-like look. South and southeast of the
land there is water ; the northern part seems higher."
(Long pause.) " There are many and conflicting influ-
ences in this.
" I obtain the influence of a city, of a palace, and
again, of a garden and water. The palace, as I call it,
is a large building and highly decorated, and has a pa-
latial appearance, at all events. There is an extensive
garden attached to it. (There seems to be a mixture
of present and past .that I do not understand.) This
seems to be near the sea ; I feel the influence of it,
and see ships that stop at a point near here ; I should
think within the limits of the city. There is a curious
mingling of modern sensations with ancient appearan-
ces, and I cannot imagine the cause of it. Either I
obtain two difibrent ages mixed together, or there is a
very distinct difibrence between one part of the inhab-
itants and another part. Yes, I obtain the influence
of the city; one part of the inhabitants seems refined,
192 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
in many respects, and the other, coarse, uncultivated.
The difference between them is very marked ; but I
do not exactly give it. In this palace there is great
refinement and cultivation, but it is different from
ours ; it seems occupied by a different people. I feel
that their customs would appear very singular to us.
They must recognize caste in a very different way
from what we do. There seem to be two distinct
castes, that do not mingle ; the distinction between
them does not arise from intellect in any way, but
from wealth; there may be an intermediate class.
There is a great deal here that is rich and magnifi-
cent.
" There seem to be hills beyond where I am. I do
not think that was an island that I saw, but a low place
extending into the water. In some places I see wo-
men doing out-of-door work, but there are some too
much refined for that. There is a great deal that is
romantic in the appearance of this city. On the city
heights is a great gorge, with something built over it
like a bridge. There must be a good many inhabit-
ants in that upper part of the city. The people are
much engaged in fruit-growing, I think. I see exten-
sive grounds covered with vegetation. It may consist
of vines; but there seem to be fruits, that are not
grown in this country. Many people are engaged in
attending to them. I judge it is a warmer climate
than this. Some of the women appear quite mascu-
line in their habits ; they attend to the fruits and
grounds, and drive teams. They have no long skirts ;
their dresses are quite scant ; I cannot tell what they
are made of.
CHARCOAL PROM HiRCULANEUM. 193
" I now obtain the influence of the country around.
I see very high cliflFs, and, at some distance, there is
a range of country that has a volcanic appearance;
at all events, I obtain that sensation from it. I should
not be surprised if they felt earthquake shocks here ;
they certaiidy feel, occasionally, interior disturbances
of some kind, and they are quite strong at times. I
am on the Eastern Continent somewhere, for there is
an oriental appearance about the people and country.
This is from some country facing the south or south-
ward, and the sea lies toward the south. I see several
spires in different parts of the city. I am part of the
way up the heights now, and I cannot readily go down
into the city. I overlook part of it. I see shining ap-
pearances here and there, that I do not understand ;
they are caused, I think, by something bright reflect-
ing the light. I see steps that go up to the higher
parts of the city. In some places they go up very
steep to great heights, where teams cannot go, unless
by very circuitous roads.
" The religion of these people does not enter into
everything as with the Egyptians. There is a good
deal of show about it, but little devotion ; they seem a
perfect contrast to the Egyptians in this respect. The
forms of the Egyptians were the offspring of the in-
ward principle ; but among these people, the form calls
up the feeling."
SECOND EXAIONATION.
Continued next day.
" I stand in a very different position in reference to
the city from what I did before. It is now in front of
me, with the hills in the background. I see piles, or
17
194 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
heaps, that are smoking — several of them — in the
city ; they are some distance from me.
" I am now in an inunense building ; it looks very
singular; it is open, to a great extent, and very
roomy. I do not yet see the whole ; either I do not
see the dividing walls, or they are not there. There
is a long circular stairway, on which I see crowds of
people. What an extensive place it is I it is used for
great public gatherings. A great many people are in
it now. It looks like an immense amphitheatre (what
I see, comes up in fragments) ; the lower part open to
some extent, and the people above. It reminds me in
some respects of the amphitheatre of Pompeii, but the
influence seems more modern, and the people more
modern ; yet, they are not of the present time. Now, I
see more fully the arrangement of the place. It is a
large amphitheatre, aipid full of people ; but I cannot
see what is going on in the arena. There is an un-
clean influence down there ; it seems like a stable,
though I cannot conceive of its being tolerated in such
a place. It does not proceed from the arena so much
as from its surroundings, though I cannot tell why ; I
see nothing to indicate it. I should think this would
be a disagreeable place for refined people to visit.
There are places in connection with this where ani-
mals are kept. I cannot see anything in that pit.
" I get the idea of its being consumed ; fire and
smoke come in and crowd out^other views."
She took an atlas, turned over to the map of Europe,
and after a short pause put her finger near the Bay of
Naples, covering the very spot where Herculaneum
lies buried.
LIMESTONE, CHICAGO. 195
This from a piece of charcoal, no larger than a hazel-
nut. The chemist looks at it, and says, — "A fine piece
of carbon, of the same chemical composition as the
diamond ; by no means, at my command, distinguishable
from a piece made by the charcoal-burner last week."
The artist looks at it, and says, — " This would form
outlines of fi'gures very readily, and I see no other use
to which it could be put in my line." But the psy-
chometer takes it, and what a revelation of sights.
Bounds and feelings I Who can tell the infinite num-
ber of pictures that it contains ; the knowledge that
might be gained from it in reference to subjects on
which all history is silent, and yet subjects in which
we are deeply interested ? I believe that a true his-
tory of the lava-buried city, more full and more
accurate than historian ever wrote of any city, might
be obtained from that fragment of a charred Hercula-
nenm beam. The eruption that overwhelmed the city,
would have been seen, no doubt, if the experiment had
been continued for a suflScient length of time.
I have been unable to verify many of the statements
here made with regard to Herculaneum, from the
great paucity of definite information, in all books that
I have been able to obtain, bearing upon the subject.
I have no doubt, however, that a searching investiga-
tion would result, as it does almost invariably, in
establishing the correctness of the psychometric vis-
ion, even to the minutest particular.
EXrERIHENT LXXVn.
Piece of limestone picked up on the surface, near a
limestone quarry, about two miles west of Chicago.
Conditions as before.
196 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
" City scenes come before me.
" Now I see another town, made of huts, with a hill
or mound back of it. There are many men and women,
who look something like Indians, but smaller and dif-
ferent from any that I have seen before. In the town
is a large, heavy, dark building, with a raised platform
at the end of it, and an image upon it, something like
a human being. The platform takes up the whole
breadth of the building, and there are six or eight
steps up to it. There are props supporting the roof,
consisting of pieces of wood one above another." (In-
terrupted, and after a little time tried it again.)
" Similar scenes all come over again in the same
order. I have,
" 1. Glimpses of present conditions;
"2. Forest, all wild;
"3. Indian town, with trees in the distance. They
have been taking out rock to a great depth here ; at
one place there is quite an excavation."
Who were these people that looked like Indians, but
were smaller in size, and more advanced in the arts ;
who built temples, and carved rude images? Have
they disappeared, like the mastodon that once rambled
over the wide land, or were they driven south by the
Indian Goths and Vandals who poured in upon them
from the North and West? The soil we tread, the
rocks we carelessly trample under our feet, abound
with the records of the primitive inhabitants of the
land ; and we leave our traces, in like manner, to be
read by those that shall come after.
I know of no traces of an Indian town in the neigh-
borhood where the specimen was obtained, though
TOMBS OF THE KINGS, THEBES. 197
such might possibly be found on examining the spot,
for the situation is one well suited for an Indian vil-
lage, as it must have been, at one time, the first ground
in the vicinity of Chicago, west of Lake Michigan, that
was not overflowed every spring.
EXPERIMENT LXXVIU.
A piece of stalagmitic limestone from one of the
Tombs of the Kings near Thebes.
Specimen seen, but nothing known regarding it.
" What I see has the appearance of being reflected,
as if near a river and reflected by its water. It looks
like the side of a room, though, in some respects, it dif-
fers considerably from that. It has a natural feeling,
but an artificial look. It looks to me like an opening
in a bank ; it has quite an artificial appearance, and
yet seems so natural. I think it has been used by
human beings. I cannot tell, though I have been try-
ing for some time, what makes this union of the natural
and artificial. There seem to be many influences
mixed up with this.
" The human influences are of a very peculiar kind.
I see a long train of persons going to and coming from
this place ; they are carrying something. Some have
anim^ils, which they lead, walking by the side of them ;
the animals look strange ; I cannot tell what they are.
These persons difier from all with which I am famiUar.
Two rows of them stand facing each other.
" I cannot imagine what this means. I see several
faces that seem to be looking out of holes in a wall-like
snr&ce ; they are human faces.
" Now, a great company, connected together in some
17*
198 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
way, are moving something high over the ground, and
again, I see others quite independent.
" I see some that look as if they were building ;
hundreds are moving, hurrying in every direction ; but
what I see is not distinct enough for accurate descrip-
tion.
" Now, they are all collected in a great crowd before
a place where there is a large door. As far as I can
see, there are rows of persons carrying something.
Now, they have their arms raised up. Above and
around that door the hill is cut away, so as to form
three truncated pyramiSs, one above another, becom-
ing smaller to the top, the door being in the centre of
the lower one. All over this, crowds are standing,
wherever there is room; some looking down at the
spectacle below. All seem to have some common ob-
ject. There is a sensation of gloom here, though the
appearance of the people seems to contradict it ; but
that may be in accordance with the custom of the
country. I think this must be a burial place ; and they
have either carried a body in there, or go and see a
body, and then make wild demonstrations of extrav-
agant, showy mourning, that we should regard as
quite indecorous ; there is nothing quiet or subdued
about it.
" I see a portion of a high building, with three stat-
ues of human beings standing on the top of it. I see
another building, with smaller figures on each end.
There are many buildings in the distance. I seem to
be in a city, or something like it. They are a busy
people here, — like ants, moving continually in a hurry
from one thing to another. They work together in
TOMBS OP THE KINGS, THEBES. 199
large numbers; so differently from our people. They
take great pleasure in their labor.
" I see a building now, that has four or five terraces
all round it, smaller and smaller toward the top. The
ceiling has a very substantial look.
" It fatigues me to follow the motions of these peo-
ple. Every man in the city seems to work with every
other man. Whatever is done, is done by the multi-
tude. There is another long procession, just going
round the comer. Some kind of animals — I think
they must be camels — take part in the procession, not
as beasts of burden, but as if they were esteemed.
" I see a square kind of opening, apparently an en-
trance to a building. If a building, it is a curious one.
It is ornamented with sculpture, and reminds me of the
cave temples of India, though I do not know that this
is the same. The people have a darkish look ; much
more so than Europeans."
The Tombs of the Kings are chambers, hewn out of
the solid limestone, on the side of a mountain, seven or
eight miles from the river Nile, and near the ancient
city of Thebes. That mixture of the natural and arti-
ficial, which the psychometer could not understand,
may be referred to the artificial excavations thus made
in the natural rock.
Prom the city of Thebes, through whose streets, at
the time of her visit, the tide of life was flowing, and
the tide of death ebbing, she sees the processions as
they march with the embalmed bodies of the deceased
to their resting-place. It was the custom to draw the
bodies to the tombs on sledges, accompanied with long
processions; on which occasions that extravagant
200 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
mourning was indulged in, which so excited her atten-
tion. Wilkinson thus refers to the Egyptian customs
on occasions of death and burial : —
" When any one died, all the females of his family,
covering their heads and faces with mud, and leaving
the body in the house, ran through the streets with
their bosoms exposed, striking themselves, and utter-
ing loud lamentations. Their friends and relations
joined them as they went, uniting in the same demon-
strations of grief; and when the deceased was a per-
son of consideration, many strangers accompanied
them, out of respect to his memory. Hired mourners
were also employed to add, by their feigned demonstra-
tions of grief, to the real lamentations of the family,
and to heighten the show of respect paid to the de-
ceased." "^
The present funeral customs in Egypt throw light
upon their ancient practices. As soon as a person is
known to be dying, " the females of the family raise
the cry of lamentation, one generally commencing in a
low tone, and exclaiming, ^ Oh, my misfortune! ' which
is immediately taken up by another with increased
vehemence ; and all join in similar exclamations, united
witli piercing cries. They call on the deceased ac-
cording to their degree of relationship, as, ' Oh, my
father! Oh, my mother! Oh, my sister! Oh, my
brother ! Oh, my aunt ! ' or according to the friendship
and connection existing between them, as, ^ Oh, my
master ! Oh, lord of the house ! Oh, my friend ! Oh,
my dear, my soul, my eyes ! ^ and many of the neigh-
bors, as well as the friends of the family, join in the
♦ Wilkinson's Ancient Egyptians, Vol. ii. p. 402.
MUMMIED CROCODILE, MAABDEH. 201
lamentations. Hired mourning women are. also en-
gaged, who utter cries of grief, and praise the virtues
of the deceased, while the females of the house rend
their clothes, beat themselves, and make other violent
demonstrations of sorrow." "^
The great similarity between this and what Mrs. D.
saw, must be apparent to all ; but, to give an explana-
tion of all that was presented during this experiment,
would require a knowledge of Egyptology to which I
can make no pretension.
EXPERIMENT LXXIX.
From a gentleman in Quebec I obtained a small
mummied crocodile, taken by him from a crocodile pit
at Maabdeh, Egypt. Some time afterward I took a
small portion of the cloth in which it was wrapped,
and pulled it into fine tow ; then wrapped it in three
thicknesses of writing paper, and presented it to Mrs.
Denton, who did not see it, and had no idea of its na-
ture.
" I see a great mound or hill, with a place cut into
it on one side.
" I am looking over the heads of a great many peo-
ple, who are busily engaged in doing something, I can-
not yet see what. I see a long, deep place, that goes
away under the hill. I do not know what to call it.
Near it is an extensive wall ; but it does not seem to
be connected with any building.
"The people here, are, I think, Egyptians; they
look like it. There is an honesty about them that I
•Wilkinson's Ancient Egyptians, Vol. ii. p. 403. Quoted fVom Lane's Modern
Egyptians.
202 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
like. They are destitute of that hypocrisy which I
have 80 frequently noticed, when examining psycho-
metrically. They seem to carry their religion into
almost everything they do. In all their work they
seem to give expression to their religious ideas. The
universality of this expression is truly wonderful. It
does not seem to be confined to any particular place.
They seem to regard everything as a partial embodi-
ment of the Divinity, or an embodiment of some part
of the Divinity. They are exceedingly religious in
their way ; the religious people of this day cannot
compare with them in the habitual exercise of devo-
tion.
"I see shadowy appearances of very large forms,
some of which resemble human beings, but they are
stationary. All the buildings have a solid and sub-
stantial appearance. The architecture is all heavy.
" There seems to be a dark passage to that place,
that I said looked like an excavation. It seems closed
up. The entrance looks very singular ; I know not
how to describe it. Light and ethereal forms are mov-
ing in the air in that entrance, some human, some ani-
mal. I could fancy them to be the spirits of those
that are buried in there, for I think it must be a burial
place. They seem as much more refined than common
psychometric objects, as these are more refined than
ordinary objects. One seems like a turtle ; another
looks like a rabbit, but the ears are not as large.
There is a great deal about this that I cannot give, for
I am unable to describe it.
" I see great numbers of crocodiles, some large and
others small.
\
202L
" I see bills, all of dust, that look as if they might
be changed from one place to another ; or, as if the
wind might blow them away.
" I seem to oscillate betweer the far past and a more
recent period ; which makes ac curate description diffi-
cult. I think those hills must be sand ; they have too
bright a look for dust.
" (There comes up occasionally a being of the human
form, having a wild appearance, very diflfercnt from
the people I have been seeing.) These people do a
groat deal of work in stone, cutting it into many dif-
ferent forms. (I feel the influence occasionally of high
rocks.) They are as industrious as ants in building,
excavating and cutting. They work together. They
have many projects, but are by no means idle dream-
ers, for they execute, too. I see objects that tower
up in the air to points ; they are distinct from the
buildings, and seem three-sided ; they must be obe-
lisks. I see several of them. Now, I see a live croc-
odile, a large^ne, that seems to be in the street."
That the ancient Egyptians were a very religious
people, there can be no doubt. " The Egyptians,'^ says.
Herodotus, " are very religious, surpassing all men in
the honors they pay to the gods." ^ A similar testi-
mony is borne by others. " The Egyptian priests,"
says Porphyry, " profiting by their diligent study of
philosophy, and their intimate acquaintance with the
nature of the gods, have learnt that the Divinity per-
meates other beings as well as man, that he is not the
only creature on earth possessed of a soul ; and that
nearly the same spiritual essence pervades all the
* Herodotus, 11. 37.
y
204 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
tribes of living creatures. On this account, in fash-
ioning images of the gods, they have adopted the
forms of all animals, sometimes joining the human fig-
ure with those of beasts ; at others, combining the
shapes of men and of birds." "^
How exceedingly refined must that influence be,
which, passing from a small piece of linen tow, perme-
ates three thicknesses of writing paper, and then gives
to the psychometer the sensations recorded I
E2CPERIMENT LXXX.
I had long desired to investigate psychometrically
some of the human relics discovered in the drift de-
posits of England, France, and Germany ; and after
many fruitless inquiries for specimens, in museums
and geological collections, chance threw in my way
the opportunity I had so long desired. Wliile in Mont-
real, in December of last year, I observed at the bot>
tom of McGill Street several heaps of flint shingle,
laid there previous to being used for macadamizing
the street. This flint shingle surprised me, for I had
seen nothing of the kind in America ; and, of course,
Canada was the last place in America to look for it.
On inquiry, I learned that it had been brought from
England as ballast. Though I was unable to discover
from what part of England these particular heaps were
brought, it was evident that they came from a cretace-
ous neighborhood, and I thought, likely, from the
southeastern portion of the island. Among the flints I
found two fine specimens of the echinus, and several
smaller fossils, nor dreamed of higher game ; but just
* Wilkinson's Ancient F^ptians, ii. 109.
ANCIENT MEN OP ENGLAND. 205
as I was about to give up my search, in the twilight
of a cold December evening, I found a fragment of
bone, hard frozen into the heap, which, on splintering,
proved to be fossilized ; and on the next morning, in a
neighboring heap, I discovered some twenty or thirty
black or dark brown splintered fragments of fossil
bone. Some appeared like portions of the skeletons
of bovine quadrupeds, others of deer ; one, the bone
of a bird; and a few smaller pieces, from the size of
the bone cells, I considered as probably portions of the
mammoth, or dephas primigenius. Prom portions of
clay attached to them, they had evidently been buried
in a bed of blue clay originally ; they adhered strongly
to the tongue, and one that I fractured showed a
bright metallic lustre. Probably, said I to myself,
these were washed out of a drift bed, or more recent
alluvial deposit, by the waves, and thus became min-
gled with the shingle of the beach, from which the
sailors loaded them into the vessel ; and, possibly,
from them I may obtain some knowledge of those hu-
man beings who inhabited Great Britain at an early
period. I accordingly took one of these bones, which
Lad apparently been cu^ with some sharp instrument,
to extract the. marrow, and gave it to Mrs. Denton for
examination. She knew something of my ideas on
the subject, but had no faith in them.
" I see a head ; the lower part of the forehead is
very prominent, so that the eyes seem deeply set.
The forehead is very low, and round and receding.
The face has an awful look ; it is dark, and feathers
are stuck round the head. (It was merely a glimpse.)
" Now I see the chest and arms. It seems hardly
18
206 THE- SOUL OP THINGS.
human ; yet it is not savage and wild, for I have no
such sensation in connection with it, as I have felt be-
fore in connection with early men. There seems a
good deal of fun, frolic and good-nature here. The
mouth is crescent-shaped, the face short, and the front
head slopes on each side, forming quite an angle. I
see an older and larger one, that shows its teeth,
which are large. It is coarser and uglier, and seems
very bad-tempered.
" I see one sitting on a log, his long legs hanging
down, crossed at the ankles, and his hands between his
knees. He is looking oflF. In front of him is a cave.
It is sad to see such a pitiful object in the shape of a
human being. I question whether he can stand per-
fectly upright ; his hip-joints appear to be so formed
that he cannot, though he sits comfortably. Whether
this is natural to him, or is a condition produced by
disease, I cannot say. Now I see him perfectly. I
can hardly credit that he is human, yet there is a hu-
man expression in the face. His body is very hairy ;
it appears as if the natural hair answered the purpose
of clothing. A part of the face is destitute of hair,
but it is dark-colored. That is not a log that he sits
on, I see, but a rock. He must have gone there fre-
quently to sit. He seems to be in a kind of study ;
there is evidently some power of thought.
"I have a glimpse of another one, smaller, more
slender, and le^s hairy. One hand is raised. (My ex-
citement prevents my seeing.) Occasionally, I see
part of the body of one of those beings that looks com-
paratively smooth. I can see the skin, which is lighter-
colored. I do not know whether it belongs, to the
same period or not.
EARLY MEN OP ENGLAND. 207
" It is rather dark in that cave ; I can only see a lit-
tle way. There is something in the back part of it,
but I cannot see what it is.
" In the soft floor, at the bottom of the cave, are cu-
rious markings. It looks as if some one, for pastime
or for play, had made a number of shallow holes.
There must be quite a number of these beings around
here, for I see others occasionally. I see one more
slender than the first, and another larger, heavier, and
yet smoother and more delicate. I think this is a fe-
male. She is fuller and more rounded, and her limbs
are shorter; but her face is far from being that * human
face divine,' of which the poets speak, though I only
obtain its general appearance. I see another female,
smaller than the first. They are more erect than
those hairy ones I saw, who are males, I suppose ; but
it is strange there should be such a difierence between
them.
" I see an animal, in a kind .of enclosure, that seems
partly tamed. It is a large, herbivorous animal, and I
fiincy now that the first man I saw was watching it,
till some one else came ; two or three of tliem taking
turns.
" There must be a number here, from the influence I
feel, — more than one family. All that I have seen
hitherto, have been perfectly nude; but I see the back
of one now, that seems to have some kind of covering
on ; I think it is a skin. The wearer is one of the
fairer, erect kind, as most of them are that I see now.
They seem much more human than the others.
" In that cave I see objects that I cannot tell the
use of; they seem made of stone. Some are five or
208 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
six feet long ; but they must be made of wood, with a
sharp point of stone at the end ; they have a round
end where they are handled, and I think now are used
as spears for killing animals. I see smaller ones hang-
ing on the side of the cave. There seems to be a belt
of skin, several feet long, fastened against the wall,
and through it diflFerent implements are placed. Some
are seven or eight inches long, and others but two or
three. Some are bulky, and look like hammers, while
others are slim and sharp." (Are they made of flint?)
" They look hard, and some seem to have been chipped,
but I am not near enough to distinguish the precise
material of which they are composed.
" I feel a great many of these beings about, going
in and out, but I cannot see many. That cave is quite
a large place. There are some implements hanging
on the wall that are quite sharp; they seem to be flint.
They use them to cut up their meat with. (I feel
this.) They did not eat their flesh raw; I have the
impression of its being cooked.
" I see green trees ; the vegetation seems like that
of a warmer country than this. I see grape vines.
There is much more intelligence among these beings
than those I saw with that specimen from Mount
Ararat. (Experiment 83.)
" These dark ones do not seem as savage as I should
expect. There is something mild and submissive about
them. At a distance the face seems flat; the lower
part of it is heavy ; they have what, I suppose, would
be called prognathous jaws. The frontal region of the
head is low, and the lower portion of it is very promi-
nent, forming a rounded ridge across the forehead,
EARLY MEN OF ENGLAND. 209
immediately above the eye-brows. The hair bushes
up full in front and seems inclined to curl. I think
there is hair on the chin and sides of the face.
" I see something peculiar at the edge of a wood.
Between the rocks and the wood is an open space ;
and near the wood is something built that seems in-
tended to shed rain. There are vines growing over it.
" I see an animal now, much larger than the largest
ox; with large, long horns, three times as large as any
I ever saw, that curve over on each side and almost
meet under the head."
EXPERDiBNT LXXXL
A few days afterward, other and diflFerent specimens
having been tried in the interim, I broke off a small
fragment from the same bone and gave it to Mrs. Den-
ton for examination. She might have supposed it to
be bone from its feeling, but she certainly had no idea
of its being a portion of the one previously examined.
"I see a rude bucket hanging on a cross-bar sup-
ported by two forked sticks. It is long for its width,
and seems to have been dug out of solid wood. There
is something around it near the top, probably to fasten
something to, to carry it by. It is rough on the out-
side.
" I see a very low place, that looks as if made to live
in; it goes up to a sharp peak. (There is some animal
influence about this specimen, from the feeling I have.)
That house is made by poles put in the ground and
poles on the top connecting; then it is banked up with
earth, and skins are put over it — so it seems. I see
the poles have forked tops, and the top poles are
18*
21,0 THE SOUL OP TfflNGS.
placed in the forks. I see another, that is round on
top ; and in the distance are three or four little ones.
I see shadows of people moving around ; I cannot see
any one distinctly. I now see the facial bones of a
human being ; the teeth are very prominent, the jaws
large, and the front part of the face very prominent
and large.
" I feel now as if I were in one of those places in
the rock that I saw the other night. I do not see that'
long row of implements, but I am in a place like that*
I see some great branching horns in there, but no ani-
mal. The horns are much longer than any I ever saw.
There are two main branches on each side and a num-
ber of smaller ones. Between the two, short points
stick up, that give it a singular appearance. It seems
to be on a kind of seat above the ground.
" I see an animal lying down, that has a tapering
face and nose, more so than a sheep ; though it looks
more like a sheep th^ any other animal I have seen.
Its eyes are large. It has short horns, and is herbiv-
orous ; but what is most remarkable about it, and what
I cannot understand, is that it has four horns. I see
many things, but not distinctly enough to describe.
Many that I see seem quite incongruous and must
have been brought here ; for instance, I see a singular-
looking spiny fish lying on the ground. I have seen
several times the head of an animal resembling an ox,
but with a thin and short under jaw, compared with
the upper, which is heavier than in our cattle. It has
a curly front. The whole head looks very heavy.
" Now I see a face that looks like that of a human
being, though there is a monkey-like appearance about
EARLY MEN OF ENGLAND. 211
it. I also see several persons trying to roll a large
angular stone. One I can see quite plain; he looks
like that one I saw sitting the other night. All these
seem of that kind having long arms and hairy bodies.
The face of one is toward me and the backs of the
others. None of them are clothed. One looks like a
female, with some kind of ornament bound around her
head. I cannot tell what it is made of. I seem to be
in about the same place and period that I was the
other night with that bone, but I do not see any of
the smooth people, as I did then.
" In rolling that stone, one of them seems to act as
overseer; he seems to be the same tall, ugly one —
the second I saw the other night.
" I see a very low entrance to a cave, in which it
looks quite dark. The front of it, over the top, has
an artificial appearance, as if something had been put
up to make the entrance smaller. The climate is not
warm all the time ; sometimes, it seems chilly, cold and
damp.
" I see now a point of land stretching into a large
body of water that seems to be the ocean. On this
side of it are many people down by the water. I
wonder if that long weapon I saw the other day was
not for spearing fish? I see one of these people hold-
ing up something in his hand, as if for some one at a
distance to see. Another one is bent over. They
Boem to have a monstrous fish on the land which re-
quires several of them to manage. Its mouth is open,
and seems full of sharp, white teeth.
" Toward that point of land are more persons than
here. Some of them have dresses on that reach from
212 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
the shoulders to the knee, and are fastened at the
waist ; some are shorter, and others are unfastened at
the waist. I think they are the skins of animals.
They seem to be fishing, and are not very particular
about what they catch. These are the smooth-skinned
people, and the others are, I believe, either their pris-
oners or slaves that work for them. There is more
intellect and craft among these, and they have a
greater range of ideas. There is more calculation
and cunning about them. The others seem inefficient
compared with them; they may become terribly en-
raged, but they lack ability to accomplish much.
These are shorter and stouter people ; they have
round faces, low foreheads, but not with that protrud-
ing ridge I saw in the others ; they have flat heads,
and nothing like beard or whiskers. The fairest of
them have a dark, tawny look. I do not like them,
they are so designing and selfish. They are largely
in the majority hero I find, and they are tlie same
people I saw the other night
" I had a glimpse of an awful-looking creature just
then, with his hair hanging all around his face. He
has an ugly-looking face, and his hair is terribly tan-
gled.
" I see more animals penned up that look somewhat
like oxen, but with thicker skins and less hair ; they
are of monstrous size.
" I see faces of some animals that resemble our dogs,
yet they diflPer from them considerably ; but they are
more like dogs than any other animals with which I
am acquainted."
EARLY MEN OF ENGLAND. 213
EXPERIMENT LXXXn.
Another bone from the same locality, gnawed by some
small rodent ; the bone seen, and the circumstances of
its discovery known.
" The first thing I see is one of those hairy men sit-
ting with his back against a tree. The same things
come np that I saw with the other specimens, or nearly
so ; but I see the animals more distinctly. A great
many are visible. One kind that I see resemble
oxen, and have very large and long horns ; they are
larger than my arm, curve upward on each side of the
head, and have two or three twists in them. I see one
about as high as an ox, but smaller. It looks young,
has no horns, and seems like a calf; it has the look of
a yearling. So many objects crowd upon me, I am un-
able to describe them. One animal, that I suppose to
be an ox, has frowzy hair, and thick horns, heavier
than the others! have seen, but not as long.
".This must be a horse that I see now. Yes, I see
two of those men on the back of one ; they are going
with great speed. They seem to have something to
guide it with ; but I do not know what.
" I see a long string of skulls of diflPerent animals ;
they are hanging against the face of the rock ; the
first looks like a human skull.
" Several of those hairy ones are here ; first at work,
and then at play. Now, I see them climbing up a rock
as if pursued by something. (The pictures come up
in such abundance, I cannot disentangle them. In
whatever direction I look, figures are darting to and
fro, singly or in groups; but so rapidly that I cannot
describe them.) "
214 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
I advised her to lay the specimen down and try if
she could see them without.
" Now, they seem less than the natural size, and just
as if they were pictures. That is strange I it seems
to me as if they were painted on the outside of my
forehead, and I were just looking at them so. I almost
turned round to ask you to look at them, they are so
plain. Now, they appear more natural, and move more
slowly than before, though I do not see them as dis-
tinctly." (She now put the specimen on her forehead
again, and said she would tell me all she saw as rap-
idly as she could.)
"A man lying down.
"An ox-head.
"A place marked off, and the ground tracked round.
" Enclosure, with an animal in it.
"Another animal, large, unenclosed, and that looks
tame.
"The sun shining on the water.
"A cave, with an arch-like entrance.
" Now I see a man with a club, and it seems as if
some kind of fighting were going on. I see one of the
smooth ones with a club in his uplifted hand.
" The influences I receive now seem more recent.
There is more skill manifest ; all artistic work seems
superior, and more genius is apparent.
" There is a wide and deep river running into the
sea not far from here. I see a place with artificial
steps like wooden blocks.
" Now, I see some of the hairy fellows working in
stone. One of them is doing something with a very
large one. Now he sits on it, and puts his hands be-
EABLY MEN OF ENGLAND. 215
hind him, and leans back on another to rest. I see
two in the water wading, with a pole between them.
Now there are a number wading out. That is a pleas-
ant stream, but large and wide."
As w© travel into the night of the past, in search of
facts regarding the condition of our race at an early
period of its existence, we find history burning with a
dim and uncertain light, before we have advanced
three thousand years ; and if we had history alone to
guide us, beyond this, in midnight, we should grope
our uncertain way. But when history can no longer
be depended upon, archeology comes to our assistance,
and we continue our journey with light sufficient to
behold the salient features of the landscape lying be-
fore us.
We have learned from archeology that, prior to the
historic period, men knew the use of iron, and fash-
ioned it into tools for ordinary use, and weapons of
war, and this for a long time before history gives any
record of their doings. We also learn that previous to
the iron age, there was a bronze age, in which men
knew not the use of iron, probably, because they had
not learned to produce heat sufficient to melt it from
its intractable ores. This bronze age, archeologists
have discovered, existed for a long time^ Lyell says,
" The number and variety of objects belonging to the
age of bronze indicate its long duration, as does the
progress in the arts implied by the rudeness of the ear-
lier tools." *
Immeasurably back in the far past, the use of metals
was unknown; and men fashioned their tools and
• Lyell'8 Antiquity of Man, p. 11.
216 THE BOUL OP THINGS.
\veupons principally of stone. Tliis was the stone age.
Already the existence of this stone age has been dem-
onstrated in Great Britain, France, Denmark, Germany,
and Switzerland. During the early part of this age,
gigantic elephants, nearly twice as large as existing
ones, roamed in herds through the forests of Great
Britain, France, and Germany. Oxen, of several spe-
cies now extinct, and some of them of immense size,
fed in the natural meadows, while tigers, bears, and
hyenas prowled through the woods in pursuit of their
prey, or hid from the hot rays of the sun in the dark
recesses of the rocks. In the rivers, extinct species
of the rhinoceros and hippopotamus sported, their
tough hides impervious to the rude weapons of the
rude men that occupied the land.
The scenes described in the three preceding experi-
ments, belong, I think, to this stone age, and give a
lifelike representation of the people, their condition,
and pursuits.
Probably, during the early human period, man had
attained the highest point of comparative civilization
in Central Asia ; and from that, as a centre, wave after
wave rolled westward over Europe, as the desire for
change, or need of wider territory, or love of conquest,
or the persecution of a dominant race, compelled
them. Finding a people inferior to themselves in form,
color, and intellectual ability, they enslaved them, after
taking possession of their lands by the right of the
strongest; themselves to be supplanted at some future
time by another wave of humanity, as much in advance
of them as they were of their predecessors. Just as
in the present day the Arabs have overrun North-
EARLY MEN OF ASIA. 217
era Africa, enslaving the negroes ; and the French, in
their turn, are driving them out and occupying their
domain. The conquest of Great Britian by the Ro-
mans, the first of which authentic history speaks, was
probably but one of a number that had preceded it,
during what may be termed the pre-historic period.
E2a*ERJMENT L2CKXIII.
Small fragment of obsidian, from Mount Ararat.
Mrs. Denton saw it, but thought it was coal.
" I am near a soft, wet place ; below me it is marshy.
On one side is a steep ridge, and on the side of that, a
square hole, lined with poles or sticks ; they do not
seem to have been hewn. There are different animals
around, which seem to be much afraid. One, with
slender body and legs, looks like a deer, but is taller.
Some are larger still, and more clumsy-looking. One
is as large as a hog, but is in shape like a mole. An-
other has a broad face, curved horns, and peculiar
curled hair ; it looks frowzy and quite fierce.
" The strangest sight of all comes up. It is a man-
like animal; it is pursuing the other animals, and that
is the reason they run, and are so afraid. This animal
built that place I saw, I believe. I see one in the dis-
tance now; he has something on his head; and another
with something in his hand or paw, — the left one, —
which he swings. His head is very angular. I seem
to see the dawn of thought, as he holds that out, and
watches it swing. It is a wild animal, and he holds it
by the entrails, I believe ! His arms are long as legs,
and covered with hair ; but the face is nearly smooth,
yet looks fuzzy. The color is dark, but has an olive
19
218 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
tinge. This one has some mirthfuhiess about him.
Oh, oh, what a yell 1 I never heard anything equal to
it. It thrills me, and I fairly tremble. Yet it had a
kind of silvery ring to it. The mouth of this animal
is crescent-shaped. It has a very large nose, three or
four times the size of a man's ; it is rounded and very
prominent, and seems in keeping with the face and
head. The forehead goes up and back to a ridge, giv-
ing it a triangular shape."
If my thought were at all concerned in the produc-
tion of these pictures, on this occasion the vision
would certainly have differed most widely from the
one presented. I was looking at the time for a vol-
canic eruption and its accompanying phenomena ; and
was very much surprised, as I have frequently been,
at the difference between what was preseated, and
what was expected.
EXPERIMENT LXXICIV.
Small flint arrow-head, found near Chesterfield, Mad-
ison County, Indiana.
Mrs. Giles, of Randolph, Cattaraugus County, New
York.
" I go south to the water's edge, but cannot cross it,
I see grass of a yellow color, a few trees, and various
small animals that I am not familiar with. I see pieces
of rock in the earth that look something like glass.
" Now, I see a wilderness ; there are no trees cut
down, and in its depths are birds, snakes, and bears. I
see a village also, and pass through it ; it is built of
bark and skins, and what looks like cloth. There are
a good many men near it. I see no women. The men
• FLINT AIIROW-HEAD. 219
are poorly dressed, almost naked. The skins they
wear look rough; some are worn with the hide out,
and some with the fur. They have nothing on their
heads, and their skins are dark-colored. Now I see
more of them; they look lazy, dirty and shiftless.
They really don't seem to know anything. Their
foreheads are small, and their heads run up to the
crown, sugar-loaf shape. They have large noses,
large mouths, and thick lips." In reply to a question
she said, " I should not call them Indians ; they are
lighter-colored, and short and thickset. They look
more like monkeys than any human beings I ever saw.
" I see a woman now ; she has a loose skin in front
of her breast, and another round her hips that is fast.
There is a small hut ; I have to stoop to enter it. In
one corner I see grass and stuff, where I suppose they
lie. Here is a larger hut; I will go in. I see square
stones that seem intended for seats. There is a place
made of stones for a fire, and I see one burning, and
meat, with a pole stuck through it, cooking. The bed
in this hut has skins on it. I see a woman with orna-
ments in her ears ; she has nice furs on.
"A man is pounding against the side of a tree with a
stone to loosen the bark. The stone is sharp at one
end and thick at the other ; he pounds with the large
end, and cuts with the other. He has a rough kind of
basket into which he piles the bark.
" There are spots as large as a house here and there,
that seem to have been cleared for cultivation."
A very life-like picture of the aboriginal times.
Mrs. Giles assured me that she did not know what the
specimen was till the examination was over.
220 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
EXPERniEST LXXXV.
Piece of encrinal limestone, obtained near the res-
ervoir at the foot of Mount Royal, Montreal. Mrs.
Denton knew it came from somewhere in the neighbor-
hood of Montreal, but not what it was.
" I see a tremendous waterfall, of great breadth, wi-
der than any river that I ever saw. Niagara, from
what I have heard of it, must bo a baby in compari-
son. There seems to be a good deal of what looks
like steam. I see beams of light that shine through
it; at the lowest part it is dark, but higher up the
light is more diffused through it. Those shafts of
light that dart through it remind me of lightning, they
are so clear and well-defined.
" I am under the fall now ; there is an arch of rock
overhead, but I do not see the water. The archway
is extensive ; it is a great open place. The light in
the water seems to vibrate.
" There is that fall again. What a tremendous fall
it is 1 it seems to hold me. A rock rises up in or near
the centre of it, high and steep. It is water-worn all
round, and is smaller at the bottom than higher up.
The fall must have been miles wide. (It is difficult to
shut out modern influences.)
" I wonder if this has not been exposed to heat.
What can have made it so hot ?
" I see animals resembhng crinoids."
At the time this examination was made, I did not
know that Mount Royal was composed, to a considera-
ble extent, of trap, sent up from below in a heated
condition, of course ; but when I learned this, the
heat that Mrs. Denton recognized was readily ex-
TRAP, MOUNT ROYAL. 221
plained ; the trap lying in place but a few rods from
where I obtained the specimen.
EXPERIMENT LXXXVT.
A few days afterward, tried a piece of trap from the
top of Mount Royal. Specimen seen, and its locality
known.
"I can see the St. Lawrence plainer than when I
was on the Mount, and parts of the city fully as plain.
I cannot see the bridge distinctly; I merely see a dark
line across the water. I should not have known what
it was, if I had not seen it before.
" Now I am a little way back in time from the pres-
ent occupation of the country. It looks very wild;
the water rolls on, with no human being present.
How lonely ! There is no steeple in town nearly as
high as the rock on that island; it was magnificent.
It looks very craggy on top, as I go back in time.
" Now, I see a fall, — very wide ; there are rocks in
it higher than the general bed over which the water
dashes. I can hear the rushing of that stream ; the
roar is terrible. There is a hoUow sound, too, that I
cannot account for, but I think it comes from there.
It is the broadest sweep of water in the shape of a
river that I ever saw, but I do not think it was as
deep then as now."
EXPERIMENT LXXXVII.
When in Montreal, I broke from the first pier of the
Victoria Bridge, on the north side of the river, and on
the east side of the pier, a small fragment of lime-
stone ; this, about six weeks afterward, I gave to Mrs.
19*
222 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
Denton, who did not see it, had no idea of .the charac*
ter of it, and knew not that I had any such specimen.
" I see a point extending into the water, and vessels
around it ; and I see another point farther away that
has buildings upon it. Now I see high cliffs. There
seems to be a kind of archway here, but I cannot tell
yet what it belongs to. It looks, however, like a tun-
nel, and yet like a bridge. I do not know what to call
it. I am looking through the arched entrance, and
that is the appearance presented. There are hills in
the distance. There is a city here.
" I see now what this is ; it is a long bridge over a
stream. Down the stream I see that high pinnacle on
an island that I saw once when we were at Montreal.
This must be from the long bridge at MontreaV^
If Mrs. Denton had been placed bodily on the spot
where I obtained the specimen, she could hardly have
described more accurately the principal features of the
view presented from it. There is a point of land on
the lower side of the bridge, which was either made or
enlarged during the building of the bridge, and used
as a wharf for vessels that were employed in convey-
ing material for its construction. The bridge ap-
peared long, of course, for it is the longest bridge in
the world. The iron tube, of which the body of the
bridge is composed, has very much the appearance of
a tunnel when looked into from the end. The high
pinnacle referred to is the same as that noticed by her
in the last experiment ; and it is a little remarkable
that it was not the present appearances observed that
determined the locality of the spec'imen, but an ap-
pearance that has had no actual existence foF ages;
OEIGIN OP PETBOLEUM. 223
for it was the observance of this remarkable pinnacle
of rock that enabled her to determine that the speci-
men was from Montreal.
EXPERIMENT LXXXVIH.
Since the discovery of petroleum, or rock oil, in
such great abundance in Western Pennsylvania, Can-
ada West, and other localities, much interest has been
excited in reference to it, and many theories of its ori-
gin propounded. One supposes that it is the oleagi-
nous matter from antediluvian whales, buried in the
localities where the oil is discovered ; another, that it
is the drippings of coal-beds; subject to enormous
pressure, they are supposed to yield oil, as a cake of
linseed subjected to the power of a hydraulic press ;
and hence the occurrence of this oil in beds underly-
ing coal. Others again believe that the oil was driven
by heat from beds of coal into the neighboring rocks ;
the coal after parting with its oil assuming the form
of anthracite. A wilder theory is, that the oil was
driven out of coal by heat, in the condition of vapor,
condensed in the upper, cold atmosphere, and rained
down in greasy showers ; and thus it is found in locali-
ties where there is no coal in the vicinity. Some, de-
spairing of finding any philosophic solution of the
question, tell us that God made it when it best pleased
him, and we must receive it thankfully, asking no
questions.
It will be seen that most of these theories assume
that the coal-beds are the source of the oil. The rea-
son may be, that an oil, somewhat resembling petro-
leum, can be obtained from coal by distillation : though
224 THE SOUL OF THINGa.
that consideration should not bo allowed to outweigh
the stem facts that are in complete opposition to this
favorite idea.
In the neighborhood of Titusville, Pennsylvania,
where the oil was first discovered in the United States
in large quantities, it is obtained by boring into shales
belonging to the Chemung group of the Devonian for-
mation ; and in these shales, which are at least six or
seven hundred feet below the Coal Measures, the oil is
sometimes obtained at a depth of six hundred feet ;
and when obtained, frequently rushes to the surface
with great violence ; showing clearly that the fountain
supplying it lies still deeper. There is no coal in the
immediate vicinity, the ne9,rest being more than twenty
miles distant. The beds between the coal and the
shales, in which the oil is found, consisting of sand-
stones and conglomerate principally, it is difficult to
conceive of oil soaking through them and travelling
twenty or thirty miles to the spot where it is now
found.
In Canada West, about twenty miles east of Port
Samia, petroleum is found in the greatest abundance.
The whole country seems to rest on a lake of oil, which
has burst through at some time and flooded the land ;
when, the volatile parts evaporating, the ground for
acres has become covered with asphaltum, in places
two feet thick. Here we should certainly expect coal,
according to the conmion theories ; but when we ex-
amine the limestone underlying the deep bed of drift
clay, which covers that part of the country, we find in
it the characteristic shells of the Devonian formation,
and discover that it is one of the members of the Ham-
ORIGIN OP PETROLEUM. 225
ilton group of that formation. It lies, therefore, still
lower geologically than the Pennsylvania oil ; and as,
on boring into the limestone, the oil is found in greater
abundance and of better quality, it is evident that the
source of its supply lies deeper still. These is no coal
nearer than the Michigan coal basin, probably seventy
miles distant ; and there, the thickest coal seam is not
more than four feet, which, under no circumstances,
could yield oil enough to flow half a mile toward the
Canadian petroleum region.
At Louisville this oil, so readily recognized by its
peculiar smell, may be seen in the limestone rocks
blasted out in forming the ship canal ; rocks laid down
ages before the Coal Measures were deposited. In
Chicago, where I have observed it floating on the sur-
feice of water in a limestone quarry, and where the
limestone is thoroughly saturated with it, we find it in
the Lower Silurian ; as we do near Hamilton, in Can-
ada West, and many other localities.
It is most evident, then, that this oil does not pro-
ceed from coal. What does it proceed from ? After
visiting the Titusville oil wells, in Pennsylvania, on
the breaking out of the oil excitement in that region,
I sent a piece of the shale, obtained from one of the
wells, to Mrs. Denton, requesting her to see what psy-
chometry could do towards revealing the mystery of
the origin of this remarkable product. The following
I received by mail : —
" All is perfect darkness around me ; I do not think
I shall see anything to-night. In a twinkling the dark-
ness is gone, and I find myself deep underground ;
how deep, I cannot tell, but I feel a great weight
above me.
226 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
" In front of me, at my right, at my left, and appar-
ently behind me, though I do not see that distinctly, is
a gorgeous scene. I seem to stand in a perfect forest
of — (what shall I term it?) I know of nothing that it
resembles, in its general structure, but the coral for-
ests I have seen, when examining fossil coral; and again,
a portion of its structure resembles the honeycomb
more nearly than anything else to which I can compare
it. The cells are, however, different in form, having a
hanging appearance, the lower portion of each cell
being more extended, and somewhat smoother and
rounder than the upper extremity. These cells, when
entire, seem filled with a liquid ; but many, great mul-
titudes of them, in the part of the forest next me, have
been crushed and broken, and the whole space, or
nearly so, is filled with this expressed liquid.
" In many places this coralline forest seems to prop
the roof, or stratum, above ; and in every direction,
through this grove, I see clusters and groups reflect-
ing all the colors of the rainbow, and presenting most
beautiful and singularly effective arrangements. The
liquid is readily distinguishable from water by the
appearance; but, aside from that, there is the taste and
effect of being in communication with oil. I do not
know what may be above or below this, but here, at
least, I see no appearance of coal, or the vegetation of
which coal is formed, though I have looked faithfully
for it."
In several oil districts she has observed similar ap-
pearances, and on more than one occasion watched the
coral polyps as they filled their cells with the oil se-
creted from the impure waters of the early oceans.
ORIGIN OP PETROLEUM. 227
My own observations corroborate Mrs. Denton's psy-
chometric views. I have found a reef of fossil coral
belonging to the genus favosites, with the oil dripping
out of it, within eight miles of BujBFalo ; and near Wil-
liamsville, in the centre of solid limestone blocks, are
multitudes of corals, the cells of which are filled with
this oil, which is visible nowhere hut in these cells. In
the New York Geological Rooms, Albany, is a fine
specimen of oil-bearing coral, marked Favosites Goth-
landica, Erie County, from which the oil has dripped
to the bottom of the case. I saw several specimens
in the geological rooms at Montreal.
I have no doubt whatever that this oil owes its ori-
gin to the coral polyps, principally of the Silurian and
Devonian periods. They seem to have accomplished a
work analogous to that performed by the plants of the
Carboniferous period ; they purified the water as the
plants did the air; and though no oil-bearing corals
may exist in the ocean at the present time, it may be
because the material from which the oil was obtained
is exhausted, and the family of oil-bearing corals has
become extinct. I know of no living corals whose
cells at all resemble those of the oil-secreters, where
was deposited this very valuable article, which by heat
and pressure has been driven put of its original recep-
tacles into crevices and reservoirs, where it is at pres-
ent found. By long exposure many of the original oil-
containing corals have lost their oil, and hence their
cells are frequently found empty.
EXPERIMENT LXXXIX,
If caves can be examined psychometrically, and
228 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
their windings traced, why not mines and mineral
v^ins ? Many persons have existed who professed to
have the ability of seeing objects deep buried in the
earth, and I have no doubt that, in some cases, these
professions were in accordance with the truth. In
the Seeress of Prevorst, it is said, quoting from Del
Rio, that in Spain there is a race of people called Zo-
huris, who can see things hidden under the earth, as
water, veins of metal, and dead bodies. Gamasche, a
Portuguese, who lived in the beginning of the eigh-
teenth century, had the faculty of discovering water
and metals at a considerable depth under ground.
Zschokke, the well-known German author, says : —
" In almost every canton of Switzerland are found
persons endowed with the mysterious natural gift of
discovering by a peculiar sensation the existence of
subterranean waters, metals, or fossils. I have known
many of them, and often put their marvellous talents
to the proof. One of these was the Abbot of the Con-
vent of St. Urban, in the canton of Lucerne, a man of
learning and science; and another, a young woman,
who excelled all I have ever known. I carried her
and her companion with me through several districts
entirely unknown to her, but with the geological for-
mation of which, and with the position of its salt and
sweet waters, I was quite familiar, and I never found
her deceived. The results of the most careful obser-
vation have compelled me at length to renounce the
obstinate suspicion and incredulity I at first felt on this
subject, and have presented me with a new phase of
nature, although one still involved in enigmatical ob-
scurity. To detail circumstantially every experiment
COPPER, LAKE SUPERIOR. 229
I made to satisfy myself on this point, would take up
too much space at present ; but I think it right to
mention some of the cases which led me occasionally
to vary from others in my views of nature and of
God."*
Catherine Crowe says, in her Night Side of Nature,
" Numerous cases are met with, in which metals or
water are perceived beneath the surface of the earth.
A man called Bl^ton, from Dauphin<^, possessed the
divining power in a remarkable degree, as did a Swiss
girl, called Katherine Beutler. She was strong and
healthy, and of a phlegmatic temperament, yet so sus-
ceptible of these influences that without the rod she
pointed out and traced the course of water, veins of
metal, coal-beds, salt mines, &c."
Our experiments confirm these statements remark-
ably, demonstrating as they do the possession of this
wonderful and valuable power.
On visiting the Lake Superior copper region, some
years ago, I brought from there a number of speci-
mens, which I submitted to Mrs. Cridge and Mrs. Den-
ton for examination ; they, as before, having no previ-
ous knowledge of the specimen, which was carefully
concealed from view when a sight of it would give
any clue to its character.
A piece of conglomerate from the bed of Eagle
Eiver, and one mile from the Phoenix Copper Mine.
Mrs. Cridge.
"I feel the influence of copper, but very slight.
The vapor of the metal must have passed into this. I
should say this came from next to the copper. I can
*Life of Zsohokke, p. 143.
20
230 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
see a vein of copper; it is not more than eighteen
inches thick in the thickest place, and seems to extend
a mile."
Whether there is copper beneath this conglomerate
or not, I cannot say ; but from the fact that it is found
80 immediately in the vicinity, and that the psychom-
oter had not the slightest idea of the locality whence
the specimen was derived, I think it more than prob-
able. The copper region of Lake Superior has not
been one hundredth part explored yet.
E2[PERIMEirr xc
When at Copper Harbor, I picked up, from a gravel-
bed near the burying-ground, about half a mile from
the lake, a fine specimen of crystallized quartz, which
was also examined by my sister.
" I feel the influence of copper. This came from
near the lake, and near the surface, and beneath it is
loose rock or gravel for twelve or fifteen feet. Be-
neath that is a brown stratum, quite thin, not more
than a foot thick ; then trap-rock, very deep; it must be
sixty or seventy feet. I see something yellow in that
trap; it does not look like copper; it is not- in veins,
but scattered around.
" A little from there, toward the west, the trap rises
and comes to the surface. There is copper beneath
the trap, but it is only a thin vein."
About two hundred yards from where I picked up
the specimen the trap does come to the surface, and a
large cliflf of it overlooks the harbor. The yellow
substance that she saw was probably the sulphuret
of copper, which she had not previously seen, either
COPPER, LAKE SUPERIOR. 231
psychometrically or otherwise. It is obtained at a
mine about half a mile from the spot where the speci-
men was found.
EXPERDtEITT XCL
I found near the mouth of Eagle River, on the Lake
Superior shore, a small pebble of amygdaloidal trap,
with a speck of copper in it about as large as a pin's
head. The pebble is somewhat angular, however, and
a person would hardly suppose that it had been rolled
by water.
Mrs. Cridge.
'* I seem to be standing on the shore of the lake,
and before me the water spreads inimitably. Banks
rise to the left, and behind me. The strata seem to
have been cut away, so that all lies exposed. I see
great masses of copper lying bare against the side
of the cliff. This seems to have been broken from
the cliff above the copper. Near there, is a copper
vein dividing into three branches, and extending for
half a mile. It is thickest near the cliff, and is pure
copper."
EXPERDiEirT xcn.
I determined to try this specimen again, and dis-
cover what it would reveal to another psychometer,
who was totally unacquainted with it, and equally so
with the examination that had been made.
Mrs. Denton.
" I see water. Now I see, but it cannot be right, a
vessel with sails.
" I seem to be standing some distance above the
232 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
sliore, and either there is an island in the distance, or
the land stretches out.
"I see a man in dark clothes, sitting on a rock, look-
ing at the water ; and now I see a steamboat.
" I am at the place wliere this was broken off. I
see a vein filled with pure copper. It comes out in
a cliff, and extends apparently for a mile, never run-
ning very far from the lake. The cliff, I should think,
is one hundred and fifty feet high, and the copper is
some distance from the foot of it. Pine trees grow all
over the land, but they look small.
I see another vein larger than that, — thicker and
deeper. It heads about on the same level as this, but
to the west of it ; both veins, as it appears to me, go to
the southeast ; the last more than the first. This vein
has large rugged masses in it ; but it is not as contin-
uously rich as the first."
EXPERIMENT ZCIU,
Six weeks after this, many specimens from various
localities having been examined in the mean time, I
tried the same specimen again.
" This seems to have been moved through the water
with a wavy motion. It has been moved a consider-
able distance by the waves." (In what direction ?)
" I cannot tell. I am surprised, for I see a boat on
water, some distance from me, — a steamboat.
" I see shining metal that looks like gold, or copper
with the sun shining upon it ; and it is a good deal
like a place that I have seen before. There is a long
line of copper at my left. I seem to have a night view
of it ; but the copper is very bright. This must be a
specimen that I tried once before."
COPPER, LAKE SUPERIOR. 233
I could not deny it, and thus the experiment termi-
nated ; but Mrs. D. said that on first trying it, she had
not the most distant suspicion of what it was.
EZPERIMENr XCIV.
Nearly a year after this time, I broke the pebble,
that it might not be recognized, and gave a small frag-
ment of it to Mrs. Denton, for examination again.
Nothing seen or known.
" Many scenes pass before me like lightning. They
are principally water scenes ; they seem to carry me
back to the Silurian period. I see rocks projecting
into the water, the sea occasionally passing over them ;
and in the sea are myriads of living forms of an infe-
rior grade of organization." (I do not wish the paleo-
zoic impressions.) " I go to the land. It seems as if
the earth was all open. To my left are rocks that
seem two hundred feet high. I am away down in a
crevice, and there is a narrow continuation of it for a
long way below me. It seems as if the rocks all round
me had been shivered into fragments; crevices and
veins run in every direction. I am now at an immense
depth. I see fire ; no, not fire exactly, but liquid mat-
ter in motion ; it is of a deeper color than flame. I
must be a long way down. The molten matter pours
up like a tremendous fiery spring. I follow it up, but
it does not rise to the surface of the earth. There are
long crevices, filled with this matter, oflf to my left.
They seem to be to the south of me.
" I stand with my face to the west. The fluid mat-
ter in the crevices is now hard ; it is metal of some
kind ; but whether gold or copper, I cannot tell. There
20*
234 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
is a gas arisiog from it that gives me the feeling of
copper to some extent ; but the metal has a pure look
like gold, and I feel almost sure that it is ; but what
an enormous amount I These crevices that I am trac-
ing are hundreds if not thousands of feet below the
surface." (Turned the specimen over.)
" Now I see a vein of copper. This is higher up
and near the surface- There is a great difference be-
tween this and the other. This I knxyw to be copper ;
there are several veins. Some seem to come very
near, if not quite, to the surface. Some of the veins
are very large.
"I seem to stand and look through the earth for
miles, as if it were transparent as water, only the
metallic veins obstructing my vision. The veins look
skeleton-like, all standing up and ramifying in every
direction. What a singular sight I There is a good
deal of dark trap beyond that, in which there is no
metal for a long way."
The Potsdam sandstone may be seen at the outlet
of Lake Superior, at Sault St. Marie, and also along the
southern shore. It is the only fossiliferous rock that
is known in that region. Back to the period when
this was laid down flies the psychometer, views the
tepid ocean swarming with animals of strange forms
and inferior organization j then, turning to the land,
dives into the heart of the earth, and sees the gur-
gling floods of molten gold come rushing through its
veins. It is not unlikely that the massive copper de-
posits, for which Lake Superior is so justly famous, are
underlaid by equal or still more remarkable deposits
of gold. Free to arrange themselves according to
GOLD, CALIFORNIA. 235
their specific gravities, the heavier metals would as-
sume the lowest place ; and when the Lake Superior
region shall have been mined as long as the tin and
copper region of Cornwall, it may be more famous for
gold than it is now for copper.
EXPERIMENT XCV,
I have two small specimens of gold obtained from
the diggings at Pike's Flat, California. I gave one to
Mrs. Cridge, which she saw, but knew nothing of its
history.
" I seem to be in a country that is level or flat, but
there are hills all around at a distance. There is gold
here, near or on the surface. I don't like the look of
the country, it is so wild and broken ; and there is no
grass.
" I see men walking around with wheelbarrows.
They are shovelling dirt into a trough. I see a shaft
too, and men working at it. The gold does not lie in
veins there, but is scattered aU around in pieces. It
is not in hard rock, but in soft stujBF. In some places
there are large quantities of gold that seem to have
been poured into holes and crevices. The shaft is a
curious one ; I see a long kind of beam that goes
up and down. The miners have blue smocks on."
Prom what I know of Pike's Flat, this is a pretty
correct description of the place and of the mining
operations going on there when the specimen was
obtained. The gentleman from whom I obtained it
said it was -such a description as a person would be
likely to give, who, having no previous knowledge of
mining operations, should see the place.
236 THE SOUL OP TH1KG8.
BZPERJMEKT XCVL
But I had another specimen from the same place,
taken out of the same shaft ; and here was an oppor-
nity for an excellent test. Would this lead her to the
same spot, and would she recognize it ? This second
examination was made a month after the first.
" I can sec a river, but it is not deep. The scenery
around is hilly and broken and somewhat rocky. There
is a great deal of gmvel, and the rock that I see is not
hard. In that water I can see gold, but in very small
pieces ; it looks as if it had been washed down from
above. / go to the same place as I did loitli tJiat other
specimen. I can see the men at work, the wheelbar-
rows, shaft, and washer, as before. The washer is a
long trough into which they put the sand and gravel.
The men look rough and strong and young. Why I
should see that old place again I cannot tell."
After the examination was over, she said she found
she was at the same place, and tried her best to get
away, assured that she was receiving incorrect impres-
sions ; but, though she travelled up the valley a short
distance, she was compelled to return. She was much
surprised when told that it came from the same place.
EXPERIMENT XCVn.
The same specimen was subsequently tried again
by another psychometer, who did not see it and did
not know what it was.
Mrs. Taylor.
** I am on board ship, going back. Now I am on
land ; it is a new country and hilly. I see a stream,
and banks on each side, and off to the right is a vil-
SULPHURET OF COPPER, BRUCK MINK. 237
lage. I stand on the right-hand side of the stream.
Now I see a hole that has been dug through the soil
and gravel and dirt to the rock. All through the rock
they have cut into are shining particles. I see men
digging. How greedily they act I They look pleased ;
those shining particles must be gold. There are largo
quantities in that hill.
"I see the top of a mountain covered with large
trees. One mountain goes up to a peak. I see huts
dotting the country over, near where the men are dig-
ging. The stream goes off small up into the moun-
tains."
EXPERIMENT ZCVUl.
Sulphuret of copper from Canada West. I think
it was obtained at the Bruce Mine, but I am not cer-
tain.
Mrs. Cridge. Had no conception of what it was.
" It seems as if I were in a tunnel, and I see the
light at the other end. I am under ground, and yet I
can see the light and water when I look out. I am
quite a distance from the mouth. How chilly it is
here ! This must be a mine. I can see a little track
laid down, and men about. There is a good deal of
metal here. The mine is damp. I can see a vein of
metal, and it differs from all that I have seen before.
It has a greenish appearance, as I see it stretching
along. They have cut out the thickest of it, and they
will not find as much in the direction they are going.
They have missed one large branch of the vein where
the ore is quite thick. They are coming to where the
vein separates into two branches, neither of them as
238 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
wide as half the vein they have gone through. The
metal is not copper, and I do not think it is iron. It
causes a pain down my back. I see a gentleman and
lady in the mine examining it."
Having in previous examinations seen copper only
in the native or metallic condition, she did not recog-
nize the greenish yellow ore as being copper.
EXPERIMBNT XCIX.
Lead ore from near Galena.
Mrs. Denton. Specimen seen.
" I seem to be standing with my face to the west.
Behind me is a large excavation, at one end of which I
stand, as if the earth, for some distance and to a con-
siderable depth, had been removed ; I cannot tell how •
deep nor how far in extent behind me.
" Before me, and extending to my right and left, or
rather N. N. East and S. S. West, for a long way, is a
vein of metal resembling in all respects, as far as I
can judge, this piece of lead. I should think large
blocks as pure as this might be removed without diffi-
culty. It does not, however, look as I expected to
find it ; for, instead of being in one continuous solid
mass, it appears separated by dust, or something simi-
lar, into blocks of irregular shape, not thrown care-
lessly together, but closely packed, the interstices
being filled with sand or dust. If the appearance in-
dicates the amount, there must be thousands of tons as
pure as this. But the most inconsistent feature seems
to be its nearness to this excavation, and, at the same
time, its undisturbed appearance. Not a grain of it
seems to have been touched; it rests in perfect quiet."
THE FIERY OCEAX. 239
At the time when this examination was made, nearly
four years ago, Mrs. D. had never seen a mine of any
iescription, nor had I visited any of the lead mines of
this country ; and I was not aware, until my visit to
the lead region of the Northwest, of the remarkable
igreement between her description and the actual ap-
pearance of the large lead deposits throughout that
region. The galena is found in irregular blocks, not
thrown carelessly together, but closely packed, the
interstices being filled with clay or ochreous dust.
EXPERIMENT C,
If the psychometer can go down and describe the
interior of the earth for thousands of feet below the
surface, why not pass through the earth's, crust and
visit the great fiery ocean, whose waves no human
eye has ever beheld? For this purpose a specimen
from some deep mine would, I thought, be favorable,
and accordingly a piece of copper ore from the CliflF
Mine, Lake Superior, was chosen.
Mrs. Cridge.
'* I am in the mine now, from which this came. It
is a rich mine, containing much copper. There are
several branches from the main one, but none that I
see as large as it." (Go down as far as you can.) "It
is not very pleasant going down, yet I can go a long
way. I go down, and then return ; and thus keep flit-
ting back and forward." (Pause.)
" I went down an immense distance, passing rock af-
ter rock, till it seemed all light from the material
around me. It was not light, however, but I was sur-
rounded with rock as white as snow, and sparkling.
240 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
" Now I am below it ; it is dark, dark again. T
should think I am now three or four miles down.
What metal I see ! yellow metal ; it is bright as gold.
It 18 gold. It seems very dense, and is many yards
thick. It seems half a mile across, and looks to me as
if it had once been a lake of gold. This lake is con-
cave in the centre, so that it forms an immense golden
amphitheatre. A? the gold has cooled and sunk, it has
left a considerable space between it and the roof, and
in that space all is dark.
" I go down again in the centre of that amphithea-
tre. There must have been an opening here once, for
I go by a circuitous route. I feel the heat ; it seems
to take my breath. Every now and then I obtain
glimpses of flames, as if they came up thus at one
time. All is dark, dark again; what an Egyptian night
this is !
" I see a faint dawn, becoming eveiy moment bright-
er and brighter.
" Now, I am standing on the shore of an ocean of
still fire. The stillness that hangs over it seems never
to have been broken.
" It does move, though ; it ebbs and flows like the
ocean. I feel much safer than I^ should have thought
possible. There is a space, strange to say, between
this ocean and the superincumbent mass, and in its
heavings to and fro it is depositing rock all the time.
" It is not always calm here ; there are storms at
times, when it surges and dashes in fury. This is hell
indeed ! nothing wanting but the devils."
That the earth was once a molten mass of matter, is
now almost universally believed by those who have
AMETHYSTINE QUARTZ. 241
made geology a matter of study. Its hot springs, vol-
canoes, and other phenomena, indicate that its inte-
rior is in a highly heated state at the present time ;
and there is no doubt that a condition of things exists
there very similar to that so graphically described by
my sister. I have tried to induce other psychometers
to make a similar journey. As far as they went, their
descriptions agreed with the one given ; but their ter-
ror was too great to allow them to reach the goal.
EXPERIMENT CI.
Amethystine quartz.
Mrs. Denton.
" I see a mound, covered with tall grass and flowers;
there are three terraces on the sides. At a little dis-
4^nce there is a marsh, in which tall reeds and grasses
grow, that have a straggling appearance. At a dis-
tance, I see a few very pretty low trees, and a stream."
(See what is under the surface.) "I do not know
where I am, but I see metal ; it seems loose, as if in
Band. It is yellow, and there is a good deal of it, but
it is in small pieces, like scattered drops ; pretty close
together in some places, however. I think it is gold ;
indeed, I feel sure of it. What a tremendous amount I
The sand containing it seems to lie in three streams,
and, at some distance south, I see another stream con-
taining gold, but the pieces are more scaly, and lie
nearer the surface."
At the time when this examination was made, I was
not aware that gold had been found in the neighbor-
hood ; but have since learned that it is obtained within
a few miles of the place where the specimen was
21
242 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
found, though in nothing like the abundance that this
psychometric experiment indicates.
EXPERIMENT CH.
A few days afterward I gave the specimen to my
sister for examination, she knowing nothing of it.
" I see mountains away off, but it is a plain where I
am. I see a lot of trees, that look like palms. This
must be a torrid region. I can see a road that seems
to have been made.
"There are rocks below, though it looks sandy
above. I see gold in great quantities, very near the
surface, too. There is a good deal among the sand,
that could be got at very easily."
It would be very strange if these independent ob-
servers, with no such idea in their minds, should see
what had no existence.
EXPERIMENT cm.
About six months afterward I broke the specimen,
and gave a small piece of it, from the centre, to Mrs.
Denton; and though what was seen differed very
widely from that of the previous examination, it does
but confirm the truth of its most essential feature.
" I see a mass of softish material, about the color of
flame ; there are openings in it of various sizes, and at
unequal distances. As the mass slowly moves, steam
arises from these openings, or what seems like steam
to me, and the openings change their shape with the
motion of the mass, but do not close. The surface is
occasionally a little disturbed, but there is a feeling of
rest and quiet connected with it.
AMETHYSTINE QUARTZ. 243
" Now I see it hard, and it alternates between a hard
and soft condition several times. Some of the openings
gradually fill up. I see a body of rock, with long rows
of nodules of harder rock in it." (How were they
produced?) "Very slowly. I can see how it was
done, but it is very difficult to describe.
" As I watch, there is a terrible convulsion or explo-
fiion, and the rocks are thrown, with most tremendous
force, into great confusion. Huge caverns are formed
deep underground. Again all is still, and I observe
dark gray rocks behind me, and in front, beautiful
rocks, that are almost transparent. Now, there is
another grand convulsion. I stand where all is calm,
but in front of me, miles of the massive rock are
moved along. It looks as if there was rock enough to
Uaake a world of. Again all is calm.
" Now, I see metal ejected from below, a great deal
of it. I think it is gold. There is little comes up,
however, compared with the amount below. . Much
tsent up, settles down again. One large rock drops
Xniles into a profound cavern.''
The interior of a specimen gives most readily its
early history. On the exterior this is generally ob-
scured by the impressions more recently received. In
this case, she seems to have gone back to the time
when the country was in a condition of intense igne-
ous activity, and the precious metals were vomited to
the surface from their grand reservoirs in the interior.
We obtain a glimpse of the way in which precious
stones are formed; by openings in the rock slowly
filled, probably by segregation from the surrounding
rocks, till amethyst, agate, and the more precious ruby,
244 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
emerald, and diamond, are, during long ages, collected
into nodular or crystalline bodies.
EXPERIMENT CIV.
Gold-bearing quartz from Columbian Reef, New En-
glewood, Victoria, Australia.
Mrs. Denton. Specimen unseen, and nothing known
respecting it.
" I see a rock rising up to the northwest of me. I
am in a road, where there are trees on one side, and
oflF at a little distance the ground seems to rise. This
country has a pleasant atmosphere; I like its influ-
ence. It seems very stiU. There are hills west of
me, extending as far as I can see. One chain of them
comes circling round to where I am. The influence
of the country is inspiring.
"Shall I go under ground?" (Yes.) "I do not
think I can here, but I will try. I obtain the influence
of some kind of metal, but I do not see it. Now I
see a white rock, with yeUow metal in it, in all manner
of shapes. It looks a"S I have seen metal when melted
and thrown into the water. I can see one large, une-
ven mass, that looks as if it had received two or three
twists when soft. It looks like gold. There is one
mass of rock with thin flakes all through it, and another
with the dust distributed through it ; this extends a
long way. There is more gold toward those hills.
The rock seems disturbed here ; they have been dig-
ging, and have come near that large mass, if they have
not obtained it.
" The gold is not in a vein, at least I should not call
it that ; but it leads along for many miles, though there
GOLD, AUSTRALIA. • 245
are several breaks in it, where it seems to have been
cut oflf; and in these places there is no gold at all; so
that a person might readily suppose that they were at
the end of the profitable lead, when it was by no
means the case. Many places around here have been
disturbed. There is another lead off, farther to tlie
south, that has a good deal of gold in it, but I cannot
go to it.
" Toward the hills they would have to dig deeper ;
here, it seems to be quite near the surface.
" The atmosphere of this country is soft and balmy.
There is a good deal of fine, warm, hazy, rich weather,
and it is continuous.
" That part of the lead which they have disturbed
seems quite small ; it is nothing compared with the
undisturbed portion of it. It is narrow where they
have been working, but very much wider near the
hills, though broken and cut off here and there. Quite
near the hills it is one continuous lead, and seems
very rich. In digging here, they have gone in the
wrong direction for getting the greatest amount of
gold, awing, I suppose, to a break or interruption
near, which is quite wide. Beyond that, however, it
continues on, but dips lower and lower the farther it
goes."
I wrote to the gentleman from whom I received the
specimen, and sent this description, requesting him to
let me know whether it was correct as far as he knew.
I have not heard from him, but have little doubt of its
accuracy, from my general knowledge of the aurifer-
ous deposits of Australia. The specimens obtained at
the Columbian Eeef are the richest gold specimens I
ever saw.
ai*
246 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
EXPERIMEST CV,
Silver ore from the Washoe mines, California.
Mrs. Denton. For a test I requested her to look for
oil.
" I see coral. Has this been lying near coral ? I
think so, for the appearance of the coral is. shadowy."
(It had been in my pocket for several weeks along
with a piece of oil-bearing coral ; both, however,
wrapped in paper.)
" I see eight or nine layers of rock, with the edges
towards me ; there is a thin, dark layer between every
•one. There is a curved, open place in them that
seems to have been dug out.
" I am away oflf now. There is gas here. It seems
as if it would suflFocate me. The gas is thick, of a
purple color, with an orange tint at the edges. It
must be different from oil gas ; there is some metal
with it. I cannot see anything, for gas. Do you wish
mo to look for oil ? There does not seem to be any oil
about it?" (Told her what it was.) " There is a great
deal of ore there, but I do not think they have found
the richest place yet. Standing with mj face to the
southwest, to the left there is a vein of ore like this
specimen; but to the right there is one with pure silver
in it in masses."
I am not acquainted with the Washoe region, so
cannot speak of the correctness of this, beyond its gen-
eral accuracy, which all can see.
EXPERIMENT CVI.
When travelling through the lead region of Wiscon-
sin, Mrs. Denton indicated a spot as being very rich
LEAD, WISCONSIN. 247
in lead ore, where a " sucker hole " had been dug for
a few feet, in search of lead, and then abandoned. I
brought from the place a piece of chert, resolved to
test it at some future time.
Let it be remembered that the specimen was not
seen by the psychometer, nor had she any knowledge
of it whatever.
" There is an immense amount of lead ore here. I
see a vein with tiff,* much lead, and a little ochre, in a
compact rock. Higher up there is a good deal of lead,
but in no crevice; it is in blocks, and looks so like
's place, on that hill by the timber^ that I cannot
trust myself to speak of it. This is a rich place, and
does not seem to have been disturbed much,, if any.
The vein seems a good deal deeper than the other part.
The lead extends over a large territory ; I can see it
in a great many places."
This description agreed precisely with that given
by her when we were at the spot. Lead has been ob-
tained in considerable abundance within a quarter of a
mile,
EXPERIMENT CVU.
A month afterward I broke a small fragment from
the same specimen, for a farther trial. As before,
nothing was known of it.
" I seem to be in a mine, as near as I can tell. I
cannot tell whether it has been worked where I am or
not. There has been digging here. I can see lead,
however, that does not seem to have been touched.
They do not seem to have got to it. I feel positive
* A term used by the miners for carbonate of lime.
248 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
they have not got down to the lead ; it is undisturbed
and there is a great deal of it. It does not seem to be
very far to it. They could not go very deep without
finding it. It lies in large slabs or blocks.
" I know where I am, now that I am on the surface.
I am at 's place.'' (Designating the same place
as in her previous description.) "The whole lead
region seems spread like a map before me. I view it
for miles. The most lead lies north of where this
came from. There is a perfect mountain of lead north;
rising somewhere near the surface, and dipping toward
the east. The lead in other places seems to be in
drops compared with this. There is, however, a good
deal where this came from, and I am sure it came from
's place."
EXPERIMENT CVUI,
When at Mineral Point, we examined a number of
specimens connected with the lead mines of that re-
gion, nor did Mrs. Denton know that copper was found
in that part of the country. Having obtained a speci-
men of rock entirely free from ore, from the copper
mine, about two miles east of the town, I gave it to
her for a trial, she supposing it to be connected with
some lead mines in the vicinity.
" It does not look like lead here. I see rock with
metal in it that looks like silver." (Some of the sul-
phurets obtained from the mine have that appearance.)
" It is not disposed like lead ; it is in small pieces a few
inches long ; not thick like lead. I see a crevice now.
There is a good deal of ore, mixed with earthy matter,
scattered through it; it is not pure like lead. The
GOLD, pike's peak. 249
crevice seems to have a northwestern direction. I see
a place where another crevice joins, and they both
widen, making quite a large opening where there is a
great deal of ore. One of the^ walls of the crevice is
split into a number of columns, that are so even they
have quite an artificial appearance. The interstices
between them are filled with ore.
" There is something else here. I can taste it. It
is copper. There is a vein of it mixed with other
material a little way from the crevice, or else it is the
same crevice a little farther on. It is not alone ; there
seems to be silver with it, though it may not be ; it is
white and bright. There are several small veins within
a short distance of each other.
" Deep down I see a great cave that has a brilliant
appearance; it glistens all over, for it is lined with
crystals, some of them large. There is a purple vapor
in it."
This mine has never paid for working, and probably
never will. There is a fissure in the limestone, in
some places nearly twenty feet wide, that has been
"traced for several hundred yards. In this, sulphuret
^nd carbonate of copper are very sparingly distributed
i:hrough clay and rock.
EXPERIMENT CIX,
Piece of quartz from a gold mine in the Pike's Peak
mining region, obtained of Mr. Henry, Peru, Illinois.
Mrs. Denton did not see the specimen, and had not the
most distant conception of the locaUty from which it
was obtained.
" THis is unlike any place I ever saw before. I am
250 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
between rocks that are high up; it is a magnificent
place. I can see a long way down a deep valley to
a turning. I see metal. The specimen takes me away
to some distant country. They have been excavating
here for some purpose. I notice one place where the
water has been made to run into an artificial channel.
" I wonder if that can be gold I see. It certainly
looks like it. There is a good deal of it at that turn-
ing, farther in the rock however. There is a little
where this was found, but not much ; there is more in
several places around. The gold is contained in seams
in the rock generally, but in some places I see it withr
out. The rocks are damp and cold where I am now.
There is a place in the distance where the gold shines
in the rock like stars. It is well calculated to disap-
point the miners, it lies so scattering. There is very
little continuity about it."
Those who are acquainted with the gold region of
Pike's Peak will recognize the accuracy of some por-
tions of this description at least.
EXPERiMEirr ex.
When visiting McChesney's cabinet in Chicago, I
obtained several pieces of silicified wood. Some time
afterward I thought I should like to know the condi-
tion of our planet during the time of its petrifaction,
and gave one of the smaller pieces to Mrs. Denton for
examination, not remembering at the time where it
was obtained. She said, —
"It afiects my face and eyes. I am underground,
in a place open here and there ; it looks like a large
open crevice. I see metal and most beautiful rock. I
ACTON COPPER MINE. 251
Btand with my face to the northwest. Forward of me
is an open space with rock scattered here and there.
The beautiful rock extends a good way to the left,
with metal distributed among it. It seems to be a
kind of vein, to the left, rich in metal and continuous
for some distance. I see now and then a bright yel-
low substance that seems like gold ; if gold, it is in
great quantities. There are several metals here how-
ever; there is lead in large masses by itself, and a
good deal of sulphuret of iron. OS at my left, there
is a massive piece of gold, and a good deal of gold
dust distributed through the rock in the vein. Lead,
however, would be a better name for it than vein, for
it is wide and open almost like a cave."
I thought this strange; for of gold or metals con-
nected with the specimen I had never dreamed ; but
on examining it I discovered a label marked, "near
Gregory's Diggings, P. Peak." Here was the explana-
tion then : gold, apparent^ possessing superior attrac-
tive force psychometrically, as it does normally, had
drawn the psychometer to its sphere ; and hence this
description, probably, of some unexplored gold lead
near Gregory's Diggings.
EJ^ERIMENT CXI.
Piece of ore from the copper mine at Acton, Canada
East.
Mrs. Denton. Specimen unseen, and nothing known
by her respecting it. No ores had been examined for
several months.
" The first thing I see is a group of objects in water,
not well defined. Shall I notice them ? " (No.)
252 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
" I see something in spots that is very bright. Now
I see a rock jutting out, and under it I see the same
bright appearance. I see something artificial; it is
heavy at the bottom, and runs up high ; there seems
to be a wheel there. I do not know but I am in a
mine. I had a glimpse of a ladder. I am under-
ground ; I think I am in a mine. There is an artificial
light, I think a candle. I cannot yet tell what kind of
a mine it is. The material has not the purity of gold
about it. There seem to be two kinds of metal here.
I do not see both, but I see one and feel the influence
of the other, though it may be at some distance.
"There is a bluish, purplish vapor that rises and pro-
duces a feeling of suffocation. I think this must be
copper; but there is something else. The vapor seems
poisonous ; it is this which makes me think it is cop-
per. This is a copper mine ; but it is not like the cop-
per mines of Lake Superior; it is differently arranged.
There is a great deal of copper here, I think, but I am
only where they have disturbed it. I could not be
induced to work in such a mine, it seems so poisonous.
(There seems to bo gas with that vapor.) This mine
must have yielded well ; for, though the bodies of ore
are not as large as I have seen them, they are thickly
distributed. There seems to be a pit dug at one
place. They do not seem to have taken out all the
ore, even where it is open. There are some large
bodies, mixed with yellow sulphuret, that have not
been touched yet. I see a mass as long as this room
is high. It is very jagged, and has an average thick-
ness of five or six feet. It seems to lie to the north-
east of the part that has been worked. Some of the
ACTON COPPER MINE. 253
ore is blue, some purplish, and some has a green tinge.
1 do not seem to.be far underground anywhere. The
excavation here seems large. Ore is all scattered
through the rock, and it seems much easier to obtain
than in the Lake Superior region."
I read this description to two mining engineers who
were familiar with the Acton mines, and they both
agreed that it was a very accurate description. One
of them excepted the statement about the ladder that
was seen, and the other, the rising vapors. Ladders
have doubtless been used in the vicinity; and in refer-
ence to the vapors, Mrs. D. did not mean to indicate
that they were rising at the present time ; she merely
received the impression of the long past, when from
the interior came the dense vapors whose sublimation
probably gave rise to these immense cupriferous de-
posits.
Since writing the above, I have visited the Acton
mine ; and one of the first things I saw was a large
ladder against the wall of rock, and a miner upon it
drilling for a blast. I consider the description given
a very correct one ; and when it is remembered that
Mrs. D. did not know that the specimen she tried was
an ore at all, much less a copper ore, it must be re-
garded as truly wonderful. I present the facts as
they occurred ; certainly none the less worthy of con-
gideration because they are remarkable.
How far psychometry can be practically employed
in developing mines, remains yet to be tested. The
greatest difficulty seems to be, in precisely determin-
ing the depth at which deposits lie. A hundred feet
more or less are but a trifle to the psychometer,
22
254 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
whereas to the miner, who has to drive through them,
they involve considerable time and expense. In time
all difficulty in this direction will be outgrown, I have
no doubt, and the world be greatly advanced by the
discovery of its rich mineral deposits.
• CHAPTER V.
BEMARKABLE PHENOMENA EXPLAINED,
Prom a consideration of the statements made in this
volume, it is but reasonable to suppose that phenom-
ena springing from the accidental application of the
psychometric faculty must have been frequently mani-
fested in the history of the world. If, by placing
specimens of various kinds in the hands or on the
foreheads of sensitive individuals, they can behold
pictures connected with the history of those speci-
mens and perceive sensations that have been treas-
ured up in them, we may naturally suppose, among the
many sensitive persons in the world, that some must
have had such pictures presented to them and such
sensations produced, though they may have been alto-
gether unconscious of the source from which they
emanated. This supposition is borne out by many
facts that I have met with in reading, since we com-
menced the investigation of this subject.
Under the head of " Spectral Illusions," Dr. Aber-
crombie gives the following : — "A gentleman of
high mental endowments, now upwards of eighty
years of age, of a spare habit, and enjoying uninter-
rupted health, has been for eleven years liable to al-
most daily visitations from spectral figures. They in
general present human countenances ; the head and
255
256 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
the body are distinctly defined ; the lower parts are,
for the most part, lost in a kind of cloud. The figures
arc various, but he recognizes the same countenances
repeated from time to time, particularly of late years,
that of an elderly woman, with a peculiarly arch and
playful expression, and a dazzling brilliancy of eye,
who seems just ready to speak to him. They appear
also in various dresses, such as that of the age of
Louis XIV. ; the costume of ancient Rome ; that of the
modem Turks and Greeks ; but more frequently, of
late, as in the case of this female now mentioned, in
an old-fashioned Scottish plaid of Tartan, drawn up and
brought forward over the head, and then crossed be-
low the chin, as the plaid was worn by aged women in
his younger days. He can seldom recognize among
the spectres any figure or countenance which he re-
members to have seen ; but his own face has been pre-
sented to him, gradually undergoing the change from
youth to manhood, and from manhood to old age." *
I recognize this case at once as one in which psy-
chometric influences, probably proceeding from arti-
cles in the house in which the gentleman lived, opera-
ting upon a sensitive organization, made sensitive by
age, as others are by sickness, caused him to see the
images of the persons from whom the influences origi-
nally proceeded ; in the same manner as psychometers
see the animals whose influence is contained in the
fossils with which they come in contacts It is very
common for psychometers to see a portion of a body
only, the rest being " lost in a kind of cloud," as in
the case of this gentleman's apparitions. Thq individ-
* Abercrombie's Intellectual Powers, p. 255.
BEMARKABLE PHENOMENA EXPLAINED. 257
uals appearing to him wore the dresses of the time
when they existed; the pictures of dresses being im-
pressed on objects as readily as those of persons, and
just as capable of psychometric vision. The elderly
woman, so frequently seen, may have been a former oc-
cupant of the house in which the gentleman resided,
and its very walls may have been saturated with her
influence. Dr. Abercrombie, practising in Edinburgh,
his patient must have lived there; and this former
occupant, supposing this to be the true explanation,
must have been a Scotch lady ; and hence the proba-
bility of her wearing the " old-fashioned Scottish plaid
of Tartan, drawn up and brought forward over the
head, and then crossed below the chin, as the plaid
was worn by aged women in his younger days." He
did not recognize among the spectres the countenan-
ces of those that he had seen, because these pictures
did not proceed from his own brain originally, but
from the objects surrounding him; and hence those
objects having taken in his influence during his life-
time, he saw himself in the various appearances that
he presented " from youth to manhood, and from man-
hood to old age."
These anomalous facts, that seem to forbid all ex-
planation, and set at defiance all law, will be found,
like the cometary wanderers in space, to have their
orbit, too; and every waver in their track will be
. sliown to be produced by the operation of some law,
though its discovery may remain to reward future ex-
plorers in this great ocean, where the dim outline of
grand continents may be faintly seen on the distant
horizon.
22*
258 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
"Monsieur Andral, in his youth, saw in La Pitie the
putrid body of a cliild, covered with larvae, and during
the next morning the spectre of this corpse, lying on
his table, was as perfect as reality." * In a statement
of this, that I have met with in some other work, it is
said that this was visible to him for a quarter of an
hour. He saw nothing of it until he came to the ta-
ble on which the child had lain, and then its image was
at once presented to him; its influence proceeding
from that table bringing up the image before him;
for if it had been the image of the child impressed
upon the retina of the eye or the brain, he would
doubtless have seen it at a distance from the spot as
readily as when there.
Dr. Damon, of Coaticook, Canada East, informed me
that when a young man, attending medical college, he
had a fit of illness ; and, when confined in his cham-
ber, he saw the lecture-room and all the students, and
heard every word of lectures that he had previously
heard, though an hour long. He also saw books that
ho had read, and was able to read page after page, the
words on which were so plainly visible, that he noticed
even the typographical errors. This condition contin-
ued for about two weeks.
Thousands of such experiences might have been re-
corded, if a feeling of shame had not prevented par-
tics to whom they occurred from making them public.
Many persons who have made public statements of
what they have thus seen, have been rewarded for
their candor by being charitably supposed insane, or
uncharitably suspected of being drunk.
* Philosophy of Mystery, by Dendy, p. 04.
BEMARKABLE PHENOMENA EXPLAINED. 259
" The late Lieutenani>General Robertson, of Lawers,
who served during the whole of the American war,
brought home with him, at its termination, a negro
who went by the name of Black Tom, and who contin-
ued in his service. The room appropriated to the use
of this man in the General's town residence (I speak
of Edinburgh) was on the ground floor ; and he was
heard frequently to complain that he could not rest in
it, for that every night the figure of a headless lady,
with a child in her arms, rose out of the hearth and
frightened him dreadfully. Of course nobody believed
this story, and it was supposed to be the dream of in-
toxication, as Tom was not remarkable for sobriety ;
but, strange to say, when the old mansion was pulled
down to build Gillespie's hospital, which stands on its
site, there was found under the hearthstone, in that
apartment, a box containing the body of a female, from
which the head had been severed ; and beneath her lay
the remains of an infant, wrapped in a pillow-case
trimmed with lace. She appeared, poor lady, to have
been cut off in the ' blossom of her sins,' for she was
dressed, and her scissors were yet hanging by a rib-
bon to her side, and her thimble was also in the box,
having apparently fallen from her shrivelled finger." *
Through the hearthstone came the influence of
mother and baby, and their images appeared to the
terrified Tom, who appears to have been the natural
possessor of considerable psychometric power.
The case of Nicolai, the bookseller and author, of
Berlin, has excited more attention perhaps than any
other of this kind; and, though there are some difficid-
*Mr8. Crowe's Night Side of Nature, p. 411.
260 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
tics in it, is I thiidc explicable on the same principles.
His narrative was read before the Academy of Sci-
ence, at Berlin, in 1799, and its substance is thus
given by Mayo : — " Nicolai had met with some family
troubles that much disturbed him. Then, on the first
of January, 1791, there stood before him, at the dis-
tance of ten paces, the ghost of his eldest son. He
pointed at it, directing his wife to look. She saw it
not, and tried to convince Nicolai that it was an illu-
sion. In a quarter of an hour it vanished. In the af-
ternoon, at four o'clock, it came again. Nicolai was
alone. He went to his wife's room, the ghost followed
him. About six other apparitions joined the first, and
they walked about among each other. After some
days, the apparition of his son stayed away ; but its
place was filled with the figures of a number of per-
sons, some known, some unknown to Nicolai, — some
of dead, others of living persons. The known ones
represented distant acquaintances only. The figures
of none of Nicolai's habitual friends were there. The
appearances were almost always human ; occasionally
a man on horseback, and birds and dogs would pre-
sent themselves. The apparitions came mostly after
dinner, at the commencement of digestion ; they were
just like real persons, the coloring a thought fainter.
The apparitions were equally distinct whether Nicolai
was at home or in society, in the dark as by day ; in
his own house, or those of others; but in the lat-
ter case they were less frequent, and they very sel-
dom made their appearance in the streets. During
the first eight days they seemed to take very little no-
tice of one another, but walked about like people at a
BEMARKABLE PHENOMENA EXPLAINED. 261
feir, only here and there communing with each other.
They took no notice of Nicolai, or of the remarks he ad-
dressed regarding them to his wife and physician. No
effort of his would dismiss them, or bring an absent
one back. When he shut his eyes they sometimes dis-
appeared, sometimes remained; when he opened his
eyes they were there as before. After a week they
became more numerous, and began to converse. They
conversed with one another first, and then addressed
him. Their remarks were short and unconnected, but
sensible and civil. His acquaintances inquired after
his health, and expressed sympathy with him, and
spoke in terms comforting him. The apparitions were
most conversible when he was alone ; nevertheless,
they mingled in the conversation when others were
by, and their voices had the same sound as those of
real persons. The illusion went on thus from the 24th
of February to the 20th of April ; so that Nicolai, who
was now in good bodily health, had time to become tran-
quilUzed about the nature of his visitors, aud observe
them at his ease." The doctors now prescribed leech-
es ; and the figures became fainter and fainter, as he
lost blood, until at length they became invisible, and
Nicolai saw them no more.*
I have no hesitation whatever in referring the vis-
ions and sounds perceived by Nicolai to the operation
of the very same power by which, from archeological
specimens and fossil remains, the psychometer sees the
apparitions of beings, and hears sounds apparently
made by them. At first, the psychometric power in
him does not seem to have been so fully developed as
* Maya's Popular Superstitions, p. 55.
2G2 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
it subsequently became, and he only sees the appear-
ance of his deceased eldest son, toward whom his
thoughts during this period of trouble were doubtless
frequently directed, and whose image was so vividly
impressed upon his brain. As this power increases,
his vision is no longer confined to objects previously
impressed upon his brain, but the influences proceed-
ing from surrounding objects call up the images of per-
sons kno^fn and unknown, dead and alive, that fill the
place. Nicolai was at this time sensitive enough to
see the great picture gallery, or a portion of it at least,
where hangs the likeness of all that light ever beheld ;
and he at length becomes sufficiently sensitive to hear,
issuing from the great store-house of sounds, the con-
doling words which his friends had uttered, as faith-
fully registered and repeated to his interior ear.
That this is the true explanation of this remarkable
phenomena, is strengthened by the fact that, thirteen
years previous to this, visions had presented themselves
to his gaze such as psychometers are well conversant
with. Thus he writes: — "In the year 1778, I was
afflicted with a bilious fever, which at times, though
seldom, grew go high as to produce delirium. Every
day, toward evening, the fever came on, and, if I hap-
pened to shut my eyes at that time, I could perceive
the cold fit of the fever was beginning, even before
the sensation of cold was observable. This I knew
by the distinct appearance of colored pictures, of less
than half their natural size, which looked as in frames.
They were a set of landscapes, composed of rocks,
trees, and other objects. If I kept my eyes shut, ev-
ery minute produced some change in the representa-
REMARKABLE PHENOMENA EXPLAINED. 263
tion ; some figures vanished, and some appeared ; but
if I opened my eyes all was gone ; if I shut them I
had a different landscape. In the cold fit of the fever
I sometimes opened and shut my eyes every second,
for the purpose of observation, and every time a dif-
ferent picture appeared, replete with various objects,
and which had not the slightest resemblance to those
that appeared before. These pictures presented them-
selves, without interruption, as long as the cold fit of
the fever lasted. They became fainter as soon as I be-
gan to grow warm ; and when I was perfectly so, all were
gone. When the cold fit of the fever was entirely
past, no more pictures appeared ; but if, on the next
day, I could again see pictures when my eyes were
shut, it was a certain sign that the cold fit was coming
on."*
Nicolai's clothing, or articles contained in his pock-
ets, or objects in his room, may have furnished the pic-
tures ; the fever producing the condition in him neces-
sary to the observance of them.
"Then we have the case of Professor Hitchcock,
detailed by himself in the ' New Englander,' and
which is one of the most striking on record. He
had," during a fit of sickness, " day after day, visions
of strange landscapes spread out before him, — moun-
tain and lake and forest, — vast rocks, strata upon
strata, piled to the clouds, — the panorama of a world
shattered and upheaved, disclosing the grim secrets
of creation, the unshapely and monstrous rudiments of
organic being." f
•Natural History of Creation, T. Lindley Kemp, M. D., p. 43;
t Dream Land and Ghost Land, by E. P. Hood.
264 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
If sufficiently sensitive, this was no wonder, when
he was handling from day to day the rocks that con-
tained these landscapes, and was constantly surrounded
by them. In his " Religion of Geology," speaking of
the influence of light upon bodies, and the formation
of pictures upon them by means of it, he says : —
" It seems then that this photographic influence per-
vades all nature ; nor can we say where it stops. We
do not know but it may imprint upon the world around
us our features, as they are modified by various pas-
sions, and thus fill nature with daguerreotype impres-
sions of all our actions that are performed in daylight.
It may be, too, that there are tests by which nature
more skilfully than any human photographist can bring
out and fix these poilraits, so that acuter senses than
ours shall see them as on a great canvas, spread over
the material universe. Perhaps, too, they may never
fade from that canvas, but become specimens in the
great picture gallery of eternity."
Beautiful and true I This conjecture, which was
probably suggested by his own experience, accords
with many of the facts presented in this volume ; some
of which go farther, however, than the professor's
imagination dared to go, vigorous as was its flight.
Thus do the realities of nature constantly outstrip the
halting imagination of man.
A son of Professor Hitchcock, Professor Charles H.
Hitchcock, State Geologist of Maine, informed me that,
during a recent fit of sickness, his father saw spread
before him large beds of sandstone, covered with
tracks, such as are found in the Connecticut Valley ;
and that these tracks enabled him to clear up some
BEHABKABLE PHENOMENA EXPLAINED. 265
doubtful points in reference to them, which he had
been unable to do by any other means.
As I write this, I am reminded of a vision that Mrs.
Denton had while examining a specimen of sandstone
from the Connecticut Valley, she knowing its nature :
" I see the whole surface of the rock exposed for
acres. There are many footprints, of diflferent sizes,
some larger than any that I have seen. In two places
I see large jaws and teeth in the rock ; they are semi-
circular, and the teeth flattish and broad. In one place
I see a track go round, then it comes to the edge, and
I see no farther.
"I do not believe they have opened the richest place
yet. There seems a large collection of fossils in one
place ; I am sure there are bones.
" Now I see a great many feet and ancles. The feet
are divided, and the leg is roundish ; it has a chubby
look, quite unlike that of a fbwl."
It is to be hoped that some of these fossils will be
found, and the nature of the animals that made the
tracks be determined to the satisfaction of all.
Where there is one who possesses the power of see-
ing psychometrically, there are probably three who
possess the power of feeling. For years I have sought
to develop in myself the power to see the pictures
that all objects contain, but in vain ; yet, I am able to
feel influences proceeding from substances that had
once belonged to organic bodies, and can at times, by
this means, from a portion of bono describe the kind
of animal to which it originally belonged. In the fol-
lowing case we have, I think, the result of the uncon-
scious exercise of this power :
28
266 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
"In the town of North Walsham, Norfolk, 1788, the
Fair Penitent was performed. In the last act, where
Caliste lays her liand on the skull, a Mrs. Berry, who
played the part, was seized with an involuntary shud-
dering and fell on the stage. During the night her
illness continued; but the following day, when suffi-
ciently recovered to converse, she sent for the stage-
keeper and anxiously inqiiired where he procured the
skull. He replied, from the sexton, who informed him
it was the skull of one Norris, a player, who, twelve
years before, was buried in the graveyard. That
same Norris was her first husband. She died in six
weeks."
Possessed of considerable psychometric power, she
recognized the influence proceedifig from the skull,
and the recognition produced such a terrible shock
that her death was the consequence.
Were I disposed to incf ease the size of this book, I
might give many other instances illustrating the uniur
tentional use of the psychometric faculty. All persons
doubtless possess and exercise it more or less, and, by
proper cultivation, many might make it of the great-
est benefit to themselves and others.
CHAPTER VI.
UTILITY OF P8TCB0METBT.
To the geologist psychometry will be of incalculable
benefit. There are wide realms of the past that he
has never trod ; others, that he has visited, are so en-
shrouded in gloom that his acquaintance with them is
extremely limited. How little we know of the land
fauna and flora during the Cretaceous period. Trees
must have flourished, reptiles must have crawled, and
beasts roamed over the surfiice of the dry land, when
the chalk beds of Europe were being deposited in tlio
depths of the ocean, the cream-colored limestones of
Texas, and the marls and greensands of the Atlantic
States. Yet of these we know hardly anything ; the
river deltas of that period are yet to be found, and
their fossil contents exhumed ; and even when that is
done, the record will be very incomplete. The ad-
vanced psychometer can take a Cretaceous fossil, and,
by means of it, not only obtain the forms of marine
animals and plants that lived during this period, but,
\^thout much diflSculty, those also of the land; and
thus fill up the great hiatus that at present exists.
What do we know of the commencement of life?
True, the Oldhamia has been found by the government
surveyors in Ireland, below all other fossil remains,
and corals in the Taconic formation of the United
267
268 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
States have been discovered below all other organic
forms; but it is probable that the traces of life's begin-
ning lie far below these ; not in fossils to be seen, but
in influences that the psychometer alone can detect.
Forms too small, too soft, or too fragile to leave visible
impress upon the rocks, shall be distinguished and
described, and vast ages of apparent barrenness be
peopled with busy life.
The imperfection of the geological record, especially
as a record of organized existences, must be evident
from an examination of those parts of the earth where
formations are now being deposited and organic re*
mains buried. This age will be geologically represented
in the future by those beds that are now forming at the
mouths of rivers, such as the Mississippi, the Ganges,
and the Nile ; by beds of tufa, in the neighborhood of
calcareous springs ; by beds of peat, as in some parts
of Ireland, New York, and Massachusetts ; by accumu-
lations of vegetable remains, as in the Dismal Swamp ;
by coral reefs, such as are now forming in the Pacific
Ocean ; and by volcanic products similar to the beds
near Vesuvius, which contain the works and remains
of man. A million years from this, how large a por-
tion of these formations will be dry land trod by human
beings ? How much of the land thus above the water
will be exposed, so that the beds composing it may be
examined by the geologist? Among the bones ex-
posed in those beds and examined by geologists, what
chance would there be of finding a fossil gorilla ? It
would not be buried in peat beds, for peat is not
formed in countries hot enough for it to exist in. It
would not be found in a coral reef, for it is altogether
UTILITY OF P8YCH0METRY. 269
confined to the land. Almost the only chance of dis-
covering the bones of this animal would be in tufaceous
deposits, or in beds formed at the mouths of some of
the rivers of Western Africa. But how extremely un-
likely it would be for any future geologist to exhume
the bones of an animal that while living eluded the
gaze of naturalists for centuries. So, of course, it
must be with many animals that lived millions of years
ago. What fishes must have existed of which we
have no scale I What reptiles have crawled that have
left no track I Bktd it not be§n for the enduring char-
acter of the dermal skeleton of the ganoids, what should
we have known of the strange fishes of the Devonian
period ? And how many fishes have existed with car-
tilaginous bodies, of which we have no vestige and are
not likely to obtain any I What myriads of beings
must have lived and died whose memorial has per-
ished I Of the more than a hundred reptiles, and
other animals, whose tracks have been found in the
sandstones of the Connecticut Valley, what should we
have known if the shore of the estuary on which they
wandered had not been composed of material fine
enough to retain the impressions made upon it, and
conditions had not been exceedingly favorable for
their preservation ?
The ornithological page of geology is most sadly
deficient. A few suspected fragments from the chalk,
a few more from the London clay and other Tertiary
deposits, are the sum total of our acquisitions. Owing
to their habits, the lightness of their bones, and the
tendency of their dead bodies to fioat on the water,
but few have become fossil, and hence our knowledge
28*
270 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
of them is extremely limited. Where are the birds
that were doubtless the companions of the marsupial
quadrupeds of the Oolite, and probably long preceded
them? Where the water-fowl that skinmied the Cre-
taceous seas and fished in their calcareous waters?
The number of species of birds at the present time is
about five times as great as that of beasts, and their
numerical superiority was probably quite as great dur-
ing the whole of the Tertiary and Secondary periods ;
and, if so, what revelations are yet to be made in refer-
ence to extinct birds I -r revelations that, apparently,
psychometry alone can make. For, imperfect as the
rocks may be in fossils, they are, in my opinion, abso-
lutely perfect in pictorial representations and organic
influences ; and hence every feather of every wing of
every wandering bird has been delineated and may
yet be found. Models of these and of all other ani-
mals will be made, and we shall eventually be able te
view the great organic procession from the monad to
the man. How extravagant I you exclaim. Granted ;
but the extravagance of one generation becomes the
sober reality of the next.
These fossiliferous rocks are a great volume of natu-
ral history, illustrated by plates, — how marvellously
executed I — of all that has issued from the fertile womb
of life. What translators will be needed for centuries
to render this volume into our ordinary language, and
make its pictures visible to ordinary observers I Over
continents, for ages buried in the depths of the ocean,
the psychometer shall wander and view mighty Ama-
zons and Mississippis, on which boat never sailed, flow-
ing from mountains that have long been worn down
UTILITY OP PSYCHOMETRY. 271
«
to fertile plains, and sweeping over wide regions, ten-
anted by stranger monsters than imagination ever con-
ceived.
The geological history of every continent and island
may be obtained, and the minutest detail furnished of
all the changes to which it has been subjected. Cor-
rect maps of the earth will yet be constructed, show-
ing its land and water surface at all periods of its his-
tory. Nay, I do not think we need despair of obtain-
ing eventually the absolute date of the formation of all
the rocks, and the actual period when the various ani-
mals flourished whose fossil remains are found in them.
The heavens are a grand chronometer, over whose
dial the stars slowly move, and cycles are marked as
our clocks mark the hours ; and by the position of the
stars, as seen by psychometers, the periods of all the
great formations may yet be determined, and, in time,
the groups in these formations be gradually worked
out. Rocks that are now regarded as contemporane-
ous, because they contain fossil forms that are identi-
cal, may be found separated by ages ; life having been
retarded on some portions of the globe by unfavorable
conditions, as it has been advanced on other portions
by favorable ones.
Geology is the history of many worlds ; the face of
the earth having been renewed many times. Mountains
have been elevated and degraded, lakes formed and
drained, and life in many forms, on land and in water,
has spread over wide areas, flourished for countless
generations, and then passed away, to give place to
others, in their turn to flourish and decay. A preci-
pice a hundred feet high may contain the tablets on
272 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
«
which are recorded the events that transpired on the
surface of many of these successive worlds ; and the
future psychometers alone can fully understand and
correctly translate these for the benefit of those com-
ing after us ; who shall read more correctly than we
these instructive volumes containing the history of the
past.
To the miner, psychometry gives eyes that see
through granite almost as readily as through glass ;
and he shall trace the courses of veins deeply buried
under drift accumulations as readily as he does the
windings of rivers on the surface.
Frequently, in travelling over the country in the
cars, Mrs. Denton will say to me, there is oil under
liere, or there is lead or copper in this neighborhood ;
and, in many cases, I have afterward verified the state-
ments, though neither of us, apart from psychometrj'',
knew anytfiing respecting these deposits.
For instance : in passing from Richmond to Que-
bec, in January last, as we approached Black River
Station, Mrs. Denton remarked, "There is considerable
copper in this neighborhood." " In what form does it
exist?" I inquired. "Some of it appears to be the
sulphuret ; but there is a good deal of native copper,
resembling that which I have seen in the Lake Supe-
rior region ; it is the first of that kind that I have seen
in Canada. I see it distributed in detached, irregular
masses."
This surprised me very much, for I had, previous
to this, no idea that copper existed in its native form
in the eastern townships, unless in very fine grains,
one specimen of which I had seen, but from a difierent
UTILITY OF PSYCHOMETBY. 273
locality. But what was my surprise, a few days after-
ward, at the dinner-table, to hear one gentleman in-
form another that a piece of native copper had been
found in a gravel bank near Black River. A few days
afterward, Rev. W. L. Thompson, of Stanstead, showed
me a specimen from the same locality.
When properly cultivated, what an advantage psy-
chometry will be to the miner and to the world. Dig-
ging for metals will be as certain as the reaping of the
ripened grain. Mining, at the present time, is a most
hazardous business, more than half the mines worked
never paying expenses ; but it shall not always be.
The vast stores of lead, copper, silver, gold, and pre-
cious stones, that are lying concealed in the dark re-
cesses of the earth, shall be exposed and obtained.
Deep pits need no longer be made to bury the hopes
and the money of the men that dig them ; nor tunnels
made by incredible labor be abandoned when "success is
nearly certain, by men whose future lives are embit-
tered with poverty and disappointment. These things
will become stories of the past, to be repeated no
more in the future. Of the wealth of the earth's inte-
rior, few beyond psychometers who may have exam-
ined it have any idea.
Astronomy will not disdain the assistance of this
power. As new forms of organic being are revealed,
when we go back to the earlier geologic periods, so
new groupings of the stars, new constellations will be
displayed, when the heavens of those early periods
are examined by the piercing gaze of future psychom-
eters. An accurate map of the starry heavens during
the Silurian period may reveal to us many secrets that
/
/ 274 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
we have been unable to discover, from the shortness of
time that has been devoted to intelligent astronomical
observations, and make clearly apparent what is at
present but dimly seen. Why may we not indeed be
able to read the history of the various heavenly bod-
ies, especially those belonging, to the solar system with
which we are so intimately related, — their geological,
their natural, and, perchance, their human history? For
ages their influences have been rayed upon the earth,
for ages they have been relating their stories to their
sister worlds, patiently waiting till the intelligent soul
should come that could understand their revelations.
What books are yet to be written, what histories re-
corded, and what light to be shed on great problems
that have agitated the minds of thinkers for thousands
of years I I have good reason to believe that trained
psychometers will be able to travel from planet to
planet, and read their present condition minutely, and
their past history. It may be asked, How shall we be
able to know whether the statements that are made
are correct or not ? The revelations of one may be
, compared with the revelations of another ; and we
shall thus be able to judge of their correctness, as we
do the statements of astronomers, who see with their
sky-piercing tubes what is invisible to the ordinary
spectator.
To the physiologist and anatomist it presents a mi-
croscope, by which the organs of living animals can be
seen as they perform their varied functions ; the tis-
sues examined, fresh and beautiful, as they are perva-
ded by the vital currents ; disease traced to its lurk-
ing place, and the operation of the appropriate remedy
UTILITY OF PSYCHOMETRY. 275
be watched as the system returns to its equilibrium.
The secret . history of every animal may be ob-
tained, from its birth to its death, and life be made to
reveal its most cherished secrets. The great chain
of organic existence may be traced, link by link, and
the nature of the connection between them be fully
understood.
Psychometry has already been employed in the cure
of diseases ; its principal value having been, hitherto,
in giving a correct diagnosis ; which can readily be
done, in consequence of the sympathy that can be
established between psychometers and the diseased;
and also by means of that clear vision which has been
illustrated in several of our experiments.
I have known persons from letters to give accurate
descriptions of the diseases of the persons who wrote
them, though having no previous knowledge of the
writer. The good that may be accomplished in this
way is incalculable.
The artist will find his field almost infinitely ex-
tended, as the panoramas of the earlier worlds pass
before his eyes. What mountains he shall see in sul-
len grandeur, as just upheaved they stand, unworn by
frosts and rains ! What cataracts pouring over im-
mense precipices, long since worn down and swept
away ! The historical past can be represented by him
with all accuracy of surroundings, feature, and cos-
tume, and we shall no longer be troubled with the lies
on canvas that pass for historical paintings.
Who can estimate the value of psychometry to the
historian? " History," said Voltaire, " is a grand lie ;"
it will be the work of the psychometer to make it a
276 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
grand truth. The biography of all nations is faithfully
recorded somewhere, and all that is needed, I doubt
not, can be obtained. What the soul asks for. Nature,
in her superabundant fulness, is able and willing to
grant. Wo ask to be delivered from the fables in
which the early history of all nations is shrouded, for
light to arise upon the darkness of the past ; and it
shall be done. The history of the early dwellers in
Britain, Prance, Germany, Denmark, and Switzerland
shall be read in the light of this power, and the still
older histories of the early dwellers in Greece, Asia
Minor, Egypt, and India. Man's history on this globe
may possibly extend over millions, instead of merely
over thousands of years, and we may watch every step
of the process by which the brutal savage was eventu-
ally transformed into the man. We shall wander
along the shore of time, and watch the empires as
they rise and fall before us, as rise and fall the waves
of a swelling tide. By the aid of psychometry we
can tread the sands of Egypt, and see the united mul-
titudes as they drag the ponderous stones and heave
the enduring pyramids ; walk the streets of Athens in
the artistic days of Pericles, and behold it in its won-
drous beauty, as adorned by those ancient lovers of
art; or when Socrates drops his thoughts in the mar-
ket-place, like pearls ; or when in academic bowers we
listen to the voice of his noble disciple, Plato; through
the streets of Jerusalem when Solomon sits on the
throne of his glory, and the new temple shines in its
splendor, "the joy of all the earth ; " stand on the Gal-
ilean mountain and hear the peaceful lessons that are
spoken by the Man of Nazareth, and mark the rapt
\
UTILITY OF PSYCHOMETRY. 277
attention of the multitude as they hear the gracious
words that fall from his lips.
The sword that Cromwell used is imbued with his
stern spirit, and is prepared to reveal the secrets of
its master when a worthy listener shall appear. It
is not surprising that relics of Napoleon bring large
sums ; they are the recipients of the actions and even
thoughts of this mighty master of war, and will yet
make known what no biographer can write. What a
tale a chip of the pyramids might tell, or of the stony-
faced Sphinx, that has stared upon a hundred genera-
tions as they marched to their destiny over the sands
before it I Could the tomb of Mahomet be rifled, what
revelations of the private life of the camel-driver it
could give us ! The history of the world has yet to be
written ; these accul-ate, uncorruptible witnesses of the
past shall be heard, and their testimony taken.
The history of the people, so sadly neglected by his-
torians, shall be sought for and found ; for the life of
the meanest plebeian is detailed as accurately as the
deeds of the proud patrician. The gradual advance
of all peoples in language, from the first monosyllabic
grunts, to the polished tongues of Europe ; in art,
from the chipped stone and the rude cave, to the
sculptured marble and the stately palace ; in religion,
from the worship of crawling beetles to the recogni-
tion of the Divine Spirit of the universe, — these, and^
more, will all bo-traced ; and the clouds that now rest
over the histories of all nations shall melt away in the
beams of the rising sun.
There is a practical, every-day side to psychometry
well worthy of consideration. It must be evident to
24
/^
278 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
those who place any faith in the examinations recorded
in this volume, that all bodies, organic bodies more es-
pecially, are transmitting influences continually to sur-
rounding objects^ the tendency of which is to bring
these objects into a similar condition to their own.
We may readily see how valuable this knowledge is,
and how it explains many facts that are constantly pre-
senting themselves, and are dismissed as mysteries.
Radiant forces pass from us continually, as truly as
light proceeds from the stars ; and though they may
be unseen, they are by no means unfelt. " Talk of
the devil, and he will appear," is an ol3 adage, and
made probably in consequence of the vicinity of an
individual directing our attention to him ; his atmos-
phere causing us to think of him, though we perceive
not the reason. Sensitive persons can be influenced
in this way, I am persuaded, at great distances. Hus-
band and wife mutually influence each other, and the
tendency is, though it may fail to secure the object
from the operation of counteracting causes, to bring
both parties to a closer resemblance to each other in
every respect. This has long been noticed, even phys-
ically; long-married and lovingly-united couples in-
crease in outward resemblance as year after year pass-
es away. Mentally, this is notorious, and morally not
less so. Where one is on a decidedly inferior plane
to the other, the degrading tendency felt by the higher
and superior may produce great unhappiness and con-
sequent inharmony ; hence, the necessity of attending
to the intuitive suggestions which may rise in the soul
previous to an alliance on which so much depends, and
in which the interests of so many may be involved.
UTILITY OF PSYCHOMETRY.
To the maiden, who shrinks at the presence
man who wishes to be her life-companion, I say, let no
persuasion of friends, no prospect of wealth, no fear
of want, no urgent entreaties or prayers of a lover, in-
duce you to neglect that small voice, which proceeds
from woman's wisest instructor and best adviser.
When persons are long and very intimately asso-
ciated, the life-power of the one seems to become
linked with that of the other. Persons have been
known to feel a shock caused by the death of a twin
brother, though separated at the time by hundreds of
miles. Some cases of this kind have occurred during
the present war. Long-married people frequently die
within a short time of each other ; their condition re-
minding one of the expression of Judah, in reference to
Jacob and Benjamin, " His life is bound up in the lad's
life."
As the stove parts with its heat to bring all surround-
ing objects into its own heated condition, so we affect
those surrounding us. Not more certainly does a rose
diffuse its fragrance than human beings dispense their
influence wherever they go. We are each surrounded
by an atmosphere, which can .convey to sensitives the
impression of our character and condition. Wherever
the foot touches the ground, the impression of the
man is left upon it, so that even the dog, by means of
it, can track his master hours after he has passed over
the ground ; and persons have been known to trace
murderers in this way over a large extent of country
several days after they had passed.
Not only does a speaker reach his audience by the
sounds that strike the ear, and rays of light that pass
>
^ 280 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
from him to the eye, but by invisible rays that reach
the interior sense ; and enable him, more than by all
else, to charm and captivate them. When a speaker
uses a manuscript, that receives it to a great extent
instead of the audience ; and hence, such lectures are
pronounced cold and insipid; though the language
may be perfect, the ideas all that could be wished, and
the elocution faultless. Something is wanting; we
cannot tell what ; but all feel it. Until a speaker has
established a sympathy between himself and his audi-
ence, his position is far from being agreeable to him-
self, or pleasant to them. Hence, everything that
tends to place a barrier between a speaker and his
audience should be avoided. All boxes, called pulpits,
all desks and tables, are a hindrance to the free com-
munication that ought to take place between them.
It has long been noticed that preachers give much
better sermons in little country schoolhouses than in
fine churches in the city. Tliey are nearer the people ;
there is less obstruction between them, and a true
sympathy is more readily established.
By the connection existing between speaker and
hearer, he can call up in.their minds the feelings exist-
ing in his own. Love, hate, revenge, and even frenzy ;
all these are thus communicated, and each one thus
influenced becomes in turn a centre to radiate these
influences to those around. When the number affected
is large, and the feeling intense, it consumes like a
furnace, and transforms into its own nature whatever
it comes in contact with. The most indifferent specta-
tor sometimes becomes as rabid as any actor, without
being able to assign a reason.
UTILITY OF PSYCHOMETRY. 281
Where an audience is antagonistic to a speaker, if
sensitive, he perceives it ; and unless remarkably posi-
tive, and his positiveness arouses him to unusual ac-
tion, he will be so afifected by it as to lower the tone
of his discourse, or even, as in cases that I have heard
of, be compelled abruptly to close it. Where, on the
contrary, the audience sympathizes with him, he re-
ceives from them as truly as he imparts, and, upborne
by their sympathy, he mounts to regions of philosophy
that unassisted he could never gain, and pours out his
Boul in burning eloquence that startles and thrills him
not less than his hearers.
Is a man religious ? not more truly does the sun
shine, imparting its glory to surrounding objects, than
that man's religious influence passes from him to all
persons and things within its sphere. The house in
which he lives, as well as the house in which he wor-
ships, becomes a religious house ; and the word, thus
applied, is by no means as .inappropriate as some
would have us believe, who see the surface, but not
the interior of things. Brutality and lust go forth in
like manner, impressing and influencing all within their
range. Houses become so imbued with the influence
of the people that live in them that sensitive persons
can feel that influence as soon as they enter ; and if it
is unpleasant, they have a feeling of uneasiness, or
positive unhappiness, as long as they are subject to it.
Many persons feeling this, are entirely unaware of its
origin, and suffer the consequences of their ignorance.
It has long been known that the young and healthy
impart their health and vigor to the sickly and infirm.
Of this, David's advisers seem to have been aware,
24*
282 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
when, in his old age, they brought the fair Shunamite
damsel to " cherish the king."
For this reason, old and young should not unite in
matrimony, neither should young children sleep with
their grandparents, who by this means prolong their
own existence at the expense of the children's health.
" Dr. Copeland relates the following case : — *
" ' I was a few years since consulted about a pale,
sickly, and thin boy of about five or six years of age.
He appeared to have no specific ailment, but there was
a slow and remarkable decline of flesh and strength,
and of the energy of all the functions, — what his
mother very aptly termed " a gradual blight." After
inquiring into the history of the case, it came out that
he had been a very robust and plethoric child up to
his third year, when his grandmother, a very aged
person, took him to sleep with her ; that he soon after-
ward lost his good looks, and that he had continued to
decline progressively ever since, notwithstanding med-
ical treatment. I directed him to sleep apart from his
aged grandparent, and prescribed gentle tonics, change
of air, etc., and the recovery was very rapid.' " *
Sickly persons should refrain from kissing and fond-
ling children, and healthy persons alone should be
nurses. It is important to know who makes our bread;
for the dough necessarily receives the influence of
those through whose hands it passes. The baker puts
his life in his loaf, and influences persons for good or
evil, who eat his bread.
The domestication of animals may have been to a
great extent produced by man's influence imparted to
* Millingen's Curiosities of Medical Experience, p. 326.
UTILITY OP PSYCHOMETRY.
them ; which animals acquainted with man arc all glad
to receive. This influence was, of course, more read-
ily imparted to them when man was a savage, and
there exisited a greater familiarity between the beast
and man.
Animals, in their turn, affect human beings. The
influence of healthy horses, cows, dogs, and other ani-
mals is beneficial to the sick and the infirm ; and much
of the robust health enjoyed by those surrounded by
.their influence,. in spite of wide departures from cor-
rect living, may be attributed to this. Puny children
might play with dogs and cats, and ride on horseback,
to advantage, as far as their health is concerned.
But as animals below man have but little that is
intellectual or spiritual to radiate, and they are con-
santly receiving these from us while we are in contact
with them, we are robbed on these sides of our being
by the association, and receive the brutal in return.
Men who are constantly with hogs, cattle, and horses,
seem to partake of their nature, manifesting the ani-
mality they are constantly receiving.
There is no doubt that the geologic formations of a
country produce some effect on the people who dwell
above them, and who drink the water which has soaked
through them, and is charged with their peculiar influ-
ence. I have found the calcareous deposit of a steam
boiler, so charged with the organic influence of the
rocks through which the water had passed, that it could
be instantly perceived on trying it psychomctrically.
Certain countries produce certain men. Much is due
to the original stock from which they were derived ;
much to the climate to which they are subjected ;
284 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
much to their habits ; but, after all these and other
causes are eliminated, there is quite a remainder
^ which may be attributed to the influence that the
{ rocks of a country and their contents have upon its
^ inhabitants. It may be long before we can tell how
much effect, and what kind of an effect, the Lower Silu-
rian limestones, so completely filled with fossil forms,
may have upon the people of Nashville, Cincinnati,
Ottawa, and Montreal, who live above them ; but that
they do affect them considerably, I have notvthe slight-
est doubt.
There is more received by the earth and its inhab-
itants from the sun than the natural philosopher or the
chemist can detect, and the astrologer himself may
have had some reason in the nature of things for his
belief in the influence of the stars.
y^ As houses receive and retain the influence of the
■■ dwellers in them, so cities, aggregates of houses, re-
ceive and retain the influence of the people living and
A walking in them, and then radiate this influence which
they have received, so that a stranger, taking up his
residence in a city, has this influence brought to bear
.upon him, the tendency of which is to mould him ac-
cording to the general character of the place. Who
that has travelled does not know that towns have char-
acters just as truly as individuals ? and these characters
'j continue, though generation after generation passes
/' away. Louis Napoleon wisely caused the sentry-box
\ to be destroyed, in which three successive sentries
V had hung themselves. Not more surely did the in-
fluence in that sentry-box permeate these men, than
influences proceeding from cities permeate the people
UTILITY OP PSYCHOMETRY. 285
living in them, and give them a general character. In ^
•a feebler degree this is true of a country ; the very
rocks drink in the character of the people of the coun-
try in which they exist, and give this out again, so as.
to be perceptible to the sensitive psychometer. *
Evil associates not only influence by their practices
and language, then, but unseen and unheard baleful in-
fluences pass from them, as from the fabled stars dark-
ness was rayed forth. The good man, the intelligent
man, is a blessing, everywhere and at all times; the man
who walks past his house receives his silent benedic-
tion, and even when he is dead, the very stones of his
hearth spread benign influences around them, and
the world is better and more intelligent for his having
lived in it. The virtues of mankind outnumber their
vices. Their crimes, about which so much is written
and said, are but dust in the balancer, compared with
their good deeds, constantly poured out, and as little
regarded as the oft-repeated showers; and in conse-
quence of this, every generation born into the world
has a more glorious heritage than the preceding ; not
only are they the richer and better for the mechanical
inventions, the architectural improvements, the scien-
tific advancements, but the world is every year becom-
ing more imbued with intelligence, refinement and vir-
tue, which are silently moulding the masses into more
lordly beings, in turn to leave the world better than
they found it. Could we psychometrize the planets of
our solar system and more distant worlds, as we may
do at some time, it is probable that we should find all
those that are inhabited having a distinct character
impressed upon them by the influences proceeding
286 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
from their inhabitants, and thus, with their light, these
influences may proceed, and they be mutually tele-
graphing to each other their mental and moral condi-
tion, as age after age passes away.
- The doctor's presence, if he is healthy and genial,
may be of more benefit to the patient than his pills ;
and mothers, by their soothing manipulations, fre-
quently cure unconsciously their sick children, by im-
parting to them the health and vigor of their own
constitutions. By a knowledge of such facts, much
sufiering may be removed, and the sum of human en-
joyment be greatly increased.
Women are much more susceptible of psychometric
impressions than men, probably in the proportion of
five to one. And this may be the reason why they
are quicker witted, arrive at correct conclusions easier
and sooner, audi are unable so frequently to give the
reason for those conclusions. Ask a woman why she
thinks a thing is so, " Because it is," is the answer ; and
this has been styled " woman's reason.'' There is a
good reason why women employ it. They have such
an assurance of the truth of what they say that no
doubt exists in their minds ; but as they arrived at this
assurance intuitively, and by no process of reasoning,
they are of course unable to give any other than " wo-
man's reason." While man is toiling up the steep by
painful steps, with laboring breath and sweating brow,
woman flies to the summit in an instant, and wonders
that man should be such a laggard.
When woman shall employ her psychometric power
in a scientific direction, as she will ere long, some of
our savans may tremble for their laurels. I affirm that
UTILITY OP PSYCHOMETRY. 287
by psychometry a woman may have in one year a more J
correct idea of the condition of the earth and its occu-
pants during the geologic periods than any man with-
out it could in a lifetime. I speak with confidence in
reference to geology, for I speak what I know ; and I
have no doubt that a similar statement in reference to
other sciences could be truthfully made.
Woman's superior sensitiveness is frequently mani- j
fested, and laughed at by man ; and more frequently ^'
hidden on account of his ridicule. A lady sees her
husband in close conversation with a smooth-spoken
gentleman, and, as soon as he is gone, she exclaims,
" Oh, John, don't have anything to do with that man !"
"What do you know about him?" is the half-angry
exclamation of her husband. " Nothing," she replies ;
" but you will be sorry if you have any dealings with
him." The strong-minded man, despising what he
calls the "whim" of his wife, only remembers her
warning when he finds himself victimized by this art-
ftJ gentleman. But, of course, it only happened so ;
and he is no more inclined to heed his wife's " whims "
than before.
Psychometry will yet be employed for the discovery
and prevention of crime. In its presence, and it is
omnipresent, the faintest whisper is loud as the rolling
thunder ; and there is no cunning that can conceal an
evil deed from its eye ; its very commission is its pub-
lication. It is a mistake, in more senses than one, to
suppose that " dead men tell no tales." Their very
bone-cells contain the record of every deed commit-
ted and every outrage suflFered. The dungeon hears
and treasures every sigh of tyranny's victim, and tho
\
288 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
ashes of the martyrs contain the story of their
wrongs.
It has been said that the face of the murderer has
been found daguerreotyped on the pupil of the eye of
his victim. Whether this is true or not, in the sense
of ordinary vision, it is certainly so as far as psycho-
metric vision is concerned. When these facts are uni-
versally recognized, and the faculty for reading Na-
ture's all-containing book is developed, its influence
will certainly be a restraint on the commission of
crime, for then : —
<^ Man in the sanshine of the world's new spring
Shall walk transparent, like some holy thing."
CHAPTER VII.
MYSTERIES REVEALED.
PsYCHOMETRY elucidates many mysterious subjects ;
shedding light upon those departments of Nature
whose gloom has deterred almost every investigator.
FORTTTNE-TELLINQ.
It is a notorious fact that many fortune-tellers do
tell incidents in the lives of those who visit them;
sometimes, indeed, they give an outline of their past
histories, though entirely unacquainted with the per-
sons. The reason seems to be, that we carry with us,
wherever we go, the history of our lives, which are
raying from us continually. Sensitive persons can
read this history, when they come into our presence,
somewhat as the past history of fossils and pebbles, re-
corded in this volume, were obtained. In this way we
may account for the great success of some fortune-tel-
lers, and the interest taken in them by intelligent per-
sons. Mademoiselle Lenormond, a celebrated fortune-
teller of Paris, amassed a fortune of 500,000 francs.
She was consulted by Robespierre, Barras, Josephine,
Louis XVIII., and Madame de Stael ; and this could
hardly have been, unless she had possessed some ex-
traordinary power, by which she could in some way
satisfy the intelligence of her visitors. Zschokke, the
25 289
290 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
celebrated German author, whom I have previously
quoted, seems to have been sensitive enough to re-
ceive impressions from individuals in this way. He
says : —
" I am almost afraid to speak of this, not because
I am afraid to be thought superstitious, but that I
may thereby strengthen such feelings in others ; and
yet it may be an addition to our stock of soul-experi-
ence, and therefore I will confess 1 It has happened
to me sometimes on my first meeting with strangers,
as I listened silently to their discourse, that their for-
mer life, with many trifling circumstances therewith
connected, or frequently some particular scene in that
life, has passed quite involuntarily, and as it were
dream-like, yet perfectly distinct before me. During
this time I usually feel so entirely absorbed in the con-
templation of the stranger's life, that at last I no longer
see clearly the face of the unknown wherein I unde-
signedly read, nor distinctly hear the voices of the
speakers, which before served as a commentary to the
text of their features. For a long time I held such vis-
ions as delusions of the fancy, and the more so as they
showed me even the dress and motions of the actors,
rooms, furniture, and other accessories. By way of
jest, I once, in a familiar family circle at Kirchberg, re-
lated the secret history of a seamstress who had just
left the room and the house. I had never seen her
before in my life; the people were astonished, and
laughed, but were not to be persuaded that I did not
previously know that of which I spoke ; for what I ut-
tered was the literal truth. I on my part was not less
astonished that ray dream-pictures were confirmed by
MYSTERIES REVEALED. 291
the reality. I became more attentive to the subject,
and when propriety admitted it, I would relate to
those whose life thus passed before me, the subject of
my vision, that I might thereby obtain confirmation or
refutation of it. It was invariably ratified, not with-
out consternation on their part. I myself had less,
confidence than any one in this mental jugglery. So
often as I revealed my visionary gifts to any new per-
son, I regularly expected to hear the answer, ' It was
not so 1 ' I felt a secret shudder when my auditors re-
plied that it was true, or when their astonishment be-
trayed my accuracy before they spoke. Instead of
many, I will mention one example, which pre-emi-
nently astounded me. One fair day, in the city of
Waldshut, I entered an inn (the Vine) in company
with two young student-foresters ; we were tired of
rambling through the woods. We supped with a nu-
merous company at the table d) hote, where the guests
were making very merry with the peculiarities^ and
eccentricities of the Swiss, with Mesmer's magnetism,
Lavater's physiognomy, &c. &c. One of my compan-
ions, whose national pride was wounded by their mock-
ery, begged me to make some reply, particularly to
a handsome young man who sat opposite to us, and
who had allowed himself extraordinary license. This
man's former life was at that moment presented to my
mind; I turned to him, and asked him whether he
would answer me candidly, if I related to him some of
the most secret passages of his life, I knowing as lit-
tle of him personally as he did of me. That would
be going a little farther, I thought, than Lavater did
with physiognomy. He promised, if I were correct in
292 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
my information, to admit it frankly. I then related
what my vision had shown me, and the whole company
were made acquainted with the private history of the
young merchant ; his school years, his youthful errors,
and, lastly, with a fault committed in reference to the
strong-box of his principal. I described to him the
uninhabited room, with whitened walls, where, to the
right of the brown door, on a table, stood a black
money-box, &c. &c. A silence prevailed during the
whole narration, which I alone occasionally interrup-
ted, by inquiring whether I spoke the truth. The
startled young man confirmed every particular, and
even, what I had scarcely expected, the last mentioned.
Touched by his candor, I shook hands with him over
the table, and said no more. He asked my name,
which I gave him, and we remained together talking
till past midnight."
Zschokke, referring to this power of his, subsequently
adds : — " ' What demon inspires you ? Must I again
believe in possession ? ' exclaimed the spiritual Johann
Von Riga, when, in the first hour of our acquaintance,
I related his past life to him, with the avowed object
of learning whether or not I deceived myself. We
speculated long on the enigma, but even his penetra-
tion could not solve it." In his last reference to this
remarkable .power, which enabled him to read the his-
tory of individuals, as the psychometers mentioned in
this volume read the history of things, he says : —
" Not another word about this strange seer-gift, which
I can aver was of no use to me in a single instance,
which manifested itself occasionally only, and quite in-
dependently of any volition, and often in relation to
MYSTERIES REVEALED. 293
persons in whose history I took not the slightest inter-
est. Nor am I the only one in possession of this fac-
ulty. In a journey with two of my sons, I fell in with
an old Tyrolese, who travelled about selling lemons
and oranges, at the inn at Unterhauerstein, in one of
the Jura passes. He fixed his eyes for some time
upon me, joined in our conversation, observed that,
though I did not know him, he knew me, and began to
describe my acts and deeds, to the no little amusement
of the peasants, and astonishment of my children,
whom it interested to learn that another possessed the
same gift as their father. How the old lemon-merchant
acquired his knowledge, he was not able to explain to
himself, nor to me ; but he seemed to attach great im-
portance to his hidden wisdom."
That some persons are possessed of the power of
telling the past history of individuals who are perfect
strangers to them, is most evident then; and where
the past is told correctly thus, it is easy to become
credited with the power of telling the future, though
the ability to do the one by no means proves the abil-
ity to do the other. I do not deny that this can be
done, but I have not had as yet sufficient evidence to
satisfy me.
DREAMS.
Into the land of dreams, over whose boundary phi-
losophy never ventures, where the law of gravitation
is suspended, over whose fields the living and dead
walk and converse, where beggars are kings and
queens, and where kings and queens, terror-stricken,
flee, pursued by avenging ghosts, boldly marches psy-
26*
294 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
chometry, and maps out for us a portion of this en-
chanted land. Persons who have been examining
specimens for me have sometimes fallen asleep, and,
on relating their dreams, I have, at times, been able to
trace a direct connection between them and the arti-
cles that they were examining. In some cases they
were evidently a continuation of the psychometric
examination, revealing facts of which previously the
dreamer knew nothing. Many of the visions seen by
us in our sleeping hours may proceed directly from
the objects we have handled through the day, the per-
sons wo have come in contact with, the food we have
swallowed, or the bed we lie upon. Very sensitive
persons may be afiFected by influences so slight that it
would appear, to one unacquainted with these matters,
utterly impossible for them to affect an individual.
" Several years ago, during a severe winter, the
Schuylkill River, near Philadelphia, became thickly
bridged over with ice, and thousands of persons re-
sorted thither for the exercise of skating, sliding, etc.
Among other inventions for the amusement of those
visiting the place, there was a post sunk through the
ice, at the top of which there was a pivot and a horizon-
tal revolving arm or shaft attached to it. To the end
of this the drag-ropes of sleds were attached, so that,
by pushing the shaft, the sleds, with persons on them,
might be made to revolve swiftly in a circle upon the
ice. Among the rest, a negro got upon the sled, and
the person in charge of the shaft caused it, for sport,
to revolve so violently that the negro was thrown out-
ward by the centrifugal force, and, striking violently
against a large projecting piece of ice, was instantly
MYSTERIES REVEALED. 295
killed. This occurrence was witnessed by a physician,
a friend of my informant, who happened to be present.
On that same evening the physician had occasion to
prepare a dose of pills for one of his patients, a lady
extremely susceptible to magnetic influences. As he
was mixing the ingredients of the pills, and rolling
them in his fingers, he related, in all its particulars, to
persons in his office, the occurrence he had witnessed
on the river during the day. The pills were afterward
dispatched to the lady by another person. The next
day the physician, seeing one of the lady's family,
inquired concerning her health. In the answer that
was returned it was stated, among other things, that
she had a singular dream the night previous. She
dreamed that she was somewhere on the ice, where
many people were sliding and skating; that she had
there seen a negro throwfi from a revolving sled
against a cake of ice and instantly killed, etc. Her
dream, as related, was an exact reproduction of all the
essential statements of facts which had, without her
knowledge, been given by the physician while he was
preparing the pills, and concerning which fact she had
received no information from any quarter." *
As the doctor rolled the pills in his fingers, his influ-
ence was communicated to them, and, when swallowed
by his patient, a direct psychometric line of commu-
nication was established between them. Along that
passes the inquiring soul, and receives from his the
image so recently and so strongly impressed there,
and thus the dream.
There are many facts to show that persons asleep
* American Phrenological Journal.
296 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
are much more sensitive to refined influences than
when awake ; and many remarkable circumstances re-
lated to dreaming may be explained when the enlarged
powers of the soul, which psychometry familiarizes us
with, are taken into account.
When at Canadice, in the State of New York, a gen-
tleman of that place, named A. C. Bishop, informed me
of a singular dream that he had. During a snow-storm
in the previous March, the stage broke through a
bridge about half a mile above the village, was over-
turned into the water, and the mail-bag swept down
the creek. Many persons sought for it day after day,
among whom was Mr. Bishop himself. It was all in
vain, however, and they came to the conclusion that it
must have been washed away and covered up with the
gravel carried down by the stream to its mouth. A
month after this, when th'e snow had all melted off the
ground, he dreamed that he saw the mail-bag lying in
a certain place. So strongly did the dream impress
him that he awoke, but slept again and dreamed it a
second time. In the morning he told his dream to
several persons in the shop, who laughed at the idea
of finding the mail-bag then ; but on going to the
place, which he immediately did, " I found it," said he,
" not ten feet from the place where I dreamed that it
was."
A Methodist clergyman at Carleton Place, Canada
West, informed me that a gentleman of his acquaint-
ance, having on his finger a heavy gold ring, went out
in a boat on the Mississippi River, a small stream in
the neighborhood, on a pleasure excursion. On his
return he discovered that the ring was gone. After
MYSTERIES REVEALED. 207
searching for some time in vain, all gave it up as lost.
A young woman who lived in a house near the river,
and who was acquainted with the parties and the cir-
cumstance, dreamed that night that she was on the
river bank, and, looking into the water, saw the ring
by the edge of a particular stone. She told her dream
next morning, and, on. proceeding to the spot, the ring
was found in the identical place where she had ob-
served it in her dream.
As psychometers discover the condition of distant
objects that they have never beheld, so dreamers find
what in the waking condition they might look for in
vain. How this is accomplished is not so easy to
explain.
RELICS AND AMULETS.
Veneration for relics seems to most educated people
absurd enough, and furnishes food for the mirthfulness
of some, as it does for the trickery of others. There
is said to be as much wood of the "true cross" as
would build a man-of-war, and as many teeth of St.
John as would fill a peck measure. Yet, despite the
superstition that may hide in the love of reUcs, there
is a foundation in truth for it, as indeed there is in
almost every superstition, or they could never spring
up among so widely distributed peoples and outlast
man's most enduring monuments. Belief in reUcs,
charms, and amulets, has its root in the nature of
things. A pebble from Jerusalem is very diflFerent
from one picked up on Dover beach, although no
chemical analysis could reveal it. Both are flint, both
rounded by the action of the water, and yet they are
298 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
as different psychometrically as the history of the
United States is from that of Greece.
An amulet handled by a strong, healthy man, conse-
quently imbued with his influence, and then worn by
a diseased person, might be of great benefit, especially
to very sensitive persons, and in cases of nervous dis-
ease. The laying on of hands is not in all cases
"mere idle mummery,'' and the belief in the sacred
character of buildings and particular articles is in ac-
cordance with many facts that cannot be denied.
What would not a Jew give for some object that
Moses had handled; or a Christian for some undoubted
relic of his Master? While I write this, furniture made
from the Old Elm on Boston Common is advertised for
sale. Would not the wood of some other old elm be
just as good ? No. That wood contains the spirit of .
Boston, is permeated with the soul of the old revolu-
tionary times, and knows a thousand times more about
the place than the oldest inhabitant. The buyer may
not dream of it, but this unrecognized truth augments
its price, notwithstanding.
HALLUCmATIONS.
Hallucination has been defined as the intellectual
state of a person who believes he sees and hears what
no other person sees or hears ; who perceives things
impalpable to the senses. Esquirol defines it "as a
cerebral or psychical phenomenon, acting indepen-
dently of the senses, and consisting of external sen-
sations, that the patient believes he experiences,
although no external agent acts materially on his
senses." Under this head have been collected a va-
MYSTERIES REVEALED. 299
riety of phenomena, some of which psychometry read-
ily explains ; thus transferring them from this wilder-
ness to the cultivated fields of science, where they
take their place along with other classified facts.
The case of the painter, referred to on page 21, is
placed among hallucinations by writers upon this sub-
ject; but how readily, it takes its place in that of sim-
ple psychometric vision. Since a stone takes in the
images of surrounding objects and retains them, how
much more does the human brain, provided as it is
with windows for the very purpose of receiving, and
a tablet for recording them. The image of the sitter
received into his mind was projected upon the chair at
will, some psychometers possessing this power ; and
thus he was able to paint him accurately without any
farther sitting. As the daguerreotypist needs but one
sitting, having during that received an accurate like-
ness of the sitter, so in this case, where an apparatus
was employed as much superior to it as the works of
nature are superior to those of art.
Under the head of Hallucinations in febrile and
other maladies, De Boismont gives the following case,
taken from the Edinburgh Medical and Surgical Jour-
nal : " I was called in, says Dr. Alderston, to Mrs.
, a lady eighty years of age, whom I had often
attended for the gout. She complained of unusual
deafness, with a great distention of the digestive or-
gans, and was expecting an attack. Notwithstanding
her great age, this lady enjoyed good health. She con-
fided to me that for some time past she had been dis-
turbed by visions. The first time that she noticed the
occurrence, she believed that several uninvited friends
300 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
visited her. Having recovered from her first surprise,
she evinced some regret at not being able to converse
with them, and was about to give orders to have a
card-table set. For this purpose she rang the bell.
On the entrance of the servant, all the party disap-
peared. The lady expressed much surprise at their
abrupt departure, and the servant had great difficulty
in convincing her that no one had been in the room.
" She felt so ashamed of the illusion that for several
days and nights she suffered, in silence, the appearance
of a considerable number of phantoms, some of which
represented long-lost friends, and revived thoughts
almost entirely effaced. The lady contented herself
with ringing the bell, when the entrance of the ser-
vant rid her of their presence.
" It was some time before she could make up her
mind to confide her sufferings to me. There was noth-
ing either in her conversation or conduct to indicate
a derangement of intellect, and she, as well as her
friends, were convinced of her perfect sanity.
" The affection was relieved by plasters on the feet,
and mild medicines, and was shortly afterwards en-
tirely cured by a regular attack of gout. Since that
time both her reason and health have been good." *
The simple explanation that I give of this is, that
under the peculiar physiological condition of the lady,
her brain was brought to that sensitive condition which
is natural to some persons at all times, and that while
in this condition she was able to see either the images
. >ef persons that had been impressed upon her brain, or
the various objects in the house gave out the images
J * De Boismont, Dreams, V'sions, etc., p. 273.
MYSTERIES BEVEALED. ' 301
that they had received, and she was able in this state
to perceive them. The most probable explanation is,
that they were the images existing in her own brain,
as the manifestation of these would require a less
degree of sensitiveness than that of the other. The
persons she saw on the first occasion were evidently
persons with whom she was familiar, whose likenesses
she had treasured ; and of the other " phantoms,"
some, at least, were long-lost friends — friends that she
had nearly forgotten, as she thought, but whose images
had been ineffaceably stamped upon the soul.
The entrance of the servant caused the disappear-
ance of the images by disturbing the passive condition
favorable to their manifestation, and rendering her too
positive for their impression.
Diseases, which weaken the physical powers of the
patient, seem to produce a condition eminently favora-
ble to the manifestations that we are now considering,
and that are so frequently placed under the head of
hallucination. As the exterior senses are deadened,
and their power to convey impressions to the soul is
weakened, so the interior senses become stronger and
more active ; and what was previously unseen and
unheard, becomes visible and audible, generally to
the great astonishment of the party hearing and ob-
serving.
" Mademoiselle N was convalescing after a very
prolonged fever, which had reduced her to a state of
extreme weakness. All her family had gone to church,
when a violent storm arose. Mademoiselle N went
to the window to watch its effects ; the idea of her
father suddenly struck her, and, under existing cir-
26
302 THE BOijL OF THINGS.
cumstances, she felt much uneasiness. Her imagina-
tion soon persuaded her that her father had perished.
In order to conquer her fear, she went into the room
in which she was accustomed to see him in his arm-
chair. On entering, she was much • surprised at see-
ing him in his place, and in his accustomed attitude.
She immediately approached to inquire how he had
come in, and in addressing him, attempted to place her
hand on his shoulder, but she encountered only space.
Very much alarmed, she drew back, and, turning her
head as she left the room, still saw him in the same at-
titude.
" More than half an hour elapsed from the time she
first saw the apparition until its departure. During
this time, Miss N , who was convinced that it was
an illusion, entered the room several times and care-:
fully examined the arrangement of the objects, and
especially of the chair." *
^ The arm-chair, in which her father usually sat, must
have been thoroughly imbued with his influence, radi-
ating from him as influences radiate from all organized
bodies continually. And as these influences are able
to reproduce, to the gaze of the psychometer, the ani-
mals from which they passed, and that, millions of years
after they were given forth, what difficulty is there in
conceiving that the influences possessed by the chair
produced the appearance of the father, as seen by the
daughter, when reduced by fever to that passive con-
dition so favorable to the observance of such appear-
ances ?
That the image of an object is retained by objects
* De Boismont, p. 276.
MYSTERIES REVEALED. 303
m
contiguous to it, has been noticed by mesmeric opera-
tors repeatedly ; and it is doubtless one cause of the
mistakes made by clairvoyants, who see what has been,
instead of what is. I take the following from Cahag-
net's Celestial Telegraph : —
" Sometimes the image of a thing remains impressed
in the place where it has stood. M. Teste, in his jour-
nal, cites, with respect to this, a curious experiment :
A female somnambulist enters a room and exclaims,
' What a pretty girl is sitting on that chair 1 ' At this
exclamation M. Teste observes to her that she is mis-
taken; that no pretty girl is there. Far from giving in
to this declaration, she sees one on each chair, and
there were six of them. Unable to account for this
hallucination, M. Teste contented himself with gather-
ing exact details of the dress of these little girls, and
confessed that a little girl precisely similar had been
playing for a moment before the somnambulist entered,
and had jumped on the six chairs, one after the other,
sitting down on them." "I have often recognized,"
says Cahagnet, " that the image of material objects set
in a certain place remained there for a long time."
The excessive use of spirituous liquors seems to
produce a condition that is favorable to the observance
of apparitions such as Nicolai saw, and with which
some psychometers are daily familiar. Dr. Combe
says, " In a case of delirium tremens in an innkeeper
about whom I was consulted, the spectral illusions
continued several days. . . . The man refused to
allow me to look at a blister which had been placed
between the shoulders, because he could not take off
his coat before the ladies who were in the room. When
304 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
I assured him thcro was no ono in the room, be smiled
at the joke, as he conceived it to be ; and, in answer
to my questions, described them as several in number,
well dressed and good-looking. At my request he
rose up to shake hands with them, and was astonished
at finding them elude his grasp, and his hand strike
the wall. This, however, convinced him that it was an
illusion, and he forthwith took off his coat. In a few
days the ladies vanished from his sight." *
Another case is related in the Edinburgh Medical
and Surgical Journal, in which a wine merchant went
into the cellar to draw some liquor for a girl, when he
noticed a quantity of oyster shells on the ground ; but
on stooping to pick them up discovered there were
none. On preparing to leave the cellar, he saw a sol-
dier with a forbidding countenance attempt to enter.
He asked what he wanted ; but receiving no answer,
attempted to seize him, when he proved to be a phan-
tom. During the whole night he was tormented with
apparitions of living friends, or of those who had long
been dead. He was continually getting out of bed to
assure himself of the truth or falsehood of these visions.
The use of hashish, opium, and the inhalation of
nitrous oxide, or laughing-gas, seem to produce, at
times, and with certain constitutions, a similar effect.
Many persons possess psychometric vision when
dying; and, especially, when dying by drowning. Dr.
ConoUy tells us of a person, who, in danger of being
swamped on the Eddystone rock, saw the phantoms of
his family passing distinctly before him. The English
opium-eater says, " I was once told by a near r.elation
* Life and Correspondenoe of Andrew Combe, p. 177.
MYSTERIES BEVEALED.
of mine, that having in her childhood fallen into a
river, and being on the very verge of death, but for
the critical assistance which reached her, she saw in a
moment her whole life, in its minutest incidents, ar-
rayed before her simultaneously, as in a mirror, and
she had a faculty developed as suddenly for compre-
hending the whole and every part."
" Dr. Binns says, ' We are acquainted with a gentle-
man, who, being able to swim but little, ventured too
far out, and became exhausted. His alarm was great,
and after making several but ill-directed efforts to re-
gain the shore, he shouted for assistance, and then
sank, as he supposed, to rise no more. . . . Then
he saw, as if in a wide field, the acts of his own being,
from the first dawn of memory to the moment when
he entered the water. They were all grouped and
ranged in the order of the succession of their happen-
ing, and he read the whole volume of existence at a
glance; nay, its incidents and entities were photo-
graphed on his mind, limned in light, and the pano-
rama of the battle of life lay before him.' " *
Numerous examples of this kind might be given.
They afford us glimpses of man's mighty powers, all
but unused in this condition of existence. " We are,"
indeed, " wiser than we know."
* Sleep, Sensation , and Memory, — Fosgatc, p. 43.
26* \ '
CHAPTER VIII.
CONCLUSION.
Little knows the fish of the world of air above it,
in which the bird swims ; still less of the starry realm
that lies beyond; and we, with all our boasted pow-
ers, hold a similar relation to unknown realms. Like
clams in a sand-hole, who know nothing of the flying
clouds, the tinkUng rills, the sunshine so glorious, and
all the busy world of beautiful women and*brave men,
so we, deepening our holes with each returning tide,
know hardly anything of the great worlds surrounding
and interpenetrating our own.
I believe that psychometry, as displayed in this vol-
ume, and in varied phenomena, generally called " mys-
terious," which are continually taking place around
us, is but the exercise of those faculties which belong
to the soul, and are not dependent upon the body for
their exercise. Thus the psychometer sees without
the use of physical eyes, — sees the past as readily
as the present, the far-off as easily as the nigh-at-
hand; hears sounds that are inaudible to physical ears,
and travels without the ordinary powers of locomotion.
In sleep, as I have shown, persons may learn what
they never could in the waking condition; for the
body, the souPs master as well as its servant, being
powerless, the soul is able to exercise, to some extent,
306
CONCLUSION. 307
its native powers. In somnambulism, when the senses
are doubly locked, so that the loudest voice makes
no impression, and the sense of feeling is so com-
pletely suspended that what at other times would
produce intense pain is not felt at all, — in this condi-
tion " the somnambulist can see with his eyes closed
and bandaged; he can then even see what waking
men in his place cannot see with their open eyes.
He can read the contents of letters unopened ; he can
see through clothing, wood, and metal boxes, and walls
of brick and stone ; he can tell what is going on in the
room above him or in the room below." All this is
equally true of persons in a mesmeric condition, as I
had abundant opportunities of satisfying myself in
England, nearly twenty years ago.'
Pasting, the use of narcotics and stimulants, sick-
ness, in which the powers of the body are gradually
weakened; loss of sleep, and drowning, are all favorable
to the manifestation of the soul's peculiar powers, so
different from those of ordinary sensation. The rule
is, apparently, that whatever weakens the body, and
unfits us for ordinary sensation, in the same ratio
strengthens these internal powers, or gives them an
opportunity for exercise.
May we not infer from these facts our conscious ex-
istence after what is called death? the continued being
and activity of the spirit, with a perfect remembrance
of all its experiences, aiid able to travel at will over
the wide realm of the past, gathering knowledge at
every step, and preparing for the great hereafter that
shall still await it ?
Our researches and discoveries have been made in
308 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
but a small portion of a great and unexplored domain.
The very difficulty we have found, in explaining what
has come before us in the course of these experiments,
convinces me that we have been but coasting along
some headland in an unknown ocean ; and that great
continents yet lie beyond, to.be discovered by future
explorers.
PART II.
QUESTIONS, CONSIDERATIONS,
AND SUGGESTIONS.
BY ELIZABETH M. P. DENTON.
QUESTIONS,
CONSIDERATIONS, AND SUGGESTIONS.
INTBODUCTORT.
There are, perhaps, few persons who are by nature
Xnore thoroughly skeptical than I ; and, though I can-
Xiot remember the time when I did not behold objects
or their representatives, by night as well as by day, in
darkness as well as in light, with closed as well as
^ith open eyes, I was very far from believing such
vision other than in every respect illusive. Instructed
from infancy to accept nothing as true which failed to
address itself to my reason, or which could not be sub-
stantiated by facts, I was by no means ready to accept
any theory which should give to these illusive forms,
as I then regarded them, a character of reality ; and it
was not until some years after I had commenced to
examine specimens by means of this vision that I was
prepared to acknowledge it the natural result of forces
subject to law, and those laws deserving of investiga-
tion. I have, therefore, no word of reproach for those
who hesitate to accept the statements contaiDed in this
volume until they shall have investigated the subject
for themselves. I am certain I should have been one
of their number had the evidence been presented by
another to my understanding only, instead of having
come home with its facts to the recognition of my
811
312 THE 80UL OF THINGS.
8611868. It wa8 no one examination which convinced
me of the error in my former conclusions, but the
accumulated evidence of hundreds of experiments, all
pointing with significant unanimity to the existence
of this faculty in the human economy.
To the minds of such as shall have felt an interest
in the perusal of the foregoing pages, and yet have
never recognized in their own experience, nor ob-
served in their intercourse with others, any of the
phenomena therein described, a long array of inquiries
have, no doubt, many times presented themselves, and
now clamor for a heating. Some of these inquiries I
will endeavor to answer ; to some I can only respond,
/ have no answer. In attempting to present the con-
clusions at which I have arrived, and the facts and
reasonings by which such conclusions have been
reached, I must ask permission to draw largely from
my own experience. I would gladly avoid this, but at
present have not in my possession, from other sources,
the requisite material for the purpose, and hence pro-
ceed at once to the consideration of those inquiries.
QUESTION L
" In the Jlrst place, then, (granting the correctness of the state-
ments and the accuracy of the descriptions,) how is this thing
donef Are these objects seen as we behold the flowers in the
field, the stars in the shy, the lines in the hand? "
Much, yet not, as a general rule, precisely the same.
In some instances they pass before the observer as a
HOW OBJECTS ABE THUS SEEN. 313
2)anorama, moving with the velocity of lightning. In
each instances it is, of course, impossible to catch
^ven the outline of an object, however strikingly pe-
<3uliar. Partial outlines may, indeed, be traced, but
^he object has passed from sight long before the out-
line is complete. For some time I regarded these
^ews as merely fragmentary ; and it was not until I
learned that, by a powerful effort of the will, these
:flying scenes could be made to pause, that I discov-
ered they were not fragmentary, as I had heretofore
supposed, but many, perhaps all of them, objects, or
theii' representatives, entire in their outline, and as
real, apparently, as are any with which we come in
contact in this every-day world.
At other times, everything around one seems immov-
ably fixed. There is, perhaps, only a small area visi-
ble ; but, however protracted the observation, this
area, its lights and shadows, its boundaries, the ob-
jects, if any, within it — in short, all its features, remain
precisely the same as when the eye of the psychom-
eter first fell upon it, while curtains of impenetrable
darkness close around all beside.
Again, there are times when the psychometer is
no longer a silent observer. Gravitation has lost its
force; his own will is powerless or inactive, and he
finds himself an inhabitant of space instead of a
dweller upon earth. His surroundings are worlds,
and he, cut loose alike from earth and heaven, is mov-
ing with a velocity that laughs the lagging winds to
scorn. On, on, on he flies, tireless, fetterless, free;
emphatically free from all that in any respect would
check his. speed.
27
314 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
But in these instances we must regard the psychom-
eter as being in a state of utter passiveness. Ignorant
of the power in his possession, he spends hours, it may
be, in gazing at the various forms of beauty or of hor-
ror that flit before his vision when all around him is
quiet and his own mind is at rest. Knowing nothing,
really, of the nature of these results, he knows not
where to look for the cause. Such was my own expe-
rience in childhood. Often have I amused myself
until a late hour of the night with the scenes which
came sweeping past, not my fancy, but my vision, as ,
clear and as distinct as were any that greeted my sight
by day.
The cause of this phenomenon I then supposed to
be the pressure of the lids upon the eye, causing its
humors so to arrange themselves as to present these
numerous and changing views. My mother gave me
this in reply to my inquiries respecting them, and I
accepted it with the trust of childhood. Very natu-
rally supposing the eyes of all persons to have been
arranged on a plan quite similar to that of my own,
and that, consequently, every individual must realize
the same or a similar experience, and thinking, far-
ther, that, had there been anything of interest or of
value connected therewith, it would long since have
been sought out and acknowledged, on approaching
the years of discretion I treated this faculty as we
naturally treat that to which we attach no value. Oc-
casionally, it is true, I would return to the folly of my
childhood, and occasionally I was startled by some
seemingly remarkable coincidence between the aj)-
pearances recognized by this, as Aristotle terms it,
HOW OBJECTS ARE THUS SEEN. 315
" irdernai action of the sense of vision,^^ and the reali-
ties of the outer world, as I would afterward find
them to have existed at the time when I had observed
them. But life was of too much practical value to be
wasted in idle dreaming, and hence I allowed myself
only an occasional visit to this ethereal land of ethereal
forms ; and to-day, I have no doubt, there are multi-
tudes of persons who have known such experiences
from infancy.
We come now to the time when the psychometer
begins to feel an assurance that pressure of the lids
upon the eye is not the only cause of this phenom-
enon; to the time when a succession of coincidences
leads him to inquire if there be not some relation be-
tween these singular visions and the realities of ex-
ternal life. Are you that psychometer? You look
the matter over, and wonder if the open eye cannot
also behold objects in darkness. You try the experi-
ment, and find that such is, indeed, the fact. Still,
there is a difference ; and although that difference is
in favor of the closed eyes, yet it is evident that the
pressure of the lids is not the only cause. Again and
again you .shut the light from your room and look
around you in astonishment. True, you are obliged
to sit longer, much longer, perhaps, than would be
needful with closed eyes, before you discern aught
but the darkness. After waiting, however, until your
anxiety has somewhat subsided, here and there a form,
in part, is visible. It is, perhaps, a horrible face, or a
beautiful flower. It may be a facsimile of something
with which you are familiar ; it may be utterly unlike
anything you have ever seen before. A moment more,
316 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
and the darkneRs rolls over it. Indeed, it seemed little
other than an outgrowth of that darkness, so perfectly
did darkness envelop the larger portion of what you
consider its proper dimensions. Each succeeding ex-
periment gives you a more satisfactory result, and you
find at last that pressure upon the eye has nothing
whatever to do with the matter, and you must look for
some other method of solving the problem, or the
cause must remain a mystery. But, whither can you
go ? Books are silent on the subject. The anatomist
does not even recognize an organ in the human econ-
omy capable of such vision, much less give you its
anatomy. The optician makes no mention of it, and
would, no doubt, regard it as an abnormal action of
the eye which he makes his study ; and whither can
you go? True, Mesmerism has induced something
analogous, but you are not Mesmerized. You are as
perfectly conscious of all that is passing in your pres»
ence now as at any other time, and, so far as you are
capable of judging, your condition is not in any re-
spect an abnormal one, the only requisite being that
of mental and physical quiet. You at length take up
Dr. Buchanan's Journal of Man, Vol. i., No- 2. There
is a sudden start of your nerves — your eye kindles —
you turn the pages rapidly, catching here a word and
there a sentence. ^^PsychomeiryV^ you exclaim, "what,
what is this?" You turn back and commence the
paper, reading carefully and devouring eagerly every
line of that startling article. Your cheeks are flushed
— your eye is aglow — there is a tremor in every limb.
What now? Has Dr. Buchanan solved your problem?
Not exactly, but he has, at least, endeavored to trace
HOW OBJECTS ARE THUS SEEN. 317
to a cause some of the phenomena which seem to you
inseparably linked with this inner sense of sight. You
take courage, and at once resolve to experiment. Is
there not some one whose cooperation would greatly
assist you in these experimental researches? Nay,
lather, you are fortunate if there be one among your
associates who would not think you a fit subject for
"the insane asylum should you even manifest an inter-
est in so wild a fancy as is the Doctor's theory. But
you are resolved to experiment. With your eyes closed
you select from your letter-trunk a package, which you
convey, under cover, to the drawer of your dressing-
table, and at night, when all have retired, still wakeful,
anxiously waiting for such an opportunity, you abstract
a letter from that package and place it upon your
brow. With joy unspeakable you realize the various
sensations to which the Doctor has alluded. More
than this, you see — see the face and bust, perhaps, of
a friend who has found in your affections the place of a
brother. You look around you, and you are in his
room ; now you see his entire figure. He sits beside
his table writing — "perhaps writing this very letter,"
you think. , You allow your fancy a moment's range,
and you are ready to exclaim, "I believe it is from
him ; I cannot doubt this influence ; it is the same that
ever thrills me when I read his letters I " But you
must have some other evidence — the testimony of the
chirography and of the signature. Noiselessly as pos-
sible you arise, your confidence in the identity of the
authorship of this with that of the thrilling letters
you have so frequently received from your friend dur-
ing the past few years increasing with every added
27*
318 THE 80UL OF THINGS.
grain that falls in the hour-glass. You draw a match
and convey it to your burner, that you may be certain
of the success of your experiment. / can appreciate
the depth of your chagrin when the light reveals to
your astonished gaze the signature of an individual as
utterly unlike your friend as darkness is unlike day.
Your friend is all spirit, all nervCy all life ; the author
of the sheet before you is, comparatively, a moving, .
breathing clod. Your friend writes you because he
must — because the thoughts are there burning in his
brain and he is compelled to give them expression;
and, as he traces the characters by which they are
represented, " they breathe in every line " and gleam
on every page. By some unaccountable freak in na-
ture, the author of the sheet before you has fancied
you, or you would never have had his letter with
which to experiment. You are pained beyond expres-
sion. "Bah!" you exclaim, as you bring down the
letter upon the table with a force which a moment
before, judging from your caution in moving, would
have startled the whole house. You turn off the gas
and return to your pillow. How thankful you feel
that no one but yourself has known of your folly. A
reaction has come, and on the breast of Morpheus you
gladly forget your vexation.
Morning dawns. The first note of the robin falls
upon your ear and arouses you to partial conscious-
ness. In this condition a cold, damp weight seems to
hang heavily about your heart. Slowly returning con-
sciousness brings to your mind the cause of this de-
pression, and at once you are awake. Sadly you run
over the events of the preceding evening, — the slum-
HOW OBJECTS ARE THUS SEEN. 319
"bering hopes which had been kindled to a flame, the
experiment, and — the failure. Was it a dream ? Hope-
fully you turn to the table, but the package of letters,
and the same identical sheet that lies open beside it,
convince you that it was all too real. You murmur
that hopes so bright in their dawning are doomed so
soon to fade, and so ingloriously. You think the sub-
ject over once more, and wonder if there is nothing
for the race but this continual groping in darkness.
With a sigh for humanity, you ask, " Is this then all ?
Has Nature, with unceasing toil, during all these mil-
lions of ages, been fitting up this planet for the recep-
tion of her sovereign, Man, and, after her prolonged
apprenticeship, with the accumulated wisdom of cycles
instead of years, and the united skill of unnumbered
forces ready to do her bidding, must her last and
crowning effort prove only a stupendous failure ? "
The morning bell rings ! You must stop moralizing,
and take your place with the stupid throng you now
feel mankind to be. You arise, but before leaving
your room, you must replace those letters in your
trunk. With a feeling of mingled shame, vexation
and discouragement you take up the package, when,
lo I there lies a letter from the very friend you had
seen in your evening^s experiment. A thought flashes
through your mind, and if a thunderbolt had fallen at
your feet, you could not have been more thoroughly
electrified. For a moment you are powerless. There
lie those letters as they have lain for weeks, — the one
all inanity, — empty as the space beyond the spheres ;
the other full of the fire of thought, — the earnestness
of a great mind, and the glow of an affectionate heart.
320 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
Happening to have been in haste when you filed them
away, you had attended to nothing but the order of
their dates, and this from your friend, folded, it may
be, inside out, had lain pressed upon that wanting all
character, until the very spirit of your friend was
stamped upon the one as well as upon the other. May
it not be possible, then, that your experiment has, in-
deed, been a success ? You think it more than possi-
ble, and resolve to repeat it at the earliest opportunity,
and with little fear for the result. You try again.
Fortunate in your selection, your success more than
realizes your highest anticipations, and you tremble
with a joy you hardly dare to cherish. Is it strange
that you begin to feel a measure of confidence in its
reliability ? What an extended field for future explo-
ration now opens before you 1 " Where," you ask,
" have been the sages of all past time ? What hand
can have lain so heavily on the eyelids of a slumber-
ing world as to have deprived it of the knowledge
even of so wonderful a possession ? " Your first im-
pulse is to publish at once an account of your experi-
ment, and the result. A little reflection determines,
you to keep your own counsels, at least for the pres-
ent, and by a course of experiments, which you can
yourself* conduct, to gain some information relative to
the nature of this new-found faculty, and the extent
of its real practical value to mankind. Circumstances,
no doubt, have more than indicated the wisdom of that
determination.
DABKNE8S FAVORABLE TO THIS VISION. 321
QUESTION J J,
"Are these objects seen in daylight, or in darkness ? "
They may be seen in both. Usually, however, and
it seems to me for valid reasons, darkness is prefera-
ble. No one will ask me to prove that to the human
eye a weaker may, by the presence of a stronger light,
be rendered altogether imperceptible. Any one who
has, in the dark, drawn a common match over a rough
surface, has observed a line of bright light following
in its path, only visible, however, until the match be-
comes thoroughly ignited, when it is apparently extin-
guished. That such, however, is only its apparent
condition, may be readily ascertained by extinguishing
the match, when the former, which is a weaker, and in
some respects a different light, will at once reappear.
So with that under consideration. Usually the psy-
chometer sees by a weaker, and it may be, a very dif-
ferently derived light from that which renders visible
the tangible objects by which we are surrounded.
Hence, it seems reasonable to conclude that the more
perfect the darkness that shadows the outward sight,
the more perfect will be this interior vision, if I may
be permitted thus to designate it.
Again, who of us but has been so blinded by the
sunlight on the snow, for example, as to be quite inca-
pable of discerning even the outlines of objects in a
room we may have suddenly entered, when that room
was as full of daylight as a common uncurtained win-
dow could make it ? Yet to us, for the time being,
even this daylight has been darkness, and we have
found ourselves incapable of using it until the organs
322 THE SOUL OF THINGS. »
of vision have become accustomed to the change.
How materially would the diflSculty be increased,
should we continue to stand in the sunlight thus re-
fleeted by the snow, and examine minutely the con-
tents of a room but dimly lighted by a taper of the
olden time. Many of us would find ourselves physi-
cally incapable of any such examination, while per-
haps there are none among us to whom the task would
not be indeed a difficult one. In many respects the
sensations of the psychometer, when in the presence
of any strong light, whether natural or artificial, are
analogous to those above indicated, and hence, when
vision only is required, one is often compelled to wait
not only until the organs become adjusted to the new
or changed condition, bid until the eye lias been wholly
relieved from any sensible impression made by ordi-
nary light, before these objects become distinctly visi-
ble, or the brain is capable of taking cognizance of
their peculiarities.
May it not, then, with even more propriety, be said
that in this, as in common sight, the ability to use the
weaker is negatived by the presence of other and
stronger light ? Be this as it may, the efiect is the
same.
Farther than this, there are times when, either from
some peculiar physical condition of the psychometer,
or from some peculiarity of the atmosphere, or of both
combined, the light by which objects are thus made
visible vies in strength, or illuminating power, even
with daylight. Of several instances, analogous in
character, the following will, no doubt, sufficiently illus-
trate the peculiarity to which I refer.
DARKNESS FAVORABLE TO THIS VISION. 323
At one time, while travelling in the West, during
the summer of 1861, we were compelled to wait a
weary time for the train which was to convey us to
Peru, 111., it having been delayed considerably beyond
the usual hour. We had walked with our children
through town until they were too weary to appreciate
the little beauty left by the previous frosty night.
They had exhausted the novelties of the station, con-
sisting of railroad charts and a few dusty as well as
rickety seats, and now began to watch earnestly for
the coming of the iron horse. At length, his unearthly
scream gave warning of his approach, and he came
thundering past, as if resolved to visit utter ruin on
those who would chain his spirit to the sluggish will
of man. " Twenty minutes for dinner 1 " sang out the
brakeman, after announcing the name of the place,
while a general rush of the passengers, some to the
eating-room, and others to the various places to which
they were destined, either for business or pleasure,
soon gave me my choice of a seat in any one of the
vacant cars. Taking the children each by the hand,
while my husband gave orders in reference to baggage,
etc., I selected a car and walked leisurely in, very nat-
urally expecting myself and children to be, for a few
moments at least, its only occupants. Judge of my
surprise, on glancing around, as I entered the car, to
find it already crowded with passengers! Many of
them were sitting perfectly composed, as if, for them,
little interest were attached to this station ; while oth-
ers were already in motion (a kind of confused mo-
tion), as if preparing to leave. I thought this some-
what strange, and was about turning to find a vacant
324 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
seat in another car, when a second glance around
showed me that the passengers who had appeared so
indifferent to the arrival of the train at Joliet, were
rapidly losing their apparent entity, and in a moment
more they were to me invisible. I had had sufficient
time to note the features, dress, and personal appear-
ance of several, and, taking a seat, I awaited the re-
turn of the passengers, thinking it more than probable
I might find in them the prototypes of the faces and
forms I had a moment before so singularly beheld ; nor
was I disappointed. A number of those who returned
to the car I recognized as being in every particular the
counterparts of their late but transient representatives.
But the question arises, how could these individuals
be seen in the car, when, in fact, they were not in the
car at all, but in the dining-room of the station ?
We know there are peculiar conditions of the atmos-
phere which render it, like the polished plate of the
skilful artist, capable of receiving and of reflecting
the images of objects occupying positions favorable
for such reflection of their images. Of this we have
ample evidence in the various species of mirage.
That there may be conditions of the atmosphere fitting
it not only to receive and reflect, but also to retain
these images, after the objects have been themselves
removed, appears to be a conclusion not altogether un-
warranted by facts. That, in the above instance, the
persons or images seen were indeed the individuals
who at that moment were in the station, I do not be-
lieve. That the persons who had so lately been sitting
in the car, some of them, doubtless, for several hours,
had radiated to the surrounding atmosphere that ethe-
DARKNESS FAVORABLE TO TfflS VISION. 325
real fluid which stamps upon it these images, it being
in a condition to receive, to retain, and to render them
visible in open day, I regard as a simple, safe, and
natural conclusion.
Again, may we not suppose that every particle of
this fluid, like the particles of all other matter, is sub-
ject to the laws of attraction and repulsion? — that the
particles radiating from each individual, would, unless
prevented by some exterior force or interference, con-
tinue to attract each other, if not with the same power,
yet by virtue of the same or similar laws as those by
which their union had from the flrst been effected and
sustained? Let us then suppose the condition of the
atmosphere favorable for, or at least not in any way
opposed to, the free arrangement of these particles in
accordance with these laws, and I can see no valid ob-
jection to the idea of their continuing for a time to
preserve the form they have so long worn. This view
of the matter of course supposes that the objects thus
seen, however ethereal they may really be, are, never-
theless, material, tangible forms ; and in some instances
I have no doubt that such is the case. With many
persons the sudden appearance of shadowy forms, now
here, now there, which by the time the eye is adjusted
to observe objects of so aerial a nature are no longer
visible, is an almost every-day occurrence. Of course
they conclude their eyes have been at fault, — that no
form was there, — that the appearance was due to
some condition of the eye which they do not under-
stand, which cannot be of any earthly consequence,
and to observe which would, therefore, be folly in the
extreme. At other times there are sensations accom-
326 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
panying these appearances, and seemingly so con*
nected with them that one can but inquire if after all
they are not worthy of consideration* And again
there are times when the shadowy forms assume to
the inner senses all the characteristics of animated
life. At such times their presence may not be. recog-
nized by the outward sense of sight, and yet to the
individual who perceives them, that presence is none
the less a reality. Was it to this internal recognition
that Professor Longfellow referred when he wrote of
**PJ2AXT0MS.
" All houses wherein men have lived and died
Are haunted houses. Through the open doors
The harmless phantoms on their errands glide
With feet that make no sound upon the floors.
" We meet them at the door-way, on the stair,
Along the passages they come and go,
Impalpable impressions on the air,
A sense of something moving to and fro.
" There are more guests at table than the hosts
Invited ; the illuminated hall
Is thronged with quiet, inoffensive ghosts,
As silent as the pictures on the wall.
" The stranger at the fireside cannot see
The forms I see, nor hear the sounds I hear ;
He but perceives what is ; while unto me
All that has been is visible and clear.
" We have no title-deeds to house or lands ;
Owners and occupants of earlier dates.
From graves forgotten, stretch their dusky hands,
And hold in mortmain still their old estates.**
And this is true not only of houses and lands, but
" Owners and occupants of earlier dates *'
VISION WITH CLOSED EYES. 327
than the human period still hold in mortmain the dust
once animated by their life.
QUESTION IIL
** Are the eyes open or closed'^ "
They may be either. More frequently, however,
when only vision is required, it is perhaps better to
close them, as the objects which meet the eyes, if
open, especially in the light, become mingled with, or
wholly crowd out of sight the views under considera-
tion. Some, no doubt, are better able to distinguish
between the two methods of sight when the eyes are
open than are others, yet I believe, judging from my
own experience, and from my observation of others
with whom we have experimented, that, under ordinary
circumstances, the psychometer is able to give more
accurate descriptions with closed than with open eyes.
When the object of the experiment is not vision, but
the exercise of some other sense, there may be less
necessity for shutting from sight the objects by which
we are surrounded. Still I find that whatever serves
to disturb the mind, or in any way to call it from the
recognition of phenomena for which the experiment is "
being conducted, in just so far serves to render it a
fruitless effort. In my own case, this rule applies to
any unhappy condition of the mind, whether induced by
any outward unpleasant circumstance, or by thoughts
having a tendency to produce dissatisfaction, or even
unrest.
It should not be inferred from the preceding obser-
vations that all mental activity, or even intense mental
328 THE SOUL OF THINOS.
excitement, is opposed to the development of these
phenomena. On the contrary, the mind of the psy-
chometer was, perhaps, never more thoroughly active
or more intensely excited than during some of the ex-
periments recorded in this volume. In some instances,
as, for example, in the case of the oil-bearing coral, the
facts observed were, at the time, so at variance with
all received opinion on that subject among our sa-
vans, that the mere discovery of its true origin might
be considered of itself sufficiently startling; while
combined as it was with the discovery of the enormous
quantities underlying extensive districts, both in the
eastern and western hemispheres ; and not only so, but
with the feeling that one stood in those ancient seas,
while, extending to the right and left many, many miles
away, and stretching before one for many leagues, was
the glow and quiver of every rainbow hue, flashed
back by the contents of unnumbered millions of cells;
and with the reflection that every one of those cells
had been the many-sided habitation of a minute animal
whose very pulsations were throbs for the benefit of
humanity, and whose life was a willing charity reserved
for man whenever intellect should teach him its great
value, — was to realize emotions that language fails to
portray. But I must return to your inquiries.
QUESTION IK
'* But why designate this faculty * sight ^^ if the eye is not the
medium by which these impressions are conveyed to the brain? "
Simply because the one is no less sight than is the
other. Apparently the same organ of the brain which
WHY DESIGNATED SIGHT. 329
recognizes the delicate tints of a beautiful flower,
plucked to-day by the hand of innocent childhood, also
recognizes the gorgeous hues of those ancient gar-
lands with which our mother eafth so lavishly adorned
herself in the ages of her girlhood. That the power
of vision in the one case differs materially from the
same power in the other, is sufficiently evident; for
while the one requires, as a positive necessity, that the
lids be open in order to a correct perception of the
object by which the impression is made, they may be
in the other, according to circumstances, either open
or closed. While one requires light, either direct, or
. reflected from some luminous body, to enable it to dis-
tinguish the objects within its range, the other finds in
a pebble no larger than a common pea a sufficiency to
light up a world, while we read the myriad pages of
its thrilling history.
But there are times when the closed eyes of the
psychometer cannot see, and yet perhaps the true con-
dition of that with which he is in communication is as
accurately perceived as if the eye took cognizance of
all connected therewith. In such instances the im-
pression appears to be made directly upon the brain ;
and when the individual has learned to discriminate
between these direct impressions and the creations of
fancy, or the workings of the imagination, they may
be considered equally reliable with true vision. To
those who have never cultivated this faculty, the
above statement may appear somewhat incomprehensi-
ble ; but it is none the less a fact, only wanting proper
conditions to render it evident to any understanding
of ordinary capacity. The statement of Professor Ag-
28*
330 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
assiz, which may be fotind in his " Tour to Lake Supe-
rior," may not be altogether inappropriate in this con-
nection. He says, speaking of a certain fish, " I can
distinguish the European species by a single scale ;
but this not from any definite character, but rather by
a kind of instinct." He does not here claim to have
seen them, it is true, but what " kind of instinct " is
that which enables him to distinguish the European
from any other species, by a single scale ? Professor
Agassiz has, no doubt, been too much absorbed by the
investigations to which he has given the energies of a
great mind, to permit him to analyze the sensations to
which he so pleasantly alludes. Were he to do so, I
can but believe he would find himself possessed of a
faculty, compared with which, in the scope of its com-
prehension, instinct, as defined by our lexicographers,
is but as the limited sphere of the coral polyp com-
pared with that of the free, intelligent man. On the
other hand, a person of very imaginative nature should
be exceedingly careful in reference to trusting these
sensations, and believing them to be genuine impres-
sions, with which neither fancy nor imagination has
anything to do. Especially should great care be exer-
cised where the supposed impression relates to, or may
in any way afiect, any other than the individual im-
pressed. A world of mischief has, in my estimation,
resulted from our ignorance of the origin of thoughts
which, springing to life within the brain, assume at once
the character of legitimacy, and demand of us an ac-
knowledgment of their claims to our consideration.
Though there is no doubt that, at times, these thoughts
are the ofispring of influences existing exterior to,
WHY DESIGNATED SIGHT. 331
readily acting upon, and sensibly affecting, that deli-
cate organ, the brain, but influences of a nature so re-
fined that the outward senses have as yet no power to
take cognizance of their presence, yet at other times
they are, as the experience of all will testify, neither
more nor less than distorted fancies, resulting from
disturbances in the electrical or nervous forces of
one's own system, and no more worthy of trust than
are the changing breezes of an April morn. By a
want of this knowledge, how many loving hearts have
been sundered forever I Over how many families has
it permitted some deadly upas to spread its branches
of blight, until the cup df joy, once brimming with a
healthful harmony, a kindly sympathy, a tender affec-
tion, has been turned to the gall of bitterness, and un-
til the peace-loving olive has been changed to the
wormwood of woe I Throughout how many neighbor-
hoods has it scattered the seeds of dissension, and
nourished the roots of strife, until the beautiful plants
of friendly, social intercourse, have been robbed of
their sustenance and uprooted from their place I The
effects are none the less terrible that any lack of care
on this point may have been due to our ignorance of
their nature or of their source. Like all things else,
they must be studied to be known. Persons have said
to me, " I can never understand my impressions. At
one time a matter of which I had previously known
nothing has been vividly impressed upon my mind, and
I have afterward found it to have been in strict accord-
ance with the facts. Again, an impression would be
made, fully as strong, in every particular as distinct as
the first, and I would feel certain of its correctness,
332 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
when I have afterward learned that in this instance it
was without any foundation in fact, and perhaps di-
rectly opposed to the true state of the matter to which
it had referred. Sometimes, several instances occur-
ring successively would prove to be in accordance
with the facts to which they related, and I would
conclude that, of a truth, my impressions had at last
come to be reliable, when, lo I perhaps the succeeding
instance playing me wholly false, I would find myself
acting the part of a dupe of my own credulity. With
a cheek ever ready to crimson at the naked remem-
brance of these instances, I have long since resolved
never to heed impressions more, let their origin be
what it may."
But, my friend, is there any wisdom in thus summa-
rily disposing of a power, the possession of which,
when you have learned its use, and understand the
laws of its modifications, may be found of incalculable
value ? Depend upon it, these phenomena are not due
to chance. They are governed by law, as the wander-
ing stars are governed by law, and it is our business
to observe and compare the facts of our being, and of
our relation to the inner as well as to the outer world,
if we would learn the laws upon which depend the de-
velopment of that being and the harmony of those re-
lations. To my mind, the folly consists, not in the fail-
ure of an honest endeavor to give to any fact its ap-
propriate niche in the universe of facts, but in hence-
forth refraining from all efibrt to do so, because, for-
sooth, a previous efibrt has proved unsuccessful.
MESMEBIO INFLUENCE UNNECESSABY. 333
QXTESTION r.
** Ik no Mesmeric influence needful to induce the required
degree of sensitiveness of the brain, and of those organs which
convey these impressions to the brain ? '*
None whatever ! Except in very rare instances this
influence should never be accepted by the psychome-
ter immediately previous to an experiment. To those
who have studied the subject, the reasons for this will
appear suflSciently obvious without further elucidation.
For the benefit of those who have given little or no
attention to the subject, I will endeavor to explain.
That there are individuals so sensitive to the Mes-
meric influence as to give back, for the time being,
mere reflections of the mind or will of the Mesmerizer,
is a fact too well established to require argument in
this connection. Now, let us suppose you wish an ex-
periment in psychometry. You Mesmerize your sub-
ject, and give to him or her, as the case may be, a frag-
ment, perhaps of some rock, or a chip from some struc-
ture, or a bone from some animal, with the nature and
much of the history of which you are already familiar.
The description coincides perfectly with the facts, so
far as you know them. " What a wonderful phenome-
non ! " the credulous bystander is ready to exclaim.
But, how wonderful ? Is not the result in strict ac-
cordance with the known laws of Mesmerism ? You
have proved nothing, either for or against psychome-
try. The whole matter rests on precisely the same
basis now as before the experiment. " But," you say,
*^ suppose that, while in a Mesmeric condition, the pay-
334 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
chometer is handed a specimen by a third individual,
of which, both in its nature and history, I am wholly
ignorant, and the description of which is, as in the first
instance, perfectly correct?" Though such a phenom-
enon has never come under my own observation, I do
not deny its possible occurrence. But suppose such a
result can be obtained, the same accuracy of descrip-
tion may be had without any such previous prepara-
tion ; and if it might not in all, it certainly would in
numbers of instances, wholly invalidate the experi-
ment ; for, while we know that by the establishment
of a certain electrical relation between Mesmerizer
and subject, the latter, for the time being, lives, as it
were, in a world prepared and peopled by the mind of
the former, may we not suppose that by consent of the
operator a secondary relation, if I may use the term,
may be established between the subject and another
individual, which shall give, if not equally perfect, at
least similar results to those developed by the primary
relation, or the relation between operator and subject?
And may not this be done by the subject simply com-
ing within the electrical atmosphere of this third indi-
vidual, who is supposed to be cognizant of the facts
connected with the specimen examined ? If so, what
right have we to conclude that the effect is not due to
Mesmerism, as a consequence of this same electrical
relation? The fact is, it is not to prove that mind
can read mind, that the experiment is instituted. It
is to ascertain, if possible, whether mind, unassisted
by the outward senses, can read the sealed-up records
of the ages from the merest fragment of that volume,
on the pages of which are daguerreotyped all the por-
WHERE THE GAZE IS DIRECTED. 335
traits of the past ; and to do this the mind of the ob-
server should be as free as possible from every influ-
ence that could weaken the testimony in reference to
the result. Recollect, the question is not whether
this knowledge can be obtained, but whether it can be
obtained by this particular means. The faintest tinge
of light, then, that greets the eye of the psychometer,
unassisted by any influence save that of the specimen
you are supposed to have given him, is worth infinitely
ii^ore in this experiment than would be the brightest
sunshine that has ever blessed the world, if, for him to
behold it, it must first be discerned by another ; and
the softest sound his ear is capable of receiving and
distinguishing as such, is of more value than the thun-
ders of a thousand cannon, if, to be recognized by his
sense, they must be conveyed thereto by the force of
your will. Nor can I believe that, as a rule, this influ-
ence is of greater value subsequent to an experiment
of the kind under consideration, than would be the
same influence subsequent to the healthful exercise
of any other faculty, whether mental or physical.
QUESTION VL
** Is the gaze directed into space, or is it directed upon some
object out of which these various forms appear to arise V
As soon expect the anatomist in a charnel-house,
dissecting-knife in hand, and invested with full author-
ity to select his own subject, to direct his gaze into
space for bone and muscle, for nerve and fibre, when
the objects of his search are within his very grasp.
As soon expect the connoisseur to look for figures of
336 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
beauty on the unstained canvas, while he is literally
surrounded by that on which the artist has, as it were,
kindled the quenchless fires of very life. I fear I
shall fail to answer this inquiry fully, and to the satis-
faction of those who have in all apparent honesty pro-
pounded it. To an individual having any conception
of the nature of this faculty the question is simply
absurd. We do not look into space for the tangible
objects by which we are surrounded; why should it
be expected of us in the instances under considera-
tion ? Nor do we in common life direct the gaze or
fix the attention upon one object in order to behold
another, or with any expectation of seeing other ob-
jects take the place of the first, under the influence
of our gaze. Are we more likely to do so when the
entire range of vision is crowded to excess with forms
heretofore, perhaps, as utterly unknown to us as they
could have been had they never had an existence, and
forms, too, as startling as they are new? No; the psy-
chometer has little need to look for objects. In nine-
ty-nine cases out of every hundred he sees infinitely
more than he can describe. He has little need to hunt
up views; they crowd themselves into his presence,
not as if endowed with life and its attribute of locomo-
tion only, but as if they read the mandates of the mind
and hasted to obey.
QUESTION rij.
** Bvi why, then, as in numbers of instances recorded in this
volume, talk of inability/ to see objects distinctly ? If the power
of vision is, in one instance, so acute that the finest particles of
WHY SOME OBJECTS ARE INVISIBLE. 337
matter, as they arrange themselves in various forms under the
influence of electrical currents, are clearly visible, why is it that,
perhaps in the same experiment, there is an acknowledged ina-
bility to discern distinctions which even to common sight wovM
he strikingly apparent f "
Did these scenes hang silent before us, as do the
pictures in the gallery of the artist, — were they fixed
and immovable as are the landscapes of a country vil-
lage, — inert as are the granite hills of our own New
England, — then might be expected of us a careful
delineation of all their characteristics, so far, at least,
as the time given to the examination would permit us
to observe them in the minutiae of detail. But when
it is remembered that to prevent these scenes passing
with the velocity of light an energetic action of the
will is required, and required continually, it will be
understood that the difficulties are of no ordinary char-
acter, and are, perhaps, peculiar to this sight alone.
Beside, the value of this vision depends, in a great
measure, upon the ability of the individual to distin-
guish between the nature of two influences, or rather
the source of each, and at the same time to render
himself positive to the one influence and passive to
the other. It is, perhaps, needless to add that, in the
ability to do this, people differ, and differ esssentially,
as does the same individual differ at different times. I
will endeavor to render this idea more lucid by illus-
tration. Let us imagine, then, for example, that you
have composed yourself for the examination of some
specimen. The field of vision is, as may not be unfre-
quent in your case, crowded with forms which you
29
338 THE 80UL OP THINGS.
recognize as being wholly independent of any influ-
ence derived from the specimen. Their appearance is
involuntary, and their disappearance, without a change
in yourself from the negative or passive to the posi-
tive condition, is entirely beyond your control. But
you cannot, at this time, pass to the positive condition
without rendering yourself equally incapable of dis-
cerning the forms or scenes resulting either from the
one influence or the other. In other words, you can-
not now render yourself positive to this first influence,
whatever it may be, and thus banish from sight its
resulting images, or passive to the influence of the
specimen, and thus bring before you the scenes with
which it may hitherto have been associated, while at
another time to do this might be but the work of a
moment.
Again, we must remember that even in connnon
sight the image of any object presented to the eye
must be recognized by the brain, or there can be no
true vision. Without this recognition, the object may
be there, it is true, and its image may rest on the
retina, but so far as your knowledge of the fiict is con-
cerned, it is simply invisible. If this may be true of
the brain in reference to conunon sight and the gross
materials by which we are everywhere surrounded,
how much more so in reference to that subtle sense,
and to those excessively refined materials to which we
are directing our attention I And if true of the brain
as a whole that it may remain passive to one influence
and positive to another, why may it not be true of the
brain in its several parts ? I believe it may be so ;
and that in this fact lies the secret of those irregular!-
NATURE OF THE LIGHT. 339
ties and seeming inconsistencies to which our seventh
inquiry especially alludes. It is not to be denied,
however, that there are sensations connected with this
interior vision, which are not common to the outer
sense of sight ; but as I shall have occasion to allude
to this subject hereafter, I proceed to the considera-
tion of
QUESTION nil,
" What is the nature of this light , and whence is it derivedV*
To this inquiry I frankly confess my inability to give
any definite reply. There are doubtless numbers of
persons who will feel satisfied that the answer is alto-
gether too evident to admit of any controversy ; and yet,
were the answers of these several individuals to be
obtained, they would be found to difibr as widely as
do the color of their eyes, or as their various methods
of thought. To one it seems a necessity that this
light, derived, as he supposes, from all bodies radiating
light, whether natural or artificial, as well as from all
objects reflecting such light, has, as it were, been drunk
in and treasured up by the very elements of which
the specimen is composed, and from the earliest date
of its existence, only to be given off" now, when the
fnagnetism of the human brain shall have induced suf-
ficient activity in the infinitesimal particles of the hith-
erto latent mass. " While," he would contend, " to as-
sume that all things, everywhere, are continually repro-
ducing themselves or their images upon the face of all
else, is, at most, but a step in reasoning from the known
to the unknown, and one that may be taken with appji-
340 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
rent security ; we have then," he will add, " only to
admit that these daguerreotyped images are visible to
the sensitive eye of the psychometer, and we have
the whole matter before us, with outlines so well de-
fined that a few experiments would be quite sufficient
to set at rest at once and forever all questions of
doubt." To another, however, this method of account-
ing for these phenomena is the veriest folly. He be-
lieves that the human being combines two distinct na-
tures. That the outer — the physical — is simply the
medium through which the inner — the spiritual —
sustains to the more gi*oss materials of the outer world
that relation which nature evidently regards as of vital
importance in the perfecting of the highest workman-
ship of her hands. That, while an intimate organic
relation between these two natures is a positive neces-
sity to the continued exercise of that functional power
which is dependent upon the will, there may be, and
often is, a partial and temporary suspension of that
union or relation, granting to the spiritual nature com-
parative freedom from the dead weight of the inert
physical. That the spirit, in this semi-independent
existence, assuming a measure of its native force, is,
as it were, capable of annihilating time and space, and
living over in an hour the countless lives of the ages.
That the office of the specimen, which, by being
placed upon the forehead, is brought as nearly as pos-
sible to the brain itself, is merely, by its magnetic
influence, to direct the spirit, or rather, perhaps, to
lead it in the pathway of its own experience, when
thus comparatively free from its earthly moorings.
This, to his understanding, is a satisfactory solution of
the entire problem.
NATURE OF THE LIGHT. 311
While, however, I would most willingly accord to
each of these views any merit it may justly claim, I
cannot accept either the one or the other as the only
legitimate answer to this inquiry, until the facts bear-
ing upon this question have been carefully collected
and critically compared. There may be truth in both
these propositions ; but that a sufficient number of
facts from the various departments of this science
have been collected to furnish the needful materials
for building a theory that shall prove perfect in all its
parts when the dimless eye of research shall have
pierced the last shadow, and shall have discovered the
last treasure in the realm of inquiry, is, of course, not
to be presumed. Indeed, that life will have been well •
spent which at the close of " threescore years and
ten," can lay claim to the accomplishment of so mas-
terly an endeavor. That, however, sufficient material
has already been gathered together to justify the com-
mencement of so wonderful a structure, when the sev-
eral parts shall have been fitted to their places, is not,
perhaps, an assumption without basis.
Let us recapitulate ; and among the apparent facts
bearing upon the question of the nature and source of
this light we find, —
Ist. That in this, as in ordinary sight, light is indis-
pensable to the recognition of objects in the manner
under consideration, — that is, by sight.
2d. That in this, as in ordinary sight, light appears
to be either direct or reflected, or it may appear gen-
erally difiused, as is the case with daylight when the
sky is overcast with clouds.
3d. That the light by which objects are thus seen
29*
342 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
is overpowered, dissipated, or rendered imperceptible
by the presence of ordinary light, if strong. Espe-
cially is this the case when the rays are permitted to
fall directly in the face of the psychometer, unless, as
is sometimes the case, he can render himself positive
to ordinary light, and passive to that under considera-
tion. But, whether this light be of the same nature
as common light, differing only in intensity, or whether
they be two distinctly differing elements or principles,
it is, perhaps, more difficult to preserve toward them
this twofold — this positive and negative or receptive
— relation than toward any other influences by which
we are surrounded, and which is so readily recognized
by both the exterior and interior faculties.
This light, unperceived by the outward sense of
vision, at least under ordinary circumstances, and
hence not generally recognized as a subject for scien-
tific investigation, I take the liberty to designate Lor
tent Light, until some name shall be substituted more
clearly expressive of its several characteristics.
4th. That latent artificial light (see experiment No.
22, and others of a kindred character) is more readily
radiated than is latent natural light; at least, that such
is the case under certain conditions or circumstances.
Whether such would be apparent to all individuals,
or to the same individual under all circumstances, is,
of course, as yet an unestablished, though seeming-
ly a probable, conclusion. If such be the case, and
I am inclined to the opinion that it may be,, then,
whether this difference in radiation be the result of
some difference in the chemical or electrical forces of
the two substances, if substances they may be called,
NATURE OF THE LIGHT. 343
or whether, from some other cause, the one becomes
apparent while the other remains in statu quo, and, if
so, the cause to which this result is due, I leave, for
the present at least, to the consideration of those who
have made light and its properties a subject of inves-
tigation.
5th. That if the light which reveals to us this inner
world be derived from the specimen, there are abun-
dant reasons for presuming that the latent fight of the
past, that of the present, as, also, that of all interven-
ing time, may exist together in the same specimen,
and, when conditions are favorable, may become appar-
ent to the psychometer.
6th. That in the examination of each particular
specimen, the light by which its surroundings are ob-
served corresponds to the light of the locality from
which it was obtained, and the period to which the
examination may be confined. To illustrate: — I am
given a specimen I have never seen, and all knowl-
edge of which is carefully concealed by the experi-
menter. I take it with my eyes closed, that I may
form no idea of its nature from its appearance. When
in a suitable condition for an experiment there is no
seeing " through a glass darkly." There is, perhaps,
the glowing light of day, or the more dim rock-light
of underground ; there may be the fierce glare of the
volcano, or the soft water-light under the wave ; there
is the glittering light of golden sands, or the spark-
ling glimmer of silvery seams; the clear, pure, life-
giving atmosphere of the present, or the atmosphere
of the long ago, laden with steam and heavy with the
vapor of minerals and metallic substances ; the direct
344 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
and searching beams of a southern sun, forever multi-
plied by gorgeous bloom, while they are softened by
the fadeless verdure of luxuriant foliage, or the weak
and scattered rays of a chilled and snow-capped moun-
tain peak, or of a no less chilled and ice-bound Arctic
plain. Nor is this all. It may be observed, further, —
7th. That with many of the great changes to which
the specimen, the globe, or that portion of the globe
in which the specimen has existed for age^, has been
subjected, there is a corresponding change in the
quantity, the quality, and, perhaps, in the very nature
of the light which becomes present to the sight of the
psychometer.
Such are some of the facts; but the question, "What
is tlie nature of this light, and whence is it derived ? "
is still unanswered. I do not pretend to answer it;
but, in turn, I ask. Does the psychometer, in any in-
stance, see only by the light contained in or radiated
by the specimen examined? I do not deny it; still,
granting such to be the case, between the light which
renders visible this outer world and its multitudinous
formS; and that under consideration, there exists, it ap-
pears to me, a wide and, as yet, an unbridged chasm.
True, by its discoveries science is gradually narrowing
this abyss, and we may, perhaps, hereafter find that at
their extremes the boundary lines of these two realms
melt into one, or, possibly, that no boundary save the
measure of our capabilities ever existed between
them. Let us calculate, if wo can, how nearly these
two limits already approach each other.
It is well known that, for some time after exposure
to the direct rays of the sun, the diamond and other
NATURE OF THE LIGHT. 345
gems will radiate a brilliant light, especially if placed
in darkness. We have seen, page 29, that, even in
the most perfect darkness it is possible to secure, the
image of one object may become stamped upon the
very elements of another, and that without contact.
And in view of these facts we may ask, without ef-
frontery, Who shall say that the radiation of the gem
has ceased when its brilliancy is no longer visible ? If,
then, the gem is capable of such radiation, — if a coil
of string may, without light and without contact, leave
its image upon the metallic plate, — is there any ab-
surdity in supposing that the commonest objects by
which we are surrounded are continually radiating
that light, or those forces which, when collected, if not
themselves visible, produce at least visible results?
For years I have occasionally noticed, in rooms that
no external light could enter at the time, a radiation
from wall and ceiling which sometimes for an instant
would flash with electrical brightness. At other times
a quivering, wavy light, somewhat resembling the
Aurora Borealis in some of its appearances, would
float, perhaps, from one end of a wall to the other
before it would wholly disappear. Of late I have ob-
served these appearances more frequently ; and some-
times, in rooms that have during the day been open to
sunlight, I have found it no longer a fitful flash remain-
ing visible only for an instant, but of such even, steady
strength, that, before any artificial light has been intro-^
duced for the evening, I have been able to read and
write by it after daylight had become altogether insuf-
ficient to enable me to perform such labor. In such
instances, may it not be inferred that, by exposure to
346 » • THE SOUL OP THINGS.
tlie light of day, the active principle of this element,
be it what it may, becomes excited and its effects
greatly intensiified? And yet, except as in the case
of the gem, it may be doubted whether even this in-
tensified radiation would be observed by the outward
eye in its normal condition. So closely, however, is
the sensation in these instances allied to that of com-
mon sight, that only the fact that persons, whose exter-
nal organs of visions are even stronger than my own,
have been unable to discern it has led me to suppose
it possible the recognition may be due to some other
than the outward faculty of sight.
Thus far the facts appear in favor of the supposition
that the psychometer sees only the daguerreotyped
images of past or present forms. But there is another
class of facts to which I must call attention, and which
may, I fear, be regarded as even more incomprehensi-
ble than is that class already considered. I refer to
those sensations which seem to indicate actual exist-
ence in the locality whence the specimen was obtained,
and not only so, but existence in the locality at the
time of the occurrence to which the examination re-
lates ; for, instead of being at all times seen directly
before the face, as it seems to me we might reasonably
expect were these images contained in the specimen,
the psychometer is not unfrequently compelled to look
up, or down, or at either side of his own position, to
, look near by him, or afar ofi*, as the case may require,
to , turn round, or change his position, so that scenery
which was at one time in the rear of that position may
now be before his face, in order to obtain a clear view
of it, as any one would find it needful to do were he
NATURE OF THE LIGHT. 347
actually in the same locality and desirous of beholding
all that might come within the sphere of his vision in
every direction. In short, the entire sensation is as
if he lived and moved, perhaps in the light and atmos"
phere of to-day, perhaps in that of a million years ago,
himself a living, sentient being amid living forms ; not
merely beholding their daguerreotype d images upon
the flinty fragment, but an observer of the life and
liabits of those beings, as if they swarmed the waters
of the present seas, or roamed the earth to-day, rather
than centuries agone. And this sensation is not unfre-
quently so absolute, the consciousness of an existence
in the then and there is so perfect, so vivid, that a sud-
den return to the now and here, to a recognition of
the occurrences of the present, may be attended by
a shock, with nervous derangements that are some-
times felt for hours afterward. This sensation is some-
what analogous to that produced by the galvanic bat-
tery, though it may be, perhaps, more refined in its
nature, and, if possible, more thoroughly difiused'
through the system. There are times, it is true,
when none of these sensations are realized — when
the views have all the appearance of daguerreotypes,
all the fixedness of the painted portrait. There are
other times when all that is seen appears objective,
indeed; but so diminutive are the objects, you feel
yourself at a loss for a criterion by which to judge of
their real or approximate size. These are, however,
the exceptions, being of comparatively rare occur-
rence. But you ask, —
318 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
QUESTION niL
" S^ what mecms does the psychometer appear to himsdf thus
suddenly to became a denizen of some other locality than that of
which he is really the inhabitant f "
We may ask, by what means does the mind project
that thought which, in a moment of time, sweeps the
boundary of the known universe, and returns to us
again, before we are aware it has fled, or even that it
has been fully formed ? Who is able to point out to
us the operations of our minds in connection with any
phenomenon of thought? Philosophers have, for cen-
turies, puzzled their brains, and puzzled each other,
with the inquiry, " How, or by what means, does the
mind of the human being reach out, as it were, from
himself and grasp the finite, or even grapple with the
Infinite ? " But men and women have not ceased to
think, nor yet is the speed of thought denied, because
the philosopher has thus far failed to answer the in-
quiry. Life itself is, as yet, an unfathomable mystery,
but who, on that account, would cease to Uve ? The
means by which we thus exchange the one place for
the other, or it may be, perhaps, exist in two distinct
and distant places at one and the same moment, I do
not profess to understand ; nor do I assert that such is
really the case ; only this, that so far as all the sensa-
tions of existence are concerned, I can distinguish no
difference between that which appears to me, at the
time, to be my life or existence on one side of the
globe; and that which is my acknowledged existence
on the other. Certainly, the senses — hearing, seeing,
MOTION OF THESE OBJECTS. S49
smelling, tasting, and feeling — are as acute in the for-
mer as in the latter case ; while, in the comprehensive-
ness of vision, the power and speed of transit, and in
much to which all our senses are keenly alive, the lat-
ter can bear no comparison with the former.
Again, Can motion be daguerreotyped? for it must
be remembered that these objects are seen, not at rest
nor in one position only, as if the uplifted arm of man,
or wing of bird, had been caught by the artist, and, be-
ing thus arrested, remained uplifted still, but each suc-
cessive movement reveals itself, as would be the case
were the being before you instinct with life.
It may perhaps be answered, " The motions or oc-
currences impressed upon an object, between two
given points of time, have, of necessity, an order of
impression; the image of the being which was the
subject of the motion, is fixed upon the specimen or
object impressed, in all the various attitudes it exhib-
ited at the time, and in the order of that exhibition;
and in that same order, or, if not the same, at least in
an order that renders the apparent motion equally per-
fect, and the apparent subject of the motion equally
substantive in all its parts, these images become visi-
ble to the psychometer." There is much in my own
experience that greatly favors this view of the matter,
and it may, perhaps, be the correct method of account-
ing for these phenomena ; still, there is much which,
as it appears to me, remains wholly unaccounted for on
this hypothesis.
But, again, you ask, " Does every grain of sand on
the wave-washed shore, every atom composing the
rocky ribs of this old earth, contain within itself the
80
350 THE SOUL OF TfllNGe.
likeness, the photographic image of every object, the
shadow of which may have reached it, even from a dis-
tant sphere ? and does it retain a record of every act
that has produced a vibration in some ethereal fluid, by
which it and the subject of that act are alike sur-
rounded?" I grant the idea seems strangely mon-
strous I Still, the fragment examined may be divided
and subdivided, until the dust of its cleavage alone re-
mains, and yet that dust will give you back the same
extended views, — the same entirety of objects, in the
infinitely varying positions consequent upon the activ-
ity duo to life, or upon changes resulting from the con-
ditions to which, at least on our own planet, matter is
subject ; and who shall limit the extent to which this
reduction may descend, and ever with the same result?
But if only daguerreotype or photographic images
are seen, how is it that we appear to ourselves to stand
witliin this vast circle of ever-active and ever-changing
forms ? If these objects and these scenes have their
only existence on or within the specimen, by what
means, by virtue of what law, do the movements of
the psychometer in any way aflFect the condition of
that which he beholds ? I admit that instances of this
kind are comparatively rare ; still, it has been, and can
be done. When, for example, I stood, or seemed to
stand, upon that immense accumulation of vegetable
matter, in one of those extensive fields of the Carbon-
iferous age, and by a slightly springing motion shook
acres of the spongy mass, the motion of that mass was
as really, to my senses, the result of my own motion,
as could have beeij the case had my physical being oc-
cupied a similar relation to a genuine mass of the same
DOES THE PSYCHOMETER TRAVEL? 351
material, were such to be found existing on the globe
to-day. Now the question is, could we thus bring our-
selves into contact with that which only exists as an
image of the real ? or is there somewhere in this infi-
nite universe, not the image only, but the positive, the
actual, the continued existence of all that has ever
been? If, as philosophers contend, "the slightest
movement of the smallest body produces results which
difiuse themselves through all space and all time," may
we not go still farther, and conclude that any impulse,
however metamorphosed it may have become in its ef-
fects, exists forever, in all its original purity?
But to proceed directly to the consideration of your
inquiry. In the examinations of Mrs. Taylor, of Lock-
port, and of Mrs. DoViel, of Pultneyville, both of New
York State, I observe the psychometer not unfre-
quently designates her course from the present to the
fonner locality of the specimen, by descriptions of va-
rious places and objects which would be met by the
common traveller in passing by the same route from
one place to the other. Other individuals with whom
we have experimented may have done the same, but
if so, I do not, at this moment, recall the circumstance.
Mr. Denton tells me, that of the thirteen specimens
examined, at his request, by Mrs. DoViel, during his
stay in Pultneyville, he does not remember that she
once failed thus to indicate her course. This I'do not
remember to have accomplished in a single instance ;
and by what means they succeed in doing so, I have
little or no idea. I may, at times, by the force of my
will-power, after having reached .the locality from
which the specimen was obtained, move in any diroo-
352 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
tion, and to almost any distance, either on the surface
or below it ; and in the same way I may go backward
in time almost indefinitely ; I may examine, with con-
siderable minuteness, objects that would seem to bear
no relation whatever to the specimen; I may name
with tolerable accuracy, and at times with, perhaps,
exact precision, the locality from which the specimen
was obtained ; but I do it by a sense of the position I
then occupy, instead of judging of my whereabouts
by any knowledge of the course by which my position
has been reached. Indeed, I seem, as it were, to close
my eyes on that which immediately surrounds me, only
to open them on that by which the specimen has been
surrounded at some other time and in some other
place, and by which I then seem to myself to be also
surrounded. Of course, this is not always the work
of an instant. My condition is not naturally passive
or receptive, — far otherwise; and at times I find it not
only difficult but nearly or quite impossible to become
so. For this reason I do not consider myself a natur-
ally ready psychometer. Though by cultivation of this
faculty I can now make examinations more readily,
and with far less fatigue, than I could do at the com-
mencement of our experiments, I have no doubt that
hundreds of persons could " begin where I leave off"; "
that is, that in their first examinations the descriptions
would be not only more full, more elaborate, than are
my own, even now, but that they would be conducted
in less time, and with far greater ease. I have spoken
of these visions as having been of frequent occur-
rence in childhood, but have said nothing of fatigue as
a consequence, for the simple reason that I felt none ;
CAUSES OF FATIGUE. 353
at least no more than one would naturally feel in look-
ing at any panorama of interest. Of course, in time,
one will weary even of sight-seeing. But the fatigue
to which I have elsewhere alluded is the result, not
of beholding, but of those efforts of the will by which
one influence is refused, while another is received ; by
which one object is retained in view, while others are
prevented from taking its place; those by which I
move from place to place, or by which I force myself
to remain in one position; those mental efforts by
which, while the will is thus actively engaged in one
direction, — perhaps in more than one, — I am at the
same moment comparing objects then seen with objects
familiar to common sight; examining structures and
parts of structures, hesitating and examining again,
that I may be certain I am making no mistake ; com-
paring the size of one object with that of another ;
measuring distances, calculating forces, and estimat-
ing, so far as is practicable, causas and effects, condi-
tions and their consequences.
When these views are spontaneous, — when the psy-
chometer is merely a passive spectator, as I was in
childhood, and as I may become at almost any hour of
the night or day, there is little cause for fatigue. The
scenes may be pleasing and, if in health, I may observe
or dismiss them, as I choose. They may be unpleasant,
and I have but to render myself positive to the influ-
ence by which they are produced, which, in my case,
unless ill, or over-exhausted, it is not diflicult to do,
and dissipate them at pleasure. It is when the exper-
iment is conducted for a purpose, and it becomes need-
ful to control the influence of different objects, — to
80*
r
354 THE SOUL OF THII96S.
distinguish between them, -^ to examine one object,
while others are, as it were, held in abeyance until
that is accomplished, etc., etc. ; or when iUness ren-
ders one passive, and lack of strength prevents a return
to the positive condition, that- these examinations ex-
haust the nervous energies of the system, and that
with a rapidity to which physical labor can bear no
comparison.
QUESTION IX,
** BiU how %s it possible, on any scientific or philosophic
principle, to (iccount for the hearing of sounds, when the cUmoi^
phere has for ages ceased to vibrate to the causes by which thiy
were originally produced ? "
If it be proven that we live only in the outward ;
that we hear only by mewas of vibrations in the atmos-
phere ; that the duration of a given vibration is depen-
dent upon a given amount of force ; and that, when the
sound is heard, the time elapsed since the force which
produced it was exerted, precludes a possibility of the
continuance of the vibrations, then, of course, there is
no room for controversy. But have we, as yet, arrived
at the ne plus ultra of knowledge in this direction ?
Are we absolutely certain that sounds can be conveyed
to the human ear only by the atmosphere, or by some
outward, tangible substance, as for instance, a block of
wood, or a bar of iron ? My own outward sense of
hearing is far from being acute, and has been so for
years, yet v/itliin that time I have distinctly heard
conversations between individuals who at the moment
were distant from the spot where I then was, between
PERCEPTION OF SOUNDS. 355
forty and fifty miles. Will any one pretend that this
was the result of vibrations in the atmosphere ? I do
not believe it. Yet, if you accept t"he fact, by what
means do you account for the occurrence, but by sup-
posing either that we may exist in two distinct
places at one and the same moment, or that some
fluid, infinitely more refined than is our atmosphere,
conducts to our interior sense of hearing vibrations
which the atmosphere fails to convey to the ear ? And
who shall say when, in this fluid, these vibrations
cease? or that they may not extend outward in time
as well as outward in space ? Or will you go still far-
ther, and suppose that all matter retains in a latent
condition whatever force may hitherto have been ap-
plied to it, and that, by the perception of these latent
conditions, the psychometer may, when this faculty
shall become developed in the fulness of its strength,
arrive at the facts of all past time ?
Usually, in my own case at least, these sounds are
perceived rather than heard. Sometimes they are as
clear and distinct to the internal sense of hearing as
are common pounds to the outward ear; and there
have been times when I could not, and cannot yet,
tell whether they were heard by the external or only
by the internal ear, so like were they in all respects
to sounds produced by outward, tangible forms. In
respect to the inability, in some instances, to distin-
guish between recognition by the external, and recog-
nition by the internal senses, hearing and sight stand,
I believe, alone. I do not remember that smelling,
taste, or feeling — though when in the psychometric
condition they may be acute as are hearing or siglit, —
356 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
have ever so closely approached the boundary between
these external and internal realms as to render it im-
possible for me to say by which they were really ad-
dressed.
QUESTION X
** Bui what is meant by ' going backward in time ' f Do you
wish to convey the idea that the spirit leaps, as it were, from the
present to the past ?"
I do not assert anything in answer to this inquiry,
save that the sensation is in all respects that of closing
the eyes on the present, and opening them on the past;
or, where the eflFort is made to do so, that of going
from the present to the past by force of the will. But
by what means this is accomplished, — what is the
cause of this sensation, — whether the sensation be a
true or a false one, or what may be the philosophy of
the whole matter, I can form no idea. I state only the
fact, desiring that others may direct their attention to
the subject, and arrive, if possible, at the true solution
of the problem.
QUESTION XI,
** Buty if this faculty be common to humanity, why have 1
no knowledge of my inheritance ? '*
Can you tell me, my friend, why it is that the room
in which the loved one breathed out the last ray of
earthly, organic life is still so very dear to you ?
What it is you so distinctly feel within those walls that
reminds you of the loved and lost ? Why, when you
pass within its portals, your eye instinctively turns
CONTINUED EFFECTS OP INFLUENCES. 357
toward sofa, bed, and chair, as if you expected the
same fond gaze to greet you now as it has often done
before ? Why you feel, to throw open that room to
the sunlight, and the air, and to all the influences of
busy life, would be to scatter to the elements a some-
thing which, however undefinable, is yet a something
, that unites you to that past in which your friend,
though with ebbing life, still thought and spoke and
loved ? Nor are these sensations confined to the room
alone. The clothing our loved ones have worn, the
books they have handled, and, I may add, even the
objects on which they have gazed with fondness and
pleasure, have all a kindred power to reproduce sensa-
tions of their presence. Who believes that the ideas
so finely embodied in the following lines by Wm. C. B.,
(I regret that I cannot give the entire name, but my
eflForts to find it have been unavailing) live only in the
fancy of the poet?
''BABT*S SHOES.
" Oh, those little, those little blue shoes I
Those shoes that no little feet use.
Oh, the price were high
That those shoes would buy ;
Those little, blue, unused shoes 1
" For they hold the small shape of feet,
That no more the mother's eyes meet,
That by God's good will,
Years since grew still,
And ceased from their totter so sweet.
** And, oh, since that baby slept
So hushed, how the mother has kept,
With a tearful pleasure.
That dear little treasure.
And over them thought and wept !
358 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
" For they mind her foreTermore
Of a patter along the floor ;
And blue eyes she sees
Look up from her knees
With the look that in life she wore.
" As they lie before her there,
There babbles from chair to chair
A little sweet face
That's a gleam in the place,
With its little gold curls of hair.
'* Then, oh, wonder not that her heart
From all else would rather part,
Than those tiny blue shoes,
That no little feet use,
And whose sight make the fond tears start"
Ay, mother, and have not " those little bine shoes "
a charm for thee independent of the remembrance
merely that thy darling once wore them? Art thou
at all times satisfied merely with beholding them? Is
there not a greater pleasure in clasping them in thine
own warm palms ? a sensation as of the little feet within,
upon which you have so often fastened them ? And
the hat that hangs against the wall, soiled by the little
fingers, tell me, mother, do j^ou ever take it from its
place, but you feel the " little gold curls," as they
cluster around your own fingers ?
Did we never realize their presence thus, save when
our friends have passed "the shadowy vale," we might,
perhaps, conclude that to the still-existing spirit, these
objects form, as it were, that
" bridge of light,
O'er whose unsteady floor, that sways and bends,"
\
\
CONTINUED EFFECTS OP INFLUENCES.
they come again to meet and mingle with their friends.
But such is not the case. Our friends may have left
us for a few months, or for a few weeks only. Day af-
ter day we visit the room they so lately occupied, and,
with that same sense, we recognize the presence of
the absent. How many times, since the little one went
home with grandmamma, only last week, have you seen
the laughing eyes peep from beneath the little hat,
and heard the pattering of the little feet I And is this
all fancy ? Trust for once, fond mother, to the answer
of thy throbbing heart. In a sense, the little one is
with you still ; and when you shall have become suffi-
ciently sensitive to these influences, there will be no
wall so thick, and no distance so great, as to preclude
the possibility of your holding daily communion with
those you love.
We perceive like causes producing like eflFects when,
standing in the presence of some old ruin " that Time
hath made," while the " ivy green " was gathering in
its close embrace the scattered fragments of the lonely
representative of ancient art, we run backward in our
sympathies to the brain that designed, and the taste
of a people which made possible this outward expres-
sion of those interior creations ; and this we do in-
stinctively, and without pausing to call to our remem-
brance the written record of its time. So with all our
relics, — the products of whatever clime or age.
Prom the tumuli of Great Britain, from the mounds
of America, from the tombs of Egypt, from the sepul-
chres of Judea, from the burial-places of every tribe
among the ancients, wherever it is practicable, we
gather these treasures of the past, and cherish them
^
360 THE SOUL OF THINGS.
with religious care. And why do we do this ? They
have a value, it is true, inasmuch as they furnish, so
far as they go, evidences of the habits and customs of
the people of those olden times. So have the histories
of those times a kindred value, — histories written by
men who have devoted years to the investigation of
these subjects, — yet with what widely diflfering sensa-
tions do we take into our hands a printed volume on
Egypt and her once powerful inhabitants, or on India
and her wonderful Cave Temples, for example, and the
long fringed cloth, heavy with emanations from the
dead, in which the mummy was wrapped for inter-
ment, and in which it has lain for centuries ; or one of
those implements of flint, by which the slender records
of forgotten tribes have been handed down the steep
of unknown centuries. The air in our museums —
both public and private — is laden with disagreeable
eflSuvia from these silent hosts, that so unerringly re-
peat the stories of their age ; and in your answer,
" It were sacrilege to wash them 1 " there is a volume
of the richest meaning, — of the highest import. I
can believe that a true warrior may derive inspiration
from the sword worn by a brave and daring comrade,
while that of a coward can be redeemed from its curse
only by the hand of courage. I can fancy that a man's
religious zeal and devotion may be intensified by the
possession of a copy of the Bible, worn with frequent
use by some heroic martyr, while had he received the
same inheritance, minus the influence, from some hea-
then or infidel, he might have been less devotional,
and perhaps far more critical. I can conceive it not
only possible, but probable, that a natural tendency to
DEPARTED SPIBITS. 361
aberration of the mental faculties may be developed
into actual madness by continued association with
places and objects which have previously received the
influence of the insane, unless counteracting influences
or agents be greatly in preponderance ; and it has fre-
quently been remarked that in places where one indi-
vidual has committed a crime, another, perhaps more
than one, has fallen a victim to the same temptation.
In view of these considerations, how many of us
can claim exemption from all experimental knowledge
of our strange inheritance ?
QUESTION XII,
^^ But among aU these ethereal forms ^ so vimdly present to the
senses y do you never recognize spirits of the departed? "
I have frequently been asked this question, but I
cannot answer it satisfactorily, even to myself. So far
as all my theories, bearing upon this subject, are con-
cerned, I frankly confess they do not admit even the
possibility of such an occurrence. Still, had I never
thus seen images of any save of those who had pre-
viously departed this life, I should, no doubt, have
concluded that if the question of spirit-existence and
of «pirit-intercourse with the living were not already
settled, I had, at least for myself, strong testimony in
favor of its aflSrmative. But when I see those who
are still in life, though separated from them many,
many miles; when, though thus separated and thus
seen, I hear them speak as distinctly as I hear the
sound of my own voice ; when I see those who de-
parted this life centuries ago, engaged in the same
81
3G2 THE SOUL OP THIN08.
pursuits, dealing with the same facts, and living essen-
tially the same lives which the habits and customs of
the times warrant us in believing they must of neces-
sity have lived ; when I see animals of which, for ages
past, the earth has borne no living representatives,
and see all these as vivid realities, — the question be-
comes to my understanding, at least, exceedingly com-
plicated, and I confess myself unable to perceive that
any theory with which I am acquainted can be made
to cover all the facts.
QUESTION XIII.
" BiU, granting the correctness of your own deductions, we
ask, how is it that with a given specimen the attention of the
psychometer is arrested by some one circumstance recorded in
the great volume of its history, — why some one condition, or
some ONB epoch, in that history stands out from all the others,
hold and distinct in its every outline, — while that same speci-
men, or, at least, every particle of which it is composed, has re-
ceived its share of the modifying influences of aU time f "
Permit me to submit, first, that though all matter
may, as it would seem, retain the influences of all
time, and may communicate these influences to the
sufEciently sensitive, still those of organic are more
marked, or more marked in their effects upon certain
organisms, than are those of inorganic matter ; second,
tliat of organic forms the influences of the animal
kingdom are more active or more marked than are
those of the vegetable kingdom ; third, that there is
observable, so it seems to me, a gradual increase of
PREDOMINANT INFLUENCES. 363
activity or force in these permeating influences as we
ascend in the scale of organization from the animal-
cule to the man ; fourth, that we may go yet farther,
and trace a corresponding increase in the force or
radiation of these influences as we ascend from the
lower to the higher developments of the human spe-
cies; fifth, that, farther still, we may find that, by
perhaps the same law, whatever serves to increase the
radiation of these influences, as, for example, great
grief, great fear, great gladness, or intense activity of
any one or all of the mental faculties, serves, also, to
render more efiective their results, both primary and
secondary. If this be so, and so it seems to me, then
a specimen of any geological era, however saturated
it may be with the influences of its own age, from ex-
posure to the stronger influences of the human period,
and the still stronger influences of some particular
portion of that period of more lively interest than an-
other, may yet more readily yield to the psychometer
the influences of that particular time. And may not
the same be true in a corresponding ratio of any unu-
sual activity or disturbance among the bodies of inor-
ganic matter, or even in the primary elements of all
things ? It has been suggested that a specimen yields
to the psychometer the influences it has received in
the same order as that in which they were impressed
upon it ; but in my own case this is not, or at least
does not appear to be, an invariable rule. Sometimes,
beginning with past conditions, I seem to trace the
events forward in time, and, to a great extent, in the
order of their occurrence. At other times, beginning
with more recent conditions, I seem to trace the events
3G4 THE SOUL OP THINGS.
backward in time, preserving here, also, in a great
measure, a like regard for the order of their occur-
rence ; while on still other occasions all relation be-
tween one view and another is wanting, and it is nearly
or quite impossible to give anything like a connected
accouilt of the scenes or objects which so suddenly
dart into sight and are as suddenly lost to sight again.
CONCLUSION,
Such are some of the inquiries which seem to me
likely, on reading the body of this work, to arise in
the minds of those who have never investigated the
subject for themselves. Granting the facts herein pre-
sented, are we too enthusiastic if we indulge the be-
lief that, with the general cultivation of this faculty,
there will dawn a brighter day than humanity shall
ever before have witnessed ? May we not reasonably
hope for less of wrong and more of right, when men
and women shall have learned that all on which their
shadows rest — every ray of light which they reflect
— become, emphatically, "recording angels," faithfully
transcribing their words, their deeds, their thoughts,
nay, the very motives of their hearts? Alas for the
peace of the evil-doer, when, from every objept by
which he is surrounded, his own image stares him
back in every attitude requisite for the consummation
of that crime, and with a persistency that time cannot
affect I Alas for the plotter of mischief, when he sees
in every flag in the pavement, every pebble in the
street, his thoughts indelibly recorded, and learns
that the record may be " known and read of all men " !
CONCLUSION. 365
Wlien the slanderer learns that "there are tongues
in trees " which still rehearse his truthful words with
the lying accent, will he hasten to repeat the false-
hood ? When the highwayman and the murderer shall
hear the voice of their victim ring out on the evening
breeze to every passer-by, and when they can no
longer wash from their own sight, or from that of the
avenger, the gore with which their hands are crim-
soned, will they be likely to enlarge the stains, or to
add another to the voices that already cry against
them ? I am not dealing in fancies. If the influence
of the suicide who falls a victim to insanity may be so
treasured by the wooden walls of the room in which
he expires as to present the psychomotor, years after-
wards, with a faithful representation of the sad, sad
scene (and this has come within my own experience),
are these suppositions unfounded — these conclusions
but over-wrought fancies ?
No doubt, when this subject shall have been more
thoroughly studied, and its various bearings more care-
fully observed, other questions will arise every way
equal in interest and importance to those already con-
sidered. Certainly, as I contemplate it, there open
before me fields for investigation that seem to know
no boundary. If we have correctly interpreted this
^^hand-writing on the wall,^^ what is there desirable
which the future does not promise us ? What records
arc here from which the historian may gather without
stint ! What domains for the naturalist I What limit-
less realms for the natural, the mental, and the moral
philosopher! And how, to the utmost extent of his
capabilities, may each revel in the field of his choice
31*
306 THE SOUL OP THINGS,
without fear of exhausting his suppHes! Truly, its
ultimate and inevitable results to science are grand
bi'vond comparison ; its benefits to humanity, in every
department of life, of incalculable value ! " He who
nms may read " the promise of the future I
IISTDEX.
Abercrombie cited, 13, 25, 47, 256.
*' on memory, 26.
Acton copper mine, 251-263.
Aerolite, 68-78.
" object of worship, 70.
" PainesviUe, 68-76.
" Aurora, Illinois, 76-78.
Alligator leather, 112, 113.
Amethystine quartz, 13(^143, 241-243.
Amphitheatre, Pompeii, 185, 186, 190.
" Herculaneum, 194.
Amulets, 297, 298.
Andral, Monsieur, 258.
Animals, effect of on human beings, 283.
Anthracite coal, 126.
Apparition of timber and vehicle, 22.
" seen by Nicolai, 260-263.
" " " Mad'Ue N. 301, 302.
Ararat, obsidian from, 217, 218.
Armadillo family, 107.
Arrow-head, flint, 218.
Atmosphere surrounding human be-
. ings, 279.
Autobiography of a boulder, 114-122,
Bats, blinded, 86, 87.
Baths of Caracalla, 172-174.
Bees, vision of, 19, 20.
Bishop, A. C. dream of, 296.
Black Tom, 259.
Boismont De, cited, 299, 500, 302.
Bone from Tully limestone, 66, 67.
Bone, fossil, 205, 217.
Bone-bed, Youngstown, 124.
Boulder, autobiography of, ft4-122.
Brewster, Sir David, cited, 12, 28.
Brick-oolored lava, 39, 40.
Brick from Oswego, 63.
Brodie on optic nerve, 16.
Bronze Age, 215.
Bruce mine, 237.
Buchanan, Dr. cited, 33, 34.
*< researches of, 33, 35, 316.
Calabazal, fossil from, 110-112.
Cannel coal, residuum of, 64.
Caracalla, baths of, 172-174.
Chamois horn, Switzerland, 98-100.
Character, described from letters, 35.
Charcoal from beam in Herculaneum,
191-196.
China, Porcelain Tower of, 161-163.
acero's viUa, 143-148.
Clairvoyance, 88, 307.
Coin, Grecian, 154, 156. .
Combe, (Jeorge, cited, 17.
on spectral illusions, 22, 23.
Dr. on illusions, 303.
Conclusion, 364-366.
Conglomerate, Eagle River, 100.
Connecticut Valley, fossil footprints of,
67-62.
Copeland, Dr. cited, 282.
Copper, Lake Superior, 229-236.
" Harbor, 230.
«< Mine, Mineral Point, 248, 2i0.
« Mine, Acton, 251-263.
" Black River, 272.
Coral from Niagara group, 54.
Cridge, Anne Denton, 36.
Crocodile, cloth of mummied, 201-204.
Crowe, Mrs. cited, 269.
« «< on perception of metals, 229.
I Cuba, description of. 111.
867
368
INDEX.
Dagnerrcotypen, 26.
IXunask, rod, 100-1(13.
Damon, Dr. case of, 258.
Darkness favorable to Psjcfaometric
vMoUf 321, SXt.
Darwin, Dr. experiment of, 13.
Disease, located by sensitires, 3i.
DoViel, Mrs. LudeUe, 80.
" ** experiment! bj, 8»-103.
Dreams, 293-297.
Early men of England, 204-217.
*• " Asia, 217, 218.
Eclipse of the Moon, 78-80.
Egyptian funeral customs, 200.
Eg}'ptians, ancient religion of, 202.
Emanations fh>m all bodies, 28.
Emmons, Dr. 130.
Experiments, 37-254.
Eyes, when closed, best for Psychomet-
ric vision, 327, 328.
Fair Penitent, 206.
Fancies, 331.
Farmer of Edinburgh, 40, 50.
Fingal»8 Cave, 132-136.
Fish-bone fossil, Painesville, 40-44.
Footprints, Connecticut Valley, 67-62,
205.
Forces, radiant, passing from all bod-
ies, 30, 31.
Fortune-telling, 289-203.
Fosgate cited, 304.
Fossil, globular, 127, 128.
»' Tertiary, Cuba, 110-112.
• Fox, W. J. cited, 25.
Gaze, where directed in Psychometric
vision, 335, 330.
Gibraltar, 107-172.
Girl, musical, 47, 48.
Glacier, action of a, 117-120.
Gold, Lake Superior, 234.
" Pike's Flat, California, 235-237.
" Australia, L'4-4, 245.
" Pike's Peak, 240-251.
Gulf near Lockport, 103.
Gypsum, Mammoth Cave, 92.
Hallucinations, 298-304.
Uerculaneum, 191-195.
Hitohcock, Prof, visions of, 263, 264.
" ** ched, 264.
Hood, E. P. cited, 263.
Homstone, Mount of Olives, 89-02, 155-»
100.
House of Bepresentatlvea, 160-163.
Hutehinson, Mr. on Melrose Abbey, 166w
nioMons of Hearing, 46.
Images seen, 21.
" " by Hugh Miller, 17, 18.
Impressions, 330.
*< made by all forces, 60.
Influence, why one perceived more
readily than another, 362, 363.
Insect, monstrous, seen, 38.
Introductory to Part n. 309.
Iron Age, 215.
Iron, Bulphoret of, 97, 06.
Jerusalem, 90-02, 165-160.
Jewess, vision of, 16.
Eilauea, lava from, 38, 39.
Eitto, Dr. 23.
Laurcntian rocks, 131, 132.
Lava from Eilauea, 38.
Lead ore, Galena, 238.
* mine near Galena, 97, 08.
' Wisconsin, 240-248.
Leather, alligator, 112, 113.
Lenormond, Mademoiselle, 280.
Letters, reading character by, 35,316-320.
Lewes, G. H. cited, 20.
Light, refined, 85.
" nature of that seen by Psychome-
ter, 339-347.
" latent, 342.
Limestone from Quindaro, 37.
" crystallized, 131, 132.
" slab of from Nineveh,150,151.
" stalogmitic, Thebes, 197-201.
" y Gibraltar, 107-172.
" encriual. Mount Koyol, 220.
Lockport, gulf near, 103, 104.
Lyell on air-breathers in Coal Measures,
120.
" on mask found in Pompeii, 190.
MacCulloch on Staffa, 135, 130.
INDEX.
369
Macnisli, Dr. vision seen by, 16, 17.
" sounds heard by, 46.
Mammoth Cave, 82-84, 92.
Manifestations, spiritual, 66.
Marble church of Smyrna, 148-150.
Martial on destruction of Pomi)eii, 188.
Martineau, Harriet, dted, 87.
Mayo, cited, 201.
Megatherium, 107.
Melrose Abbey, 163-167.
Mesmerism, 333.
Meteoric stones, 77, 78.
" iron, 75, 76.
Miller, Hugh, images seen by, 17, 18.
Montreal, 220-223.
Moon, dry and hot, 79.
" volcanoes on, 79.
Moore, Dr. George, cited, 23.
Mosaic, Baths of Caracalla, 172-174.
" from Rome, 174-176.
Mother-of-pearl opal, 136-139.
Mount of Olives, 89-92, 165-160.
Mummy pit, 197-204.
Mysteries revealed, 289-305.
Newton, Sir Isaac, 11.
Niagara, 94, 96.
Nicaragua, 136-139.
Nicolai, 2GO-203.
Nicpce de St. Victor, experiment of, 29.
Nineveh, 150, 161.
No Drift, region of, 121.
North Polar region, 139-143.
Objects, how seen, 312-320.
" why indistinctly seen, 337-339.
Obsidian, Mount Ararat, 217, 218.
OU, Pennsylvania, 224.
" Port Sarnia, 224.
" formed by coral polyps, 226.
Opal, mother-of-pearl, 136-139.
Palnesville, fossil fish-bone fi:om, 40-44.
Painter, anecdote of, 21, 22.
Panama, quartz from, 38.
Passengers seen in car, 323, 324.
Pavement, Mosaic, 143-148.
l»carl, black, California, 93.
Pebble, Palmyra, N. Y. 101.
" glacier-scratched, 101.
" Lake Superior, 231-235.
Petroleum, origin of, 223-227.
Phantoms, 326.
Phonotypes, 47-49.
Pictures, in the eye, 11.
** on the retina and brain, 11-26.
" <* surroundings objects, 26-32.
** taken in the dark, 29.
" seen by Sir I. Newton, 11, 12.
*• " Dr. Ferriar, 13, 14.
" " Niebuhr, 16. '
" " Dr. Macnish, 16, 17.
Piedmont, woman of, 47.
puny, on destruction of Pompeii, 188,
189.
PompeU, 178-191.
Porcelain Tower, China, 151-153.
Potsdam sandstone, 129, 130, 234.
Pottery, Indian, 113, 114.
Psychometry, a3, 316.
" utility of, 267-288.
" to the Geologist, 267-272.
" Miner, 272, 273.
" Astronomer, 273, 274.
" Physiologist and Anato-
mist, 274, 276.
" Artist, 275.
" Historian, 276-277.
'* in cure of Diseases, 276.
" its practical side, 277-288.
Quartz, Panama, 38.
" amethystine, 241-243.
" Pikers Peak, 249-250.
** gold-bearing, 244, 246.
Questions, considerations and sugges-
tions, 309.
Quindaro, Kansas, 37.
Bain-prints, fossil, 107, 108.
BeUcs, 297, 298, 360.
Reptiles of Tertiary period, 109.
" " Carboniferous period, 127.
Ring, surrounding the earth, 121^124.
Rome, 174-176.
Sandstone, Melrose Abbey, 163-167.
" "Western Reserve, 126.
Scott, Sir Walter, on Melrose Abbey,166.
Serapis, Temple of, 176, 177.
Shell, Iowa, 64.
Shoes, baby's, 367.
370
INDEX.
FilTPr mining, WMboe, 246.
Smyrna, marble from church of, 148-150.
Soapmone, l*aine«rille, 123.
Somcnrillc, Mr«. cited, 20.
BomnambuliBm, 88, 307.
Soundtf, regiMtercd on all olijeets, 40.
" how heard pBycfaometrically,
354, 3S5.
Spectre of key on paper, 27.
" of corpse, 258.
Spectral illusions, 22, 255-257.
Spirits, departed, 361, 362.
StalTa, 135, 186.
Stan-ed Rock, 114.
Stalactite fVom cave, 80, 81.
Stevelly, Prof, bees seen by, 10, 20.
Stone Age, 216.
Striated limestone, 45.
Students, sensitiyeness of, 34.
Sun, seen by Sir Isaac Newton, 11, 12.
Table Rock, NUgara, 01-00.
Taconic formation, 130.
Talbot, Mr. experiment of, 30.
Taylor, Mrs. 81, 236.
Temple of Neptune, i4.
*« of Serapis, 170, 177.
Tombs of kings, 107.
Tooth of mastodon, 54, 55.
Tracks of Connecticut Valley, 57-62.
Tufa, from Temple of Neptune, 44.
Tu&, volcanic, Pompeii, 180-184.
Victoria Bridge, Montreal, 221, 222.
Vision, 327.
" of the blind, 14-16.
" of blind Jewess, 16.
" with closed eyes, 327, 328.
Volcanoes on the moon, 70, 80.
Wafisr, impressions on plate made by, 27.
Walking-cane, whalebone, 62.
Washoe silver mine, 246.
Wheel, photograph of, 30.
Wilkinson on Egypt, 200.
Willard, Dr. visions of, 14.
Wood, silicifled, 250, 251.
Wood, fossil, Texas, 106-110.
Women more sensitive than men, 286,
287.
Wyandotte River, 104.
Zschokke, on finding metals, etc., 228.
«« on fortune-telling, 200-293.
1
■i
The borrower must return this item on or before
the last date stamped below. If another user
places a recall for this item, the borrower will
be notified of the need for an earlier return.
Non-receipt of overdue notices does not exempt
the borrower from overdue fines.
Harvard College Widener Library
Cambridge, MA 02138 617-495-2413
I
!«efl
- 1
' r
Please handle with care.
Thank you for helping to preserve
library collections at Harvard.